November 15, 2013

PART I

TEXTS WHOSE AUTHORS CAN BE DATED

AUTHORS LISTED CHRONOLOGICALLY

5th through 9th century

[For other time frames, or an alphabetical index, click on the images above.]


194.Author Unknown (400)

       1.Kamavaranavisuddhisutra (T.1494; Toh. 218)


195.Author Unknown (400)

       1.Mayopamasamadhisutra (T.371-372)


196.Author Unknown (400)

       1.Nagasripariprccha (T.220(8), 234)

196.1.1 Partly translated in Hobogirin: Dictionnaire encyclopedique du Bouddhisme d'après les sources chinoises et japonaises (ed. Paul Demieville), Second fascicule (Tokyo 1930), 164-166

196.1.2 Partly translated in Conze, SPP 160-164


196A.Kundakunda (400) (NCatIV, 194-195)

    1.Astaprabhrta (Jain) (NCat I, 450; IV,194)

196A.1.1 Satprabhrta edited by Suryabhanu Vakil. Banaras 1910

196A.1.2 Satprabhrta edited, with Srutasagara's commentary, by Pannalala. MDJG 17, 1920, 1989; Somagiri 1989

196A.1.3 Edited by Ramaprasada Jaina. Bombay 1924

196A.1.4 Satprabhrta edited by Nana Ramchandra Nag. Sholapur 1928

196A.1.5 Edited by Sital Prasadji. Madras 1931

196A.1.6 Summarized by A.N.Upadhye in 196A.5.6 below

196A.1.7 Translated by Jagat Prasad. Delhi 1942

196A.1.8 Edited in Prabhrtasamgraha by Kailash Chandra Jain. JJG 9,1960

196A.1.9 Edited by Ravji Chaganbhai Desai. Agas 1969

196A.1.9.1 Edited in Prakrit by Jayacandra Chabara and Mahendra Kumar Jain. Bhavnagar 1974

196A.1.10 Selections edited by Kamal Chand Sogani. Prakrit Bharati Pushpa 42, Jaipur 1987

196A.1.11 Bhavapahuda edited and translated by Ajit Prasad. Lucknow 1992

196A.1.12 Edited in Prakrit by Acarya Vidyasagara Suri. Sagara 1992

196A.1.13 Edited in Prakrit by Hukumacandra Bharilla. Jaipur 1994

196A.1.20 Summarized by Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh10, 2007, 126-138


    2.Dvadasanupreksa

See e196A.1.8

196A.2.1 Translated from Prakrit into Sanskrit by Manoharalala Gupta and Nathuram Premi. Bombay 1910

196A.2.2 Edited by Kalacandra Jinadatta Upadhyaya. Belgaum 1912

196A.2.3 Edited and translated by Brahmachari Sital Prasadji, Twelve Meditations by Sri Kundakunda Acharya. Madras 1931

196A.2.4 Edited in Prakrit and Sanskrit by Padma Prabhamala Dharideva, Himatlal Jethalal Saha and Maganalal Jain. 1965

196A.2.5 Edited in Prakrit by Balabhadra Jain. New Delhi 1990

196A.2.8 Summary by A.N.Upadhye in 196A.5.6, pp. 37-38, reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 138-139


    3.Niyamasara (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)

See e196A.1.8

196A.3.1 Edited, with Padmaprabha Maladharideva's commentary. Jaina Grantharatnakara Kavyalaya, Bombay 1916

196A.3.2 Edited and translated by Uggar Sain and Sital Prasad. SBJ 9, 1931; New Delhi 2006.. Introduction reprinted EpJ 193-198

196A.3.3 Edited by Hiommatlal Jetalal Shah in Prakrit and Sanskrit. Sonagadha, Saurashtra 1965, 1977

196A.3.3.5 Edited by Ayka Jnanamati Hastinapura. U.P. 1985

196A.3.4 Edited, with Padmaprabha Maladharideva's Tatparyavrtti, by Hukumamacandra Bharilla. Indore 2000

196A.3.5 Translated by Jagdish P. Jain as Salvation through Self-discipline. New Delhi 2005

196A.3.6 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh10, 2007, 120-126

196A.3.7 Edited and translated, with a translation of Kundakunda's Pravacanasara, by Kusum Jain. GTW 3, 2007


    4.Pancastikayasara (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)

See e196A.1.8, 3.7

196A.4.1 Edited by P.E.Pavolini. GSAIF 14, 1901, 1-40

196A.4.2 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Tattvadipika, Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, by Pannalal Bhakliwal. RJSM 3, 1906, 1914

196A.4.3 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Tattvadipika, by Udayalal Kasliwal. Bombay 1916

196A.4.4 Selections translated in J.L.Jaini, Outlines of Jainism. Cambridge 1916, 1940

196A.4.5 Edited and translated by A. Chakravarti. SBJ 3, 1920. Introduction reprinted EpJ 22-73. This with Amrtacandra's commentary edited by A.N.Upadhye, New Delhi 1971974, 1975

196A.4.6 Summarized in two pages by A.N.Upadhye in 196A.5.6 (below). This reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 95-97

196A.4.7 Edited by Brahmachari Sitalaprasada. Surat 1926

196A.4.9 Edited, with Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, by Mannulal Jain. New Delhi 2000

196A.4.10 Lopamudra Bhattacaryya, "Treatment of intervcalic aspirates ij Sauraseni with special reference to Sanskrit th in the Panastikaya", SIPSR 344-350

196A.4.12 Kozuyoshi Hatta, "Jain criticism of Buddhist philosophy on stanzas 15-19 of Pancastikayasamgraha", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 40-44


     5.Pravacanasara (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)

See e196A.1.8

196A.5.1 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Tattvapradipa and Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, by Manoharalala. RJSM 23, 1913

196A.5.2 Books 1-3 translated into Sanskrit by Brahmachari Sitalaprasada. Three volumes. Surat 1923-26

196A.5.3 Summarized and studied by A.N.Upadhye. JainG 25, 1929, 155-165. 31, 1935: 198, 235, 281, 316

196A.5.4 A.N.Upadhye, "The Prakrit dialect of Pravacanasara, or Jaina Sauraseni", JUBo 2, 1933, 89-96

196A.5.5 Edited by F.W.Thomas and translated, with Amrtacandra's Tattvapradipika, by Barend Faddegon. Cambridge 1935

196A.5.6 Edited and translated, with Amrtacandra's Tattvapradipika, Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, with eight page summary, by A.N.Upadhye. RJSM 23, second edition, 1935, 1964. Edition reprinted, with Word-ndex, Ahmedabad 2000

196A.5.7 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Tattvapradipika, by H. Jethlal Shah. Maroth (Rajasthan) 1950

196A.5.8 Selections translated in SIT

196A.5.9 Edited Delhi 1964

196A.5.10 Edited with Amrtacandra's Tattvadipika. Meerut 1979

196A.5.11 Edited in Sanskrit and Prakrit, with Amrtacandra's Tattvapradipaka and Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, by Sreyasakumara Jaina, Ajita Kumar Sastri and Ratnacanda Mukheta. Sonagiri, Dhatiya 1991

196A.5.11.5 Portions translated in GandS, pp. 139-147

196A.5.12 W.J. Johnson, Harmless souls: karmic bondage and religious change in early Jainism with special reference to Umasvati and Kundakunda. Delhi 1995.

196A.5.13 A.N. Upadhye's edition and word-index, edited by K.R. Chandra and Shobhna R. Shah. Ahmedabad 2000.

196A.5.15 Summarized by K.H.Potter, EnIndPh10, 2007, 97-110


     6.Samayasara (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)

See e196A.1.8

196A.6.1 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati and Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, by Gajadharalal Jain. SJGM 3, 1914

196A.6.2 Edited by Manoharalala Sastri. Bombay 1916

196A.6.3 Selections translated by J.L.Jaini, Outline of Jainism (Cambridge 1916, 1940)

196A.6.4 Edited by Brahmachari Sitalaprasada. Surat 1918

196A.6.5 Edited, with Subhacandra's Tika, by Jayacandra. SJGM 15, 1918

196A.6.6 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati and Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, by Manoharalala. RJSM 24, 1919

196A.6.6.5 Edited, with Subhacandra's Tika, by Pannalal Bakliwal. RJSM 1904-1927

196A.6.7 Edited and translated by J.L.Jaini. SBJ 8, 1930, 1974; also New Delhi 1990. Introduction reprinted EpJ 187-192.

196A.6.8 Summarized in five pages by A.N.Upadhya in 196A.5.6. This reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 110-120

196A.6.9 Edited by Himatlal J. Shah. Sonagarh 1940

196A.6.10 Edited by Nanak Chandra Jain. Rohtak 1941

196A.6.11 Edited and translated by A.Chakravarti, with a commentary based on Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati. Banaras 1950, 1971, 1997, 2001

196A.6.12 Edited by Pannalal Sahityacarya. Varanasi 1969

196A.6.12.1 Edited in Prakrit by Ganesaprasada Varni. 1969

196A.6.13 Edited with Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati and Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti and editor's commentary by Jayacandra Chavara Jaina. Pannalala 1974

196A.6.13.5 Edited with Subhacandra's Tika, in JJG 30, 1977

196A.6.14 B. Vincent Sekhar, "Jaina concept of person--a textual study of Samayasara of Acarya Kundakunda", JainJ 25, 1990, 110-118

196A.6.14.1 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati, Jayasena's Tatparyavrttii, and Aryika Jnanamati's Jnanajyoti, by Aryika Abhayamati. Hastinapur, Meerut 1990

196A.6.14.2 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati, by Nemicandra Patani. Jaipur 1990

196A.6.15 Will J. Johnson, Karmic Bondage and Religious Change in Early Jainism with special reference to Umasvati and Kundakunda. Delhi 1995

196A.6.16 Bansidhar Bhatt, "On the epithet: nataka for the Samayasara of Kundakunda", JPAMI 31-462


    7.General

See a317.1.84.1. a317.1.178.1. b47.16.119

196A.7.1 V.R.Ramachandra Dikshitar, "Some Jain teachers in Sravana Belgola inscriptions", IC 7, 1940-41, 41-45

196A.7.2 P.B.Desai, "Kundakunda, his domicile", QJMS 46, 1955-56, 1-7. Summarized in PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 61-62

196A.7.3 Walther Schubring, "Kundakunda echt und unecht", ZDMG 107, 1957, 557-574

196A.7.4 P.K.Jain, Metaphysical Synthesis: Its Nature and Value as suggested by a Study of the Philosophy of Kundakunda. Agra 1963

196A.7.5 P.K.Jain, "Kapila as seen from the viewpoint of Kundakunda", JainJ 5, 1970, 112-120

196A.7.6 B. Bhatt, "Vyavahara-naya and niscaya-naya in Kundakunda's works", ZDMG Supplement, 1974, 279-291

196A.7.7 G.V.Tagare, "Date of Kundakunda", JASBo 49-50, 1974-76, 219

196A.7.8 S.M.Shah, "Kundakunda's concept of vyavahara naya and niscaya naya", ABORI 56, 1975, 105-128

196A.7.9 Hampa Nagarajaiah, "Kundakundacarya--some problems regarding his identity, name and birthplace", JainJ 12, 1978, 93-98

196A.7.9.1 S.M.Shaha, "Kundakunda's contribution to the Jain doctrine of moksa and moksamarga", CASSt 4, 1978, 27-33

196A.7.10 B.K.Khadabadi, "Kundakundacarya: the literary doyen of Karnatak", Glory of India 3.3, 1979, 7-11

196A.7.10.1 S.M.Shah, "The theory of the two-fold truth according to Gaudapada and Kundakunda", CASSt 5, 1980, 41-48

196A.7.11 Gokul Chandra Jain, "The Prakrit works attributed to Kundakunda: some observations", VIRB 3, 1982, 46-52

196A.7.12 Jyoti Prasad Jain, "Date and place of birth of Sri Kundakundacarya", JainJ 22, 1987-88, 117-120

196A.7.12.2 M. A. Dhaky, "The date of Kundakunda", AspJ 3, 187-206

196A.7.12.3.K.C.Sogani, "Ethical philosophy of Kundakunda", AspJ 3, 1-9

196A.7.13 Devendra Kumar Jain, "Evolution theory of Kundakunda", JainA 45.1-2, 1992, 10-15

196A.7.14 K.B.Jindal, "Kundakundacarya: his life and works", JainJ 27, 1992, 83-89

196A.7.15 T. V. G. Sastri, "Jain literature and Kundakunda", Jinamanjari 12.2, 1995, 21-24

196A.7.16 Amar Singh Jain, "Path of moksa according to Kundakunda", Jinamanjari 18.2, 1998, 21-24

196A.7.17 Bhuvendra Kumar, "Kundakunda: saint scholar and philosopher", Jinamanjari 17, 1998, 30-43

196A.7.17.5 D. S. Baya, "Kundakunda on the conduct of the clergy and the laity", Jinamanjari 20.2, 1999, 17-25

196A.7.18 Sin Fujinaga, "Kundakunda on sarvajna", JIBSt 47.2, 1999, 23-26

196A.7.19 W. J. Johnson, "Kundakunda: two standpoints and the socio-religious function of anekantavada", AJSP 101-112

196A.7.20 P. Chenna Reddy, "Kundakundacharya and his contribution to Jain philosophy", JASACFV 78-84

196A.7.21 Christoph Emmerich, "Some remarks on the terminological construction of kala in Kundakunda", Vasantagaurava 73-84

196A.7.22 Kamal Chand Sogani, "Kundakunda on the modifications (paryayas) of self and their ethico-spiritual implications", MJS38, 2001, 28-32

196A.7.23 Royce Wiles, "The works of Kundakunda: a connotated listing of editions, translations and studies", Vasantagaurava 183-221

196A.7.25 Jagdish P. Jain, "Jaina philosopher Kundakunda and Vedantin Samkaracarya", Jinamanjari 25.1, 2002, 46-54

196A.7.26 S.A.Bhuvendra Kumar, "Soul and its functional mechanism in Jainism elucidated by Acarya Kundakunda (c. 41 B.C.E.), JPASIC 255-266

196A.7.30 Christoph Emmrich, "How many times? Pluralism, dualism or monism in early Jaina temporal description", EJPR 69-88

196A.7.32 Jayendra Soni, "Kundakunda and Umasvati on aneikantavada", EJPR 25-36

196A.7.35 Jayandra Soni, "Upayoga according to Kundakunda and Umasvati", JIP 35, 2007, 299-311

196A.7.Johannes Bronkhorst, "Kundakunda versus Samkhya on the soul”, Svasti 215-226



196B.Umasvati or Umasvami (400) (NCat II, 396)

    1.Tattvartha(adhigama)sutra and Bhasya (Jain) (NCat VIII, 77-78)

196B.1.1 Sutras edited in SStotra

196B.1.2 Sutras edited by Sadasukla. Bombay 1896

196B.1.3 Sutras edited by Nathuram Lamachu. Lucknow 1897

196B.1.4 Sutras edited Moradabad 1897

196B.1.5 Sutras edited Lahore 1900

196B.1.6 Sutras edited in Jainanityapatha (Bombay 1901)

196B.1.7 Sutras edited in Prakirnaka (Ahmedabad 1902)

196B.1.8 Sutras edited by Candrasena in Jainagranthasamgraha (Etawah 1903)

196B.1.9 Edited with autocommentary by Keshavlal Premchand Modi. BI 159, 1903-05

196B.1.10 Sutras edited in Jainastotrasamgraha (Bombay 1904)

196B.1.10.1 Edited with Devanandin's Sarvarthasiddhi. Kolhapur 1904

196B.1.11 Sutras edited by Jayachandra Sitarama Sravana. Wardha 1905

196B.1.12 Sutras edited by Pannalal and Vamsidhara in SJGM 1, 1905, 85-86

196B.1.13 Edited and translated into German by Hermann Jacobi. ZDMG 60, 1906: 287-325, 512-551. Reprinted Leipzig 1906

196B.1.14 Edited with autocommentary by Thakkur Prasad Sarma. RJSM 2, 1906

196B.1.15 Sutras edited by Pannalal Baklival. Bombay 1907, 1922; Calcutta 1916

196B.1.16 Sutras edited by Ummedsingh Musaddilal Jain in Adhyatmasamgraha (Amritsar 1907)

196B.1.17 Sutras edited by Jivaraj Gotamchand Doshi. Sholapur 1908, 1920, 1948

196B.1.18 Sutras of Chapter 10 edited, by Dada Babgoda Patil. Sholapur 1909

196B.1.19 Sutras edited by Virasimha Jaini in Jainarnava (Etawah 1909)

196B.1.20 Sutras edited by Chhotelal. Banaras 1912

196B.1.21 Sutras edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Tattvartharajavarttika, by Gajadharalal. SJGM 4, 1913

196B.1.22 Sutras edited by Nathalal Sobhagchand Dosi. Surat 1915

196B.1.23 Sutras edited. Ahmedabad 1916

196B.1.25 Sutras edited, with Vidyananda's Slokavarttikalamkara, by Manoharalala Sastri.   Bombay 1918

196B.1.26 Sutras edited and translated by J.L.Jaini, SBJ 2, 1920, 1956, 1984, 1990. Selections from translation in Source Book 252-260. Introduction reprinted in EpJ 17-21.

196B.1.27 Edited, with Devagupta's, Abhayadeva Suri's, Hemacandra 'uri's Devendra Suri's, Devananda Suri's, Jayasekhara Suri's and Sadharatnasuri's comentaries, in Navatattvasahityasamgraha. Four parts. Allahabad 1922

196B.1.28 Sutras edited with autocommentary, Yasovijaya's Bhasya and Vijayodaya Suri's explanation of the first five sutras. Ahmedabad 1924

196B.1.29 Sutras edited with autocommentary and Cirantana Muni's Tattvarthatippana. Ahmedabad 1924

196B.1.30 Sutras edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Rajavarttika, by Gajadharalal, Makkhan Lal and Sri Lala. Two volumes. Calcutta 1924-29

196B.1.31 Sutras and autocommentary edited, with Devagupta Suri's commentary and Siddhasena Gani's Tika, by Hiralal Rasikdas Kapadia. Two volumes. Bombay 1926-1930

196B.1.32 Sutras and autocommentary edited by Motilal Ladha. AMP 2, 1926

196B.1.33 Sutras edited, with Gopaladasa Bariya's Bhasya, by Khubcandra Siddhantasastri. Bombay 1932

196B.1.34 Hiralal Rasikdas Kapadia, "References to the Bauddhas and their philosophy in Umasvati's Tattvarthabhasya and Siddhasena Gani's commentary to it", ABORI 14, 1932-33: 142, 273

196B.1.35 A.M.Hatge, "The text of the Tattvarthadhigama Sutrani", JUBo 4, 1935, 105-111

196B.1.36 Sutras edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Laghuvrtti which is completed by Yasobhadra. Ratlam 1936

196B.1.37 Sutras of Chapters 1-2 edited by Vatesvaradayalu Bakevariya Sastri. Delhi 1937

196B.1.37.1 Edited with editor's Vivecana by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. Varanasi 1939, 1976

196B.1.38 Sutras and autocommentary of Chapter Five translated with English commentary in G.R.Jain, Cosmology Old and New. SBJ 13, 1942. Also New Delhi 1975

196B.1.39 Sutras edited by Kanaka Vijaya Savarakundala. 1942

196B.1.40 Sutras edited, with Bhaskaranandin's Sukhabodha, by A.S.Sastri. MOLP 84, 1944

196B.1.40.1 Trisutri section edited, with (Vijaya) Lavanya Suri's Prakasika. Bombay 1944, 1991

196B.1.41 Sutras edited, with Srutasagara Suri's Tattvarthavrtti, by Mahendra Kumar. JPMJG 4, 1949

196B.1.41.1 Edited with Vidyananda's Tika by Manikacandra Kaundeya. Solapur 1949

196B.1.42 Summarized in B.C.Law, "Jaina canonical sutras (III)", IC 13, 1946, 111-118. Reprinted in B.C.Law, Some Jain Canonical Sutras (Bombay 1949)

196B.1.43 Sutras edited by Phulchandra Siddhantasastri. Banaras 1950

196B.1.43.1 Edited Varanasi 1952

196B.1.44 Sutras edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Rajavarttika, by Mahendra Kumar Jain. Two volumes, JPMJG 10, 1953; 20, 1957. Reprinted New Delhi 1982

196B.1.45 Sutras and autocommentary edited, with Yasovijaya's Vivarana and editor's Gudharthadipika, by Vijayadarsana Suri. Bhavnagar 1955

196B.1.45.0 Edited with Devanandin's Sarvarthasiddhi by Phulcandra Siddhantasastrti. Delhi 1955. Reprinted Delhi 1971.

196B.1.45.1 Edited, with a Bhasya by an unknown author and Umasvati's Prasamarati, by K. P. Mody. BI 158. Calcutta 1959

196B.1.46 Edited by Mohan Lal Jain. Jabalpur 1969

196B.1.47.1 Edited with editor's Dipika by Ghasilal Maharaj. 2 volumes. 1973

196B.1.48 Bansidhar Bhatt and Chandrabhai Tripathi, "Tattvartha studies", ALB 38, 1974, 64-83

196B.1.49 Sutras edited and translated, with a translation of Sukhlal Sanghvi's commentary, by K.K.Dixit. LDS 44, 1974

196B.1.50 Suzuko Ohira, "Treatment of dhyana in the Tattvarthadhigamasutra of Umasvati", IndPQ 3, 1975-76, 51-64

196B.1.51 Yensho Kanakura, "A study on the Jaina theory of knowledge", Sambodhi 4.3-4, 1975-76, 1-10

196B.1.53 Suzuko Ohira, "Tattvarthasutra: verification of prasati", Sambodhi 5.1, 1976-77, 49-63

196B.1.54 Bansidhar Bhatt, "Tattvartha studies" (summary). ZDMG Supplement 19, 1977, 802-806

196B.1.55 Suzuko Ohira, A Study of the Tattvarthasutra with Bhasya with special reference to authorship and date. LDS 86, 1982

196B.1.56 Chapter Ten translated in Robert J. Zydenbos, Moksa in Jainism, according to Umasvati. Beitrage fur Sudasien-Forschung (Heidelberg), Bd. 83, Wiesbaden 1983

196B.1.57 M.P.Marathe, "Some amphibious expressions in Umasvati", StinJ 83-100.

196B.1.58 Johannes Bronkhorst, "On the chronology of the Tattvartha Sutra and some early commentaries", WZKSOA 29, 1985, 155-184

196B.1.59 Edited by Sricandra Surana. Indore 1987

196B.1.60 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Some remarks on the analysis of the sensuous cognition (mati-jnana) process (Tattvarthadhigama-bhasya I. 15)", JainJ 24, 1989-90, 17-20

196B.1.61 Yajneshwar S. Shastri, "Tattvarthadhigamasutra and Prasamarati: a study", YSS 65-74

196B.1.61.0 Edited Meerut 1991

196B.1.61.1 Edited by Rajesa I. Ahmedabad 1993

196B.1.61.2 M.A. Dhaky, "On the implication of the 'nagnyaparisaha' in the Tattvarthadhigamasutra", JPAMI 413-420

196B.1.62 Translated as That Which Is with the combined commentaries of Pujapada and Siddhasenagani by Nathmal Tatia. San Francisco 1994

196B.1.62.1 Edited by Akhayacandra Sagara. Ahmedabad 1994

196B.1.63 Eiichi Yamaguchi, "Mati in the Tattvarthadhigama", Jinamanjari 13.1, 1996, 19-37

196B.1.64 Edited by Ramajibhai Manikacandra Desai. Jaipur 1996

196B.1.65 Edited by Pradyumnacarya. Delhi 1997

196B.1.66 R. Wiles, "Bibliography on Umasvati/Umasvami, ca. 135-ca. 219 C.E.", JainJ 33, 1998, 130-159

196B.1.66.5 Satya Ranjan Banerjee, "A key-note address on Umasvati and his works", JainJ 34, 1999, 61-64

196B.1.67 Chapter Two translated, with Akalanka's Rajavarttika, in N. L. Jain, Biology in Jaina Treatise on Reals (Biology in Tattvarthasutras). Varanasi 1999

196B.1.69 Chapter Five translated in N. L. Jain, The Jaina World of Non-living (The Non-living in Tattvarthasutra). Varanasi 2000

196B.1.74 K. Vasudeva Rao, "Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra: some remarks on its contents", JICPR 19.4, 2002, 47-64

196B.1.78 Padmanabh S. Jaini, "Umasvati on the quality of sukha", JIP 31, 2003, 613-664

196B.1.80 K. Vasudeva Rao, "Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra: contents and contentions", BhV 64.2, 2004, 37-51

196B.1.81 N . L. Jain, "Studies on biology in Tattvarthasutra (Formulae on Reals)", Nandanavana 148-167

196B.1.81.5 Editedand traslated b Chaganlala Jain. Ujjain 2006

196B.1.82 Sutra summarized by K. K. Dixit, EnIndPh10, 2006, 47-66, and Bhasya summarized by K.K.Dixit, in EnIndPh10, 2007, 71-94.

196B.1.84 Edited and translated b Manu Doshi. Vestal, N.Y. 2007

196B.1.86 Edited by Manish Modi. Mumbai 2008

196B.1.90 Translated by Vijay K. Jain. Dehra Dun 2011


    2.Prasamaratiprakarana

See a196B.1:45.1, 61

196B.2.0 Edited Ahmedabad 1903

196B.2.0.1 Edited by Karpuravijayaji. Mahesana 1909

196B.2.0.2 Edited with Jinadasagani's Avacuri. Bombay 1910

196B.2.0.3 Edited in Roman characters and translated into Italian by A. Ballini. GSAIF 25, 1912, 117-136; 29, 1918-20, 61 ff.

196B.2.0.4 Edited with Haribhadra Suri's commentary in S.D.Lalbhai Jain Pustakoddhara Samstha Series 88, Surat 1940

196B.2.0.4.5 Edited with Haribhadra Suri's commentary by Raj Kumar. Bombay 1950

196B.2.0.5 Edited by Nemichandra Maharaj. Delhi 1969

196B.2.1 Edited and translated by Yajneshwar S. Shastri. LDS 107, 1975, 1989

196B.2.1.1 Edited by Rajasekhara Vijaya Maharaja. Patna 1975

196B.2.1.2 Edited by Bhadraguptavijayaji Ganivara. Mahesana 1985

196B.2.1.3 Edited by Moticandra Giridharalala Kapadia. Bombay 1986

196B.2.1.3.1 Edited and translated by Vesna Acimovic as A Bliss in Quiescence according to Umasvati. M.A.Thesis, U. of Washington. 1988

196B.2.1.3.5 Edited by Vaman Mahadeo Kulkarni.and translated by Mahesh Bhagilal. Ahmedabad 1989

196B.2.1.4 Edited with Jinadasa Gani's Curni and editor's Tika by Vijayajinendra Surisvara. Santipur, Saurashtra 1991

196B.2.2 Yajneshwar S. Shastri, "Prasamaratiprakarana and commentaries on it", YSS 53-60

196B.2.4 Summarized by Yajneshwar S. Shastri, EnIndPh10, 2007, 66-70


     2A.Sravakaprajnapti

196B.2A.0 Edited, with Haripasada Suri's Dikprabha, by Rajendravijaya. Disa 1972.

196B.2A.1 Edited with Haibhadra Suri's Vrtti by Balacandra Sastri. New Delhi 1999


    3.General

See b196A.5.12, 196A.6.15, 196A.7:32, 35

196B.3.1 Yajneswar S. Shastri, "Umasvati's contribution to Indian philosophy", JainJ 22, 1987, 6-11. Reprinted in YSS 18-32

196B.3.2 M. A. Dhaky, "Umasvati in epigraphical literary tradition", JainJ 31, 1996, 47-65


197.Author Unknown (400)

       1.Sudhadanarajaparinirvanasutra


198.Sabara(svamin) (400)

       1.Bhasya on Jaimini's Mimamsasutras

See a22.1:57,67, 88.2. e22.1:2,10,26,74,77,80,81.1,87,89. t22.1.25,46.

198.1.1 G.A.Jacob, "Gleanings from Sabara", JRAS 1914, 297-308

198.1.2 Ganganatha Jha, "A note on the Sabara-Bhasya", Dr. Modi Memorial Volume 311-312

198.1.3 G.A.Jacob, "Index to Sabara's Bhasya", POWSBSt 2, 1923, 5-28. 3, 1924, 1-39. 6, 1927, 1-18. 7, 1929, 141-166. 8, 1930, 154-169. Reprinted Varanasi 1984

198.1.4 P.V.Kane, "Gleanings from the Bhasya of Sabara and the Tantravarttika",

198.1.5 P.V.Kane, "Bhavadasa and Sabarasvamin", ABORI 10, 1928-29, 153-154

198.1.5.1 D.V.Garge, "An enlarged version of the Nirukta--discussion on the meaninglessness or otherwise of Vedic mantras in the Sabara Bhasya", DCRIB 2, 1940, 139-142

198.1.5.1.5 Othmar Gächter, Hermeneutics and Language in Purva Mimamsa: A Study in Sabara Bhasya. Delhi 1941, 1983

198.1.5.2 D.V.Garge, "The contributions of the Sababhasya to Rgveda exegesis or the treatment by Sabara of the Rgeveda passages cited in his Bhasya", DCRIB 3, 1942, 531-546

198.1.5.3 D.V.Garge, "The contribution of the Sabara Bhasya to Rgvedic exegesis", DCRIB 4, 1943, 315-328

198.1.5.4 D.V.Garge, "Did Sabara belong to the Maitrayaniya school of the Yajurveda?", DCRIB 4, 1943, 329-339

198.1.5.5 V.M.apte and D.V.Garge, "Mahabharata citations in the Sabara-bhasya", DCRIB 5, 1944, 221-230

198.1.6 Ganganatha Jha, "Sunyavada in Sabara-Bhasya", ARCV 162-163 tra (Teil 1)", Ural-altaische Jahrbüer Neue Folge 6, 1986, 76-99

198.1.7 Saileswar Sen, "A puzzle in the Sabarabhasya", PO 2.1, 1938, 18-19

198.1.8 D.V.Garge, "The contribution of the Sabara-bhasya to Rgveda exegesis", BDCRI 3, 1941-42, 531-546. 4, 1942-43, 315-328

198.1.9 G.V.Devasthali, "On the probable date of Sabara-svamin", ABORI 23, 1942, 84-97

198.1.10 D.V.Garge, "Did Sabara belong to the Maitrayaniya school of the Yajurveda?", BDCRI 4, 1942-43, 329-339

198.1.11 V.M.Apte and D.V.Garge, "Mahabharata citations in the Sabarabhasya", BDCRI 5, 1943-44, 221-230

198.1.12 G.V.Devasthali, "Positive data for the date of Sabarasvamin", JGJRI 6, 1948-49, 231-240

198.1.12.1 Damodar Vishnu Garge, Citations in Sabara-Bhasya (A Study).   DCPGRIMS 8, 1952

198.1.13 G.V.Devasthali, "Sabara and the Nyaya-Vaisesika darsana", JOR 18, 1948-49, 16-24

198.1.14 K.Chattopadhyaya, "References to Buddhist philosophy in the Vrttikaragrantha of Sabarabhasya", POS 39, 115-128

198.1.15 G.V.Devasthali, "Simple subsidiary injunction--guna-vidhi", OT 2, 1956, 43-84

198.1.16 Fritz Zangenberg, "Sabarah und seine philosophischen Quellen", WZKSOA 7, 1962, 60-77

198.1.17 Madeleine Biardeau, "L'atman dans le commentaire de Sabarasvamin", MIMLR 109-125

198.1.18 Edited, with Kumarila's Slokavarttika and Parthasarathi Misra's Nyayaratnakara, by Gajanana Sastri Musalagamvakara. Volume One. Varanasi 1979

198.1.18.1 J.M.Verpoorten, "Sabara-Bhasya III.4.11 (Sutras 30-3) on the Taittiriya Samhita", BhV 41.1-2, 1981, 63-69

198.1.19 Chapters 7-8 edited, with Kumarila's Tuptika, VenkataDiksita's Varttikabharana, Rajacudamani's Tantrasikhamani, and Sandarbha Yogi's (?) Bhasya, by Pattabhirama Sastri and Venkaesvara Diksita. New Delhi 1984

198.1.20 D.J.Agrawal (ed.), Mimamsa Uddharana Kosa. The Citations from Sabara-Bhasya traced to their original sources. Pune 1985

198.1.21 Edited by E.R.Sreekrishna Sarma. Madras 1989

198.1.21.1 J.M. Verpoorten, "Le comparaison du baton et du porteur de baton dans le Sabara Bhasya", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 7-8, 1989-90, 261-283

198.1.21.2 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Sabara in the Sabarabhasya", BPBS 343-356

198.1.22 Peter M. Scharf, "Assessing Sabara's arguments for the conclusion that a generic term denotes just a class property", JIP 21, 1993, 1-10

198.1.23 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "The means of knowing apurva in Sabarasvamin's Bhasya", JIBSt 45.1, 1996, 10-14

198.1.24 Irene Wicher, "Der vakyabheda bei Sabara", WZKSOA 43, 1999, 139-166

198.1.25 Sripad Bhat, "A note on Sabara's India", Makaranda 73-82

198.1.27 Kiyataka Yoshimizu, "Change of view on apurva from Sabarasvamin to Kamalasila", WL 149-166

198.1.35 Jean-Marie Verpoorten, "Le rite d'upamsuyajna dans le Sabara-Bhasya", IKK 391-406

198.1.38 Kei Kataoka, "Critical edition of Sabarabhasya ad I.1.16-23: Sabdanityatvadhikarana", TBKK 152, 2007, 29-79

 
 

199.Nagarjuna (?) (400?)

        1.Isvarakartrtvanirakaranavisnorekakartrtvanirakarana

199.1.1 Edited by F.W.Thomas, JRAS 1903, 345-349

199.1.2 Edited and translated in Papers of Th. Stcherbatsky (Calcutta 1969, pp. 10-12.

199.1.3 Translated by George Chemparathy. WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 97-99

199.1.4 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 100-101

 
 

200.Vasumitra (405)

       1.Samayabhedopacakra (Abhidiharma)

200.1.1 Translated into Russian by A. Vassilieff, Buddizm, ego dogmaty, istorija i literatura (St. Petersburg 1857). This translated into German by A. Schiefner as Der Buddhismus, Seine Dogmen, Geschichte und Literatur (St. Petersubrg 1860), and thence into French as Le Bouddhisme, ses dogmes, son histoire et sa literature (Paris 1865)

200.1.2 Samuel Beal, "The eighteen schools of Buddhism", IA 9, 1880, 299-302

200.1.3 J. Masuda, "Early Indian Buddhist schools", JDL 1, 1920, 1-12

200.1.4 J. Masuda, "Origin and doctrines of early Indian Buddhist schools, a translation of Hsuan-Chwang's version of Vasumitra's treatise", AM 2, 1925, 1-75. Reprinted Leipzig 1925

200.1.5 Translated into German by M. Walleser as Die Sekten des alten Buddhismus (Heidelberg 1927)

200.1.6 Paul Demiéville, "L'origine des sectes bouddhiques d'aprés Paramartha", MCB 1, 1932, 15-64

200.1.7 Edited by Teramoto Enga and Hiramatsu Tomotsugu, Kyoto 1935

200.1.8 Andre Bareau, "Trois treatisés sur les sectes bouddhiques attribués à Vasumitra, Bhavya et Vinitadeva", JA 242, 1954, 229-266; 244, 1956, 167-200

200.1.9 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103-107

 
 

201.Author Unknown (405)

        1.Suddhodanarajaparinirvanasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 102

 
 

201A.Author Unknown (405)

        1.Sutra on the advancement of learning

Cf. EnBudP9, 2003, 102

 
 

201B.Author Unknown (405)

         1.Sutra on a pupil who received (seven days) after his death

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 102

        

201C.Author Unknown (405)

          1.Candavatdesarajasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 102

 
 

201D.Author Unknown (405)

          1.Mudradesarajasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103

 
 

201E.Author Unknown (405)

          1.Malarajasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103

 
 

201F.Author Unknown (405)

           1.Sutra on the five (elements) not returning again

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103


202.Author Unknown (410)

          1.Bodhisattvagocaropayavisayavikurvananirdesasutra (T.271-272; K. 162)

202.1.1 Michael Zimmerman, "A Mahayanist criticism of Arthasastra: the Chapter on Royal Ethics in the Bodhisattvagocaropaya-visaya-vikurvana-nirdesa-sutra", ARIRSU 11, 1999, 177-212

202.1.5 Translated by Lobzang Jamspal.



204.Author Unknown (410)

       1.Jyotiskasutra (K.505)


206.Author Unknown (410)

       1.Maitribhavanasutra


207.Author Unknown (410)

       1.Rajavadakasutra (T.514-516; Toh. 221; K.260))

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103

 
 

208.Author Unknown (412)

        1.Mahasrayartharddhimantrasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 107

 
 

209.Nagarjuna (422)

         1.Upayakausalyasutra or Upayahrdaya

See a47.16.152.01; 47.16.351.01; 174.10.38.1

209.1.1 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in HIL, 259-261. This reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 107-110

209.1.2 Restored from Chinese to Sanskrit by Giuseppe Tucci in PDBTL, 32 pp.

209.1.3 Yuichi Kajiyama, "On the authorship of the Upayahrdaya", StBudEp 107-117

209.1.4 Translated in Mark Tatz, The Skill in Means (Upayakauslaya) Sutra. Delhi 1994

209.1.4.1 Mark Tatz, Upayakausalyasutra. Two Tibetan Translations from the Kanjur. Berkeley 1994-95

209.1.5 Shohei Ichimura, "The period of Nagarjuna and the Fang-pien-hsin-lun or Upayahidayasastra". JIBSt 43.2, 1995, 20-25

209.1.8 Toshihiko Kimura, "The logic and standpoint of the Upayahrdaya", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 178-179

 
 

209A.Author Unknown (422)

          1.Kusumasamcayasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 110

 
 

210.Buddhaghosa (425)

       1.Atthasalini or Dhammasangani-Atthakatha

See e1.1.10.4

210.1.1 Arnold C. Taylor, "Buddhist Abhidharma", JRAS 1894, 560-561

210.1.2 Edited by Edward Muller. PTS 40, 1897, 1979

210.1.3 Edited in Burmese character. Rangoon 1901, 1920, 1951, 1955, 1986

210.1.4 Edited by U Hpye in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1902

210.1.5 Edited by U Ngwe in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1910

210.1.6 Edited by K. Siddhananda Tissa in Sinhalese characters. Part One. Colombo 1911

210.1.7 Edited by Hsaya Kyi et al. in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1913

210.1.8 Edited by Visuddhacara in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1913

210.1.8.1 Edited in Thai script. Two volumes. Bangkok 1919-20, 1963, 1970, 1979, 1982, 1988

210.1.9 Translated by Pe Maung Tin as The Expositor. Two volumes. PTSTr 8-9, 1920-21. Reprinted London 1958

210.1.10 Edited in Siamese script. Bangkok 1920, 1921, 1988

210.1.10.1 Edited in Sinhalese characters by Wimdadhamma Pannasara. Colombo 1938

210.1.11 Edited by Yagirala Pannananda. Colombo 1940

210.1.12 Edited by P. V. Bapat and R. D. Vadekar. Poona 1942

210.1.13 Nyanaponika, "Die drei Wurzeln des Güten (kusalamula) aus Atthasalini, dem Kommentar zu Dhammasangani", Einsicht 1950, Heft 1, 14-16

210.1.14 Table summarizing structure of citta and caitta in H.V.Guenther, Philosophy and Psychology in the Abhidharma. Lucknow 1957

210.1.15 Studied by G.H.Sasaki in Bukkyo Shinrigaku no Kenkyu. Tokyo 1960

210.1.16 Edited, with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas, by Birbal Sharma. Three volumes. Nalanda 1964-67

210.1.17 Upali Karunaratna, "Atthasalini", EnBud 2.3, 1967, 366-368

210.1.18 Edited with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas by Mahesh Tiwari. Volume One. Nalanda 1968

210.1.19 Edited by Ram Sankar Tripathi. Pali Granthamala 6, Varanasi 1989

210.1.19.3 Nanakitti, The Abhidhamma Atthasalini Atthayojana. Ed. Kodigoda Pannasekhara Thera. Celon 1910

210.1.19.5 Rosario Santana Roche, Towards an Abhidharma Theory of Interpretation: a Critical Analysis of Atthasalinig. 1993. Summarized in RBS 150-153

210.1.20 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 173-194

210.1.23 Translated into German bv Nyayaponika, edited by Sven Bretfeld and Rainer Knopf. Oxford 2005

210.1.26 Petra Kieffer-Putz, "Der legung der Bedeutung (Atthasalini): der Kommentar zur Dhammasangani", NudSR 25.1, 2008, 116-121


       2.Dhatukatha Atthakatha

See a210.9.16-17. e13.1.1. e210.1:16,18.

210.2.1 Edited by Edmund Rowland Goonaratne. PTS 29, 1892. Reprinted London 1963

210.2.2 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas by U Hpye, Rangoon 1902

210.2.3 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas by U Ngwe, Rangoon 1909

210.2.4 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas by Hsaya Thein. Rangoon 1911, 1912

210.2.5 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas by Visuddhacara. Rangoon 1911

210.2.6 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas by Hsaya Kyi et al., Rangoon 1913

210.2.7 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghosa's other Atthakathas by Hsaya Wa. Rangoon 1932

210.2.8 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 2003, 215


       3.Kathavatthu Atthakatha

See a210.9.16-17. e8.1:1,5,9,12,15. e210.1:16-18. e210.1:2-7.

210.3.2 Summarized by James P. McDermott. EnIndPh9, 2003, 195-212


       3A Milindapanha-Atthakatha

210.3A.1 U. Thandra, A Critical Edition and Study of the Milindapanha-Atthakatha. 1999. Summarized in RBS pp. 195-196


       4.(Tika)Patthana Atthakatha

See a210.9.16-17. e5.1.10; 7.1.3.00; 12.1.3; 210.1:16,18. e210.2:2-7

210.4.1 Edited by J. Kashyap. Six volumes. Nalanda 1960

210.4.2 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 2003, 215


       4A.Petakopadesa Atthakatha

See e17.1.3


       5.Puggalapannati Atthakatha

See a210.9.16-17. e5.1.4. e210.1:16,18. e210.2:2-7

210.5.1 Edited by Georg Landsberg and Carolyn A.F. Rhys Davids, JPTS 1913-14, 170-254

210.5.2 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 2003, 215-216

210.5.5 Timothy P. Lighthiser, Puggala-pannatti-Atthakatha of the Mahavihara school of Theravada Buddhism: A Translation with notes. Summarized DUAI 67.10, 2007, p. 3824.


       6.Sammohavinodani or Vibhanga Atthakatha

See e3.1: 2.1, 3.1, 5.2

210.6.1 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1901

210.6.2 Edited in Burmese characters by U Hpye. Rangoon 1902

210.6.3 Edited in Burmese characters by U Ngwe. Rangoon 1909

210.6.4 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Tin. Rangoon 1912

210.6.5 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al., Rangoon 1913

210.6.5.1 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1915, 1939, 1957, 1960, 1968, 1985

210.6.6 Edited by A.P.Budhadatta. PTS 93, 1923; London 1980

210.6.6.1 Edited in Thai script. Bangkok 1922, 1965, 1989, 1990

210.6.6.1.5 Madhanda Thera, Abhidharmapradipika, or a Paraphrase of the Sammohavindini the commentary on the Viobhangaprakarana. Colombo 1929

210.6.7 Edited by Yagirala Pannananda. Colombo 1932

210.6.7.1 Edited by S. Mookerjee and U. Dhammaratna. Nalanda 1961

210.6.8 Translated by Bhikkhu Nanamoli, Revised by L. S. Cousins, Nyanaponika Mahathera and C.M.M.Shaw as The Dispeller of Delusion. Two volumes. Sacred Books of the Buddhists 40-41, 1987, 1991, 1996

210.6.8.5 Edited Igatpuri 1998

210.6.9 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 2003, 194-195


       7.Visuddhimagga

See a123.1.3.2

210.7.1 J.E.Carpenter, "Visuddhimagga (abstract of contents)" (in Pali), JPTS 9, 1890, 14-21

210.7.2 Henry C. Warren, "Table of contents of Buddhaghosa's Visuddhimagga", JPTS 10, 1891-93, 76-164

210.7.3 Edited by C.A.Seelakhandha as an appendix to HBTSI 1894, 42 pp.

210.7.3.1 Edited in Cambodian, part in Pali, by various editors. Pnomh Penh 1900, 1930, 1946, 1950, 1957, 1970

210.7.3.2 Edited in Thai script, with Dhammapal's Paramatthamanjusa. Krong Thep Maha Nekhon 1900, 1925m 1927

210.7.4 Edited in Burmese characters by U Hpye. Rangoon 1909-10

210.7.5 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Tin. Rangoon 1912

210.7.6 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1912

210.7.7 Charles R. Lanman, "Buddhaghosa's treatise on Buddhism entitled 'The Way of Salvation': analysis of Part One, on morality", Proceedings of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences 49.3, 1913, 149-169

210.7.8 Brief passages translated in Warren 168-170. One passage reprinted in Source Book 279-280

210.7.9 Edited by Pamunuwe Buddhadatta. Colombo 1920

210.7.10 Edited by Carolyn A.F.Rhys Davids. PTS 88-89, 1920. Two volumes 

210.7.11 Part 9 translated into German by Nyanatiloka, ZB 4, 1922, 52-56

210.7.12 Translated as The Path of Purity by Pe Maung Tin. PTSTr 11, 17, 21: 1923-31. Three volumes

210.7.13 Part of Chapter 8 translated into German by Nyanatiloka. ZBVG 7, 1926, 75-92; 8, 1928, 31-62, 163-188, 309-338. Reprinted Munich 1931; Konstanz 1952 as Der Weg zur Reinheit.

210.7.14 Part 2, section 5 edited by Nyanatiloka in Pali-Anthologie und Wörterbuch (Munchen-Neubiberg 1928)

210.7.14.1 Edited, with Dhammapala's Paramatthamanjusa, by Dhammananda. Colombo 1928, 1930

210.7.14.2 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1928, 1979, 1985-86

210.7.15 B. Semisov, "Matter according to the Visuddhimagga of Buddhaghosa and the Abhidhammatthasamgaho of Anuruddha" (in Russian). BASR 5, 1930, 319-345

210.7.16 Nalinaksha Dutt, "Buddhist meditation", IHQ 11, 1935, 710-740

210.7.17 Edited by D.N.Kosambi. Bombay 1940; Darnath, Banaras 1943

210.7.18 Summarized in 39 pages in Kashyap

210.7.19 Edited by Henry C. Warren and revised by D.D.Kosambi. HOS 41, 1950; Delhi 1989

210.7.20 R.Subramaniam and S.P.Nainar, "Buddhaghosa--his place of birth", JOR 19, 1952, 278-284

210.7.21 Edward Conze, "The meditation on death", MW 29, 1955, 159-163; 30, 1955: 15-18, 54-57. Reprinted in 30YBS 87-104

210.7.22 Translated by Nanamoli as The Path of Purification (Colombo, 1956, 1991, 1997). Selections from this reprinted in Gard. Reprinted Berkeley, Calif. 1976; Seattle, Wash. 1999

210.7.22.1 Translated by D.R.Bhikshu. Two volumes. Varanasi 1956-57

210.7.23 Nyanaponika Thera, "Anatta and nibbana", Wheel 11, 1958, 29 pp.

210.7.24 U.Dhammaratna, Guide through Visuddhimagga. Varanasi 1964

210.7.25 Edited, with Dhammapala's Paramatthamanjusa, in Pali Granthamala 3. Three volumes. Varanasi 1969-72

210.7.26 Selections edited and translated in Conze, BudMed

210.7.27 H.Saddhatissa, "Nibbana: ideal aim of the Buddha's teachings", MB 78, 1970, 455-460

210.7.28 Chapter of discussion in Helmut Eimer, Skizzen des Erlösungsweges in Buddhistischen Begriffreihen (Bonn 1976), Chapter 7

210.7.29 Edited by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1977; Volume Three, Varanasi 2006

210.7.30 Shanta Ratnayaka, Two Ways of Perfection: Buddhist and Christian. Colombo 1978

210.7.31 Jion Abe, Samkhapatthajotani Visuddhimaggacullatika Siladhutanga. A Study of the First and Second Chapters of the Visuddhimagga and its Commentaries. Bhandarkar Oriental Series 15, Poona 1981

210.7.32 Amarasiri Weeraratne, "Visuddhimagga and Vimuttimagga", Buddhist 53.11-12, 1983, 22-24

210.7.33 Damien Keown, "Morality in the Visuddhimagga", JIABS 6.1, 1983, 61-75

210.7.33.1 Theodore Mark Bushong, The Via Mystica and Mystical Experience: A Comparative Study of The Cloud of Unknowing and The Path of Purification (Visuddhimagga). Ph.D.Thesis, Northwestern University 1985; Ann Arbor 1986

210.7.33.1.5 Baidyanath labh, Panna: a Philosophical Analysis with special reference to the Visuddhimagga. 1987. Summarized in RBS 83-84

210.7.33.2 Richard Gombrich, "Two notes on Visuddhimagga IX", JPTS 12, 1988, 169-172

210.7.34 Lance S. Cousins, "The stages of Christian mysticism and Buddhist purification--Interior Castle of St. Teresa of Avia and the Path of Purification of Buddhaghosa", Yogi and Mystic 103-120

210.7.35 Baidyanath Labh, Panna in Early Buddhism (with special reference to Visuddhimagga). Delhi 1991

210.7.36 Atul N. Sinha, "Buddhaghosa on the eradication of defilements", JRS 19.1, 1991, 60-63 

210.7.37 Vyanjana, Theravada Buddhist Ethics with special reference to Visuddhimagga. Calcutta 1992

210.7.37.4 Sections translated in TMW 43-49

210.7.37.5 Edited Igatpuri 1998. Two volumes.

210.7.38 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 111-173

210.7.39 Gyana Ratna Sraman, "Loving kindness meditation in the Visuddhimagga", JIBSt 23.1, 2004, 15-19

210.7.40 Index to the Visuddhimagga. Cp. Y. Ousaka and M. Yamazaki. Oxford 2004

210.7.45 David L. McMahan, "Meditation in the Visuddhimagga", EnBuddhism 510-511

210.7.48 Matthew Flickstein, The Meditator's Atlas. A Road Map of the Inner World. Boston 2007

210.7.50 Steven Collins, "Remarks on the Visuddhimagga and on its treatmen tof the memory of former dwellings", JIP 37, 2009, 449-532


       8.Yamaka Atthakatha

See a210.9:16-17. e11.1:2,5. e210.1:16,18. e210.2:2-7

210.8.1 Summarized by Karen C. Lang. EnIndPh9, 2003, 212-215

210.8.5 Ramesh Prasad, "Treatment of rupakkhanda in the Yamakappakarana", Dhammasangani 257-270


       9.General

See t21.1.3. d175.24.30.1

210.9.1 Thomas Foulkes, "Buddhaghosa", IA 19, 1890, 105-122

210.9.2 B.C.Law, "A note on Buddhaghosa's commentaries", JASBE n.s. 15, 1919, 107-121

210.9.3 B.C.Law, "Buddhaghosa's visits to Ceylon and Burma and his reminiscences of the island of Lanka", JBRS 8.1, 1923, 29ff.

210.9.3.1 B.C.Law, Life and Work of Buddhaghosa. Calcutta Oriental Series 3. Calcutta 1923; Delhi 1976

210.9.4 Pe Maung Tin, "Buddhaghosa", JBurmaRS 12, 1922, 14-20

210.9.5 Pe Maung Tin, "La legende de Buddhaghosa", JRAS 1923, 265-269

210.9.6 Louis Finot, "The legend of Buddhaghosa", JDL 11, 1924, 65-86

210.9.7 T.W.Rhys Davids, "Buddhaghosa", ERE 2, 1926, 885-887

210.9.8 B.M.Barua, "Two Buddhaghosas", IC 1, 1934-35, 294-295

210.9.8.1 D.D.Kosambi, "On the life of Buddhaghosa", IHQ 16, 1940, 871

210.9.9 Adikaram, Early History of Buddhism in Ceylon. Migoda (Puswella) Ceylon 1946

210.9.10 B.C.Law, Buddhaghosa, Bombay 1946

210.9.11 Edward Conze, "Buddhaghosa's meditation on death", MW 30, 1955: 15, 54

210.9.12 Jothiya Dhirasekera, "Buddhaghosa and the tradition of the First Council", UCR 15, 1957, 167-181

210.9.13 N.A.Jayawickrama, "Buddhaghosa and the traditional classifications of the Pali canon", UCR 17, 1959, 1-17

210.9.14 Anand Kasusalyayana, "Pali authors Nagasena, Buddhadatta, Buddhaghosa, and Dhammapala", 2500 Years 206-217

210.9.15 P.V.Bapat, Karana-sampatti. PKGCV II, 6-8

210.9.16 Jnanakirti Sraman, "The commentaries of Buddhaghosa", MB 76, 1968, 214-217

210.9.17 Dilip Kumar Banerjee, "The Pali Atthakathas--an estimate", SMFV 359-372

210.9.18 D.J.Kalupahana, "Buddhaghosa and the definition of 'cause' (paccaya)", Vidyodaya 13, 1970, 170-172

210.9.19 B.C.Law, "Buddhaghosa", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 404-417

210.9.20 Noel Sheth, "The 'positions of mastery' and the 'deliverances'", Indica 11, 1974, 23-32

210.9.21 A.Hirakawa, "The meaning of dharma and abhidharma", IEB 159-176

210.9.22 Lallanji Gopal, "Buddhaghosa on araghatta", ITaur 8-9, 1980-81, 187-192

210.9.23 C.V.Udaya Sankara, "The great author of summaries--contribution of Buddhaghosa", CBWTC 129-138

210.9.24 Metteyya, "The fetters and Buddhaghosa's simile of the calf-pen", SKGIB 73-76

210.9.25 Friedgard Lottermoser, Quoted Verse Passages in the Works of Buddhaghosa: Contributions towards the Study of the Lost Sihalatthakatha Literature. Gottingen 1982

210.9.26 K.R.Norman, "An epithet of nibbana". in Sramana Vidya: Studies in Buddhism (Prof. Jagannath Upadhyaya Commemoration Volume (Sarnath 1987), 23-31. Reprinted in KRNCP 3, 193-210.

210.9.26.5 Nobuchiyo Odani, "The transition of dharma-concept in Buddhism from Buddhaghosa to Bu ston", OG 41, 1988, 9-11

210.9.27 Diane Collinson and Robert Wilkinson, Buddhaghosa section, 350P, 1994

210.9.28 C.V.Udaya Sankar, "Buddhaghosa's nativity", AHRS 39, 1995, 57-62

210.9.30 Rajesh Ranjan, "Buddhaghosa's interpretation of proper names", PBh 7, 1996, 186-192

210.9.32 Yang Gyu An, "Buddhaghosa's view of the Buddha's lifespan", BS 29, 2000, 129-147

210.9.34 Kate Crosby, "Uddis and Acikh. Buddhaghosa on the inclusion of the Sikkhapada in the Pabbajja ceremony", JIP 28.5-6, 2000, 461-477

210.9.37 Nalini Balbir, "A propos d'une Vie de Buddhaghosa", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 19, 2001, 343-352

210.9.40 John S. Strong, "Buddhaghosa", EnB 1, 2001, 75

210.9.45 Malini Balbir, "Three Pali works revisited", JPTS 29, 2007, 331-364

210.9.50 C.V.Udayaka Sarkar, "Buddhoghosa's nativity and his activities in South India", QJMS 99.3-4, 2008, 75-80

210.9.60 Rupert Gethin, "Was Buddhaghosa a Theravadin? Buddhist identity in the Pali commentaries and chronicles”, HTT 1-66


211.Buddhadatta (425)

       1.Abhidhammavatara (Theravada) (NCat I, 289)

211.1.1 Edited, with Buddhadatta's Ruparupavibhaga, by Ambulangoda Polvatte Buddhadatta in Buddhadatta's Manuals. PTS 79, 1915, 1928, 1930

211.1.1.5 Edited in Burmese script. Rangoon 1915, 1925

211.1.1.8 Edited with Anuruddha's Namarupapariccheda by Polvate Buddhadatta Nayakathera. Colombo 1954

211.1.2 H.S.Cooray, "Abhidhammavatara", EnBud 1.1, 1963, 52-53

211.1.2.1 Edited in Khmer script. Bangkok 1970

211.1.2.2 Edited in Burmese script, with Sumangala's, Abhidhammatthavikasini and Tika. Two volumes. Rangoon 1977, 1978

211.1.3 Edited and translated by Mahesh Tiwari. Delhi 1987

211.1.4 Steven Collins, "A Buddhist debate about the self, and remarks on Buddhism in the work of Derek Parfit and Galen Strawson", JIP 25, 1997, 467-493

211.1.4.5 Edited with Anuruddha's Namarupapariccheda and Paramatthavinicchaya and Dharmapala's Saccasankhepa. Igatpuri 1998

211.1.5 Summarized by Lance S. Cousins in EnIndPh9, 2003, 217-254


       2.Ruparupavibhaga (Theravada)

See e211.1.1; 211.1.1:4.5, 8

211.2.1 Binayendra Nath Chaudhury, "Abhidharma terminology in the Ruparupavibhaga", OH 27.1, 1979 - 30.2, 1982. Reprinted as CalSktCol Research Series 113, 1983. Includes edition of text. Summary contained in the volume reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 254-255

211.2.2 Edited and translated by Dipak Kumar Barua. MB 100, 1992, 182-198. Reprinted Calcutta 1995

211.2.3 Translated by R. H. B. Exell. JPTS 16, 1992, 1-12


       3.General

See a210.9.14

211.3.1 S.Jambunathan, "Buddhadatta", JOR 2, 1928, 111-117

211.3.2 L.R.Goonaratne, "Buddhadatta", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 395-397

211.3.3 Binayendra Chaudhury, "Life and works of Buddhadatta", JDPaliUC 4, 1987-88, 72-80

 
 

212.Author Unknown (425)

       1.Tarkasastra

See a174.12.3

212.1.1 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in HIL 267-269. This reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 256-257

212.1.2 Reconstructed into Sanskrit by Giuseppe Tucci in PDBTL, 80 pp.

212.1.3 Boris Vassilieff, "'Ju-shih Lun'--a logical treatise ascribed to Vasubandhu", BSOAS 8, 1935-37, 1013-1038

212.1.4 Cf. Warder 416-419


213.Author Unknown (425)

       1.Bodhisattvabuddhanusmrtisamadhisutra (T.414; K.60)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 107


213A.Samantabhadra (425)

       1.Jinasatalamkara (Jain)(NCat VII, 270-271)


       2.Jivasiddhi (Jain)(NCat VII, 296)


       3.Gandhahastimahabhasya on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra (NCat V, 309; VIII, 79-80)

213A.3.1 Aptamimamsa (or Devagamastotra) section edited, with Vasunandin Siddhantika's Devagamavrtti, by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905

213A.3.2 Aptamimamsa edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Astasati and Vidyananda's Aptapariksa, by Gajadharalal Jain. SJGM 7-8, 1914

213A.3.3 Aptamimamsa edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Astasati, Vidyananda's Astasahasri and Laghusamantabhadra's Visamatatparya, by Vamsidhara. Bombay 1915

213A.3.4 Aptamimamsa edited by Jayacandra. Bombay 1923

213A.3.5 Aptamimamsa edited, with Samantabhadra's Yuktyanusasana, in SS

213A.3.6 Aptamimamsa edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Astasati, Vidyananda's Astasahasri, and Yasovijaya's Tatparyanirnaya. Ahmedabad 1937

213A.3.6.1 Edited with editor's Tattvadipika by Udaya Chandraq Jain. Varanasi 1975

213A.3.6.2 Edited by Acarya Vidyasagara. Varanasi 1985

213A.3.7 Aptamimamsa edited by Jugal Kishore Mukhtar. Varanasi 1967, 1978; Sonagira Datiya 1989

213A.3.8 Aptamimamsa edited and translated, with an edition of Akalanka's Astasati by Nagin J. Shah. Ahmedabad 1999

213A.3.10 Aptamimamsa edited by Sarathchandra Ghoshal. New Delhi 2002

213A.3.12 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh11, 2006, 140-154


       4.Yuktyanusasana (Jain)

See e213.3.5

213A.4.1 Edited by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905

213A.4.2 Edited, with Vidyananda's Tika, by Indralala and Srilala. MDJG 25, 1919

213A.4.6 Summarized by Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh11, 2006, 154-158


       4A.Svayambhustotra

213A.4A.1 Edited and translated by Devendra Kkumar Goyal. New Delhi 2000


       5.General

213A.5.1 K.B.Pathak, "Santaraksita's reference to Kumarila's attacks on Samantabhadra and Akalankadeva", ABORI 11.2, 1929, 155-164

213A.5.2 K.B.Pathak, "On the date of Samantabhadra", ABORI 11, 1929, 149-154

213A.5.3 Jagalkishor Mukhtar, "Samantabhadra's date and Dr. Pathak", ABORI 15, 1933-34, 67-88

213A.5.4 D.G.Mahajan, "Acharya Samantabhadra and Pataliputra", JainA 14, 1948, 36-43

213A.5.5 Daya Krishna, "Advaita before Samkara: a discussion by Samantabhadra", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 144-146

213A.5.6 Fujinage Sin, "Determining which Jaina philosopher was the object of Dharmakirti's criticisms", PEW 50, 2000, 378-384

 
 

214.Author Unknown (433)

        1.Samantapasadikasutra (T.1462)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 257

214.1.1 Studied by M. Takakusu in JRAS 1896, 415-439


214A.Dharmaksèma (385-433)

         1.General

214A.1.1 Jinhua Chen, "The Indian Buddhist-missionary Dharmaksema (385-433): a new dating of his arrival oin Guzang and of his translations", TP 90, 2004, 215-263


215.Ullangha (440)

       1.Pratityasamutpada

215.1.1 Restored from Chinese to Sanskrit by V.V.Gokhale. Bonn, Frankfurt-am-Main 1930

215.1.2 Summarized by Marek Major. EnIndPh9, 2003, 257-261

 
 

216.Author Unknown (440)

       1.Anyunatvapurnatvanirdesaparivartasutra (K.490 = T.668 = N.524)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 261-262


217.Author Unknown (450)

       1.Anantamukhaparisodhanirdesasutra (T.310(2))


218.Author Unknown (450)

       1.Mahamayasutra (T.383)

218.1.1 Hubert Durt, "The meeting of the Buddha with Maya in the Trayastrimsa heaven. Examination of the Mahamaya Sutra and its quotations in the Shijiupu (1)", JICPBS 11, 2007, 266-309

218.1.3 Hubert Durt, "The post-nirvana meeting of the Buddha with Maya: examination of the Mahamayasutra andits quotations in the Shijiapu", JICPBS 12, 20-0-8, 1-35


220.Vatsyayana or Paksilasvamin (450)

       1.(Nyaya)Bhasya on Gautama's Nyayasutras

See a48.1:96.1, 120. e48.1:4,6,9,14,19,35,36,38,40,48,50,58,67,70,88,92,101. et48.1:51, 138.8. t48.1:7,25,63,66,98

220.1.1 Ernst Windisch, Über das Nyayabhasya. Leipzig 1888

220.1.2 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Vatsyayana, author of the Nyayabhasya", IA 44, 1915, 82-88

220.1.3 M. Spitzer, Begriffsuntersüchungen zum Nyayabhasya. Kiel 1926

220.1.4 O. Strauss, "Eine alte Formel der Samkhya-Yoga-Philosophie bei Vatsyayana", BZLGI 358-368

220.1.5 Saileswar Sen, "The nature of sabdapramana in Vatsyayana's Nyayabhasya", PQ 8, 1932-33, 184-191

220.1.6 Hari Mohan Bhattacharya, "The conception of the soul in the Nyaya system", PQ 11, 1935-36, 156-163

220.1.7 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "A note on the date of Vatsyayana", JOR 13, 1939, 140-142

220.1.8 Sadhu Ram, "References to Samkhya theories in Vatsyayana's Nyayabhasya", ALB 22.1-2, 1958, 8-24

220.1.9 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "The doctrine of Nyayabhasa", CR 152, 1959, 69-73

220.1.10 Anantlal Thakur, "Vatsyayana and the Vaisesika system", VIJ 1.1, 1963, 78-86

220.1.11 Gerhard R.F. Oberhammer, "Paksilasvamin's introduction to his Nyayabhasya", Asian Studies (Philippines) 2.3, 1964, 302-322

220.1.12 T.K.Gopalaswamy Iyengar, "The place of the Vedas in Vatsyayana's Nyayabhasya", BKBCV 131-138

220.1.13 Kamalesvar Bhattacharya, "A note on the term yoga in Nyayabhasya and Nyayavarttika on I.1.29", ITaur 2, 1974, 39-44

220.1.14 Selections translated in HTR 109-110

220.1.15 Summarized by Karl H. Potter. EnIndPh2, 1977, 239-274

220.1.16 S.D.Joshi, "The text of Nyayabhasya on the Nyayasutra I.1.5", MO 14, 1981, 21-27

220.1.17 Gerhard Oberhammer, Wahrheit und Transzendenz. Wien 1984

220.1.18 Edited, with Sudarsanacarya's Prasannapada, by Dwarika Das Shastri. Varanasi 1986

220.1.19 Masanobu Nozawa, "A problem of samsaya theory of the early Nyaya-Vaisesika", JIBSt 35.1, 1986, 6-11

220.1.19.5 Portions translated, with passages from Uddyotakara, Santaraksita, and Kamalasila, in Matthew Kapstein, Self and aPersonal Identity in Indian Buddhist Scholasticism: a Philosophical Investigation. Ph.D.Thesis, Brown University 1987

220.1.20 Eli Franco and Karin Preisedanz, "Bhavadasa's interpretation of Mimamsasutra I.1.4 and the date of the Nyayabhasya", BIS 8, 1995, 81-86

220.1.21 Ratna Datta Sharma, "Vatsyayana's threefold procedure of philosophical analysis", EssInP 615-632

220.1.25 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 365-372

220.1.28 Koji Ezaki, "The refutation of the Buddhist theory of momentariness in the Nyayabhasya", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 238

220.1.32 Brendon S. Gillon, "Obversion and contrapositionin the Nyayabhasya", LECI 167-182


221.Bhartrhari (450)

       1.Vakyapadiya or Trikandi and Vrtti thereon

See a47.16.114; 47.16.114; 221.1:200, 317; 268.10.38; 268.10.9; 369.7.21; 554.4.1; 616.1.4

221.1.1 F.Kielhorn, "The concluding verses of the second or Vakyakanda of Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", IA 3, 1874, 285-287. Reprinted in Wilhelm Rau (ed.), Franz Kielhorn, Kleine Schriften, mit einer Auswahl der epigraphischen Aufsatze, Wiesbaden 1969

221.1.2 G. Buhler, "Über die Erlklarung des Wortes agama in Vakyapadiya III.6", ZDMG 36, 1882, 653-654

221.1.3 F.Kielhorn, "On the grammarian Bhartrhari", IA 12, 1883, 226-227. Reprinted in W.Rau (ed.), Kleine Schriften (see 1 above), 185-186

221.1.4 Edited, with Helaraja's Prakirnaprakasa on Book III and Punyaraja's Prakasa on Books I and II, by Ramakrishna Sastri Patavardhana, Gangadhara Sastri Manavalli, Ramachandra Sastri Kotbhaskara and Gosvami Damodara Sastri. BenSS 6, 2 vols, 1884-1937

221.1.5 K.B.Pathak, "Bhartrhari and Kumarila", JBBRAS 18, 1890-94, 213-238

221.1.6 K.B.Pathak, "Was Bhartrhari a Buddhist?", JBBRAS 18, 1890-94, 341-349

221.1.7 Ermenegildo La Tersa, "Su Bhartrhari", CIDO 12, Roma 1899, Vol. I, Section Inde et Iran, 201-206

221.1.7.5 Edited, with editor's Ambakartri, by Raghunatha Sarma. Three volumes. SBGM 91, Varanasi 1900, 1963, 1968, 1974.

221.1.8 Edited, with Dravyesa Jha Sarma's Pratyekarthaprakasika, by Sitaramacari Sastri. Vrndavana 1926-27; 1983

221.1.9 K.G.Subrahmanyam, "A note on the Vakyapadiya Tika" JOR 1, 1927, 185-187

221.1.10 Charu Deva Sastri, "Bhartrhari: a critical study with special reference to the Vakyapadiya and its commentaries", PAIOC 5, 1930, 630-655

221.1.11 M. Ramakrishna Kavi, "The discovery of the author's vrtti on the Vakyapadiya", JAHRS 4, 1930, 235-241

221.1.12 Brahmakanda edited, with the Vrtti and Vrsabhadeva's commentary thereon, by Charudeva Sastri. Lahore 1934

221.1.13 Third kanda edited, with Helaraja's Prakirnakaprakasa, by K.Sambasiva Sastri and L.A.Ravi Varma. TSS 116, 1935; 148, 1942

221.1.14 C.Kunhan Raja, "I-tsing and Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", SKACV 1936, 282-298 

221.1.14.1 Jati- and Dravya-samudesas of Book Three edited Calcutta 1936

221.1.15 Brahmakanda edited, with Narain Datta Tripathi's Prakasa, by Avadh Bihari Mishra. Govind Book Series 1, Banaras 1937

221.1.16 Brahmakanda edited by Suryanarayana(sarma) Sukla with editor's commentary. KSS 124, 1937, 1961

221.1.17 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartrhari a Bauddha?", JAU 6, 1936-37, 65-69. Also PAIOC 7, 1937, 254-257

221.1.18 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartrhari, a pre-Samkara Advaitin", JAU 8, 1938, 42-53. Also PAIOC 9, 1937, 548-562

221.1.19 O.P.Rangaswami, "Bhartrhari and Bhagavrtti", JOR 11, 1937, 45-50

221.1.20 Book II, Part 2, Section l edited, with the Vrtti and Punyaraja's Tika, by Charudeva Sastri. Lahore 1939-40; Delhi 1983

221.1.21 K.Madhava Krishna Sharma, "Bhartrhari not a Buddhist: evidence from nearer home", PO 5, 1940, 1-5

221.1.22 K.Madhava Krishna Sharma, "Bhatrhari: a great post-Upanishadic intuitionist", AP 11, 1940, 538-539

221.1.23 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Pratibha as the meaning of a sentence", PAIOC 10, 1941, 326-332

221.1.24 N. Gopala Pillai, "The conception of time according to Bhartrhari", Sri Citra (The Sanskrit College Magazine: Trivandrum) 2.2, 1942, 1-6

221.1.25 K. Madhava Krishna Sarma, "Gleaning from the commentaries on the Vakyapadiya", ABORI 23, 1942, 405-412

221.1.25.1 Krishnakanta Mishra, "Bhartrhari: his life and work", AUM 24, 1946, 73-81

221.1.26 Jambuvijaya Muni, "On the date of Bhartrhari, the author of the Vakyapadiya", PAIOC 14.1, Summaries 1948, 50-51

221.1.27 H. R. Rangaswami Iyengar, "Bhartrhari and Dinnaga", JBBRAS 26, 1951, 147-149

221.1.28 Sadhu Ram, "Bhartrhari's date", JGJRI 9, 1952, 135-152

221.1.29 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartrhari as a Mimamsaka", BDCRI 14, 1952, 1-16. Also DCRIB 14, 1952-53, 1-15

221.1.30 Satya Vrat Sastri, "Bhartrhari's conception of time", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 244. ABORI 39, 1958, 68-78. Revised version in EOI 165-190

221.1.31 J. M. Shukla, "The concept of time according to Bhartrhari", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 379-384

221.1.32 Jean Filliozat, "À propos de la religion de Bhartrhari", Silver Jubilee Volume of the Zinbun-Kagaku Kenkyusyo, Kyoto University, 1954, 116-120

221.1.33 Hajime Nakamura, "Tibetan citations of Bhartrhari's verses and the problem of his date", SIBSY 122-136

221.1.34 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartrhari's interpretation of 'graham sammarsti' and 'pasuna yajeta'", JOR 25, 1955-56, 74-78. Also PAIOC 18, 1958, 185-188

221.1.35 Gaurinath Sastri, "Absolute consciousness as Bhartrhari views it", PAIOC 19, Summaries 1955, 144-145

221.1.36 C.T.Kenghe, "Bhartrhari's commentary on the Vakyapadiya karikas: its nature and extent", PAIOC 19, Summaries 1955, 47-48

221.1.37 Gaurinath Sastri, "Philosophy of Bhartrhari", JASBe 22, 1956, 71-74

221.1.38 Sadhu Ram, "Authorship of some karikas and fragments ascribed to Bhartrhari", JGJRI 13, 1956, 51-80

221.1.39 Satya Vrat, "Conception of space (dik) in the Vakyapadiya", JASBe 23, 1957, 21-26. Revised version in EOI 205-215

221.1.40 P.S.Rao, "Bhartrhari", PB 62, 1957, 347-352

221.1.41 C.Ramachari, "Renunciation, the final import of the Satakatraya of Bhartrhari", JMysoreU 18, 1958-59, 13-20

221.1.42 Satya Vrat, "Conception of time according to Bhartrhari", ABORI 39, 1958, 68-78. Revised EOI 165-190

221.1.43 Gaurinath Sastri, The Philosophy of Word and Meaning. Calcutta 1959

221.1.44 K. Kunjunni Raja, "Bhartrhari's list of sentence-definitions", PAIOC 21, Summaries 1959, 197-198

221.1.45 Hajime Nakamura, "Bhartrhari the scholar", IIJ 4, 1960, 282-305

221.1.47 Wilhelm Rau, "Über sechs Handschriften des Vakyapadiya", Oriens 15, 1962, 374-398

221.1.48 E.R.Sreekrsna Sarma, "Some aspects of Bhartrhari's  philosophy", SVUOJ 5, 1962, 37-42

221.1.49 Book Three, part I edited, with Helaraja's commentary, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. DCPGRIMS 21, 1963, 1971

221.1.50 Brahmakanda edited, with Vrtti and editor's commentary, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Varanasi 1963

221.1.52 E.R.Sreekrishna Sarma, "The philosophy of Sanskrit gender", PAIOC 22, Summaries 1963, 127

221.1.53 Hemanta Kumar Ganguli, Philosophy of Logical Construction. Calcutta 1963

221.1.54 Santi Bhiksu Sastri, "Agamasamuccaya alias Vakyapadiya-brahmakanda of Bhartrhari, translated and annotated", WZKM 12.1, 1963, 191-228

221.1.55 Wilhelm Rau, "Handschriften des Vakyapadiya. Zweiter Teil", Oriens 17, 1964, 182-198

221.1.56 Kapila Deva, "Bhartrhari's discussion on samanadhikaranya", ALB 28, 1964, 41-54

221.1.57 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartrhari on vyakarana as a means of attaining moksa", ALB 28, 1964, 112-131. Summary in CIDO 26, Summaries 1964, 129

221.1.58 Kapila Deva, "Bhartrhari on the relation between upamana and upameya", VIJ 2, 1964, 87-92. Also IL 25, 1964, 229-233 and Baburam Saksena Felicitation Volume, Poona, 1965, 229-233

221.1.59 Madeleine Biardeau, Théorie de la connaissance et philosophie de la parole dans le brahmanisme classique. Paris 1964

221.1.60 V.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartrhari on apabhramsa", VOJ 2, 1964, 242-246

221.1.60.1 Edited with Harivrsabha's Vrtti. Paris 1964

221.1.61 Brahmakanda translated, with the Vrtti, by K.A.Subramania Iyer.  DCBCSJS 26, Poona 1965

221.1.62 Brahmakanda edited and translated into French, with the Vrtti, by Madeleine Biardeau. Paris 1964

221.1.63 Kapil Deva, "Upamana, upameya and samanyavacana according to the Vakyapadiya of Bhartrhari", VIJ 3, 1965, 19-28

221.1.64 V.Anjaneya Sharma, "The sabdabrahman and the prasthanatrayi", SVUOJ 8, 1965, 31-36

221.1.65 Edited by Vamana Balakrishna Bhagavat. GSPM, Poona 1965

221.1.66 Edited by K.V.Abhyankar and V.P.Limaye. UPSPS 2, Poona 1965

221.1.67 Edited, with Vrtti and Vrsabhadeva's Paddhati, by K.A. Subramania Iyer. DCPGRIMS 32, Poona 1966

221.1.68 K.A.Subrahmania Iyer, "Bhartrhari on dhvani", ABORI 46, 1966, 49-65

221.1.69 Kapil Dev, "Bhartrhari on samanadhikarana taddhitavrtti", PAIOC 23.1, Summaries 1966, 62-65

221.1.70 Hemanta Kumar Ganguly, "Metaphysics of meaning", Anviksa 2.1, 1967, 38-48; 2.2, 1967, 13-24; 3.1, 1968, 61-72; 3.2, 1969, 71-84

221.1.71 Gaurinath Sastri, "Monism of Bhartrhari", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 319-323

221.1.72 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartrhari on the primary and secondary meanings of words", IL 29.1, 1968, 97-112

221.1.73 Ashok Aklujkar, "Two textual studies of Bhartrhari", JAOS 89, 1969, 547-562

221.1.74 K.A.Subramania Iyer, Bhartrhari: A Study of the Vakyapadiya. Poona 1969

221.1.75 Ashok Aklujkar, The Philosophy of Bhartrhari's Trikandi. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1970

221.1.76 Ashok Aklujkar, "Ancient Indian semantics", ABORI 51, 1970, 11-29

221.1.77 Brahmakanda edited by Satyakama Varma. New Delhi 1970

221.1.78 Kalasamuddesa section of Book Three translated, with Helaraja's commentary, by P. Sarveswara Sharma.Delhi 1970

221.1.79 Hajime Nakamura, "The concept of Brahman in Bhartrhari's philosophy", JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 135-150

221.1.80 Books I and II edited and translated by K. Raghavan Pillai. Delhi 1971

221.1.81 Wilhelm Rau, Die Handschriftliche Überlieferung des Vakyapadiya und seiner Kommentare. AMGG 1971.1, Munchen 1971

221.1.82 Ashok Aklujkar, "The number of karikas in Trikandi, Book I", JAOS 9, 1971, 510-513

221.1.83 Book III, Part l translated by K.A.Subramania Iyer. DCBCSJS 71, Poona 1971

221.1.84 Ashok Aklujkar, "Nakamura on Bhartrhari", IIJ 13, 1971, 161-175

221.1.85 Ashok Aklujkar, "The authorship of the Vakyapadiya-Vrtti", WZKSOA 16, 1972, 181-198

221.1.86 Hajime Nakamura, "Bhartrhari and Buddhism", JGJRI 22, 1972, 395-406

221.1.87 M.S.Bhat, "Two passages from the Vakyapadiya", JUB 42, 1973, 45-58

221.1.88 John Brough, "I-Ching on the Sanskrit grammarians", BSOAS 37, 1973, 248-260

221.1.89 Hajime Nakamura, "Buddhist influence upon the Vakyapadiya", JGJRI 29, 1973, 367-388

221.1.90 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Notes on a karika ascribed to Bhartrhari", JGJRI 29, 1973, 203-210

221.1.91 Book III, Part II edited, with Helaraja's Prakirnaprakasa, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Poona 1973

221.1.92 Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, "What is the atyadbhutavrtti (miraculous course of action) in the Vakyapadiya?", VIJ 12, 1974, 351-360

221.1.93 Book III, part II translated, with Helaraja's Prakirnaprakasa, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Delhi 1974

221.1.94 Albrecht Wezler, "Ein bisher missverstandener Vers in der Vakyapadiyavrtti", MSS 32, 1974, 159-164

221.1.95 Ashok Aklujkar, "The authorship of the Vakya-kanda-tika", CDSFV 165-188

221.1.96 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartrhari on taddhita formations involving comparison", CDSFV 241-257

221.1.97 Karunesha Shukla, "Bhartrhari and Advaitism", PAIOC 27, Summaries 1974, 319

221.1.98 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Bhartrhari on the number of words to be compounded simultaneously", JDSUD 3, 1974, 31-38. Also JGJRI 35.1-2, 1979, 115-130

221.1.99 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Kakataliya--a grammatical analysis by Bhartrhari", SVUOJ 17, 1974, 93-100

221.1.100 Virendra Shastri, Critical Study of Sambandha Sammudisya Vakyapadiya in the light of Helaraja's Commentary. Ph.D.Thesis, Kurukshetra University 1975

221.1.101 Virendra Sharma, "Is the eternal verbum of Bhartrhari a dynamic principle?", VIJ 13, 1975, 337-350

221.1.102 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "On some formations involving luk-elision", VIJ 13, 1975, 42-49

221.1.102.1 C.L.Prabhakar, "The pathway in Bhartrhari", BhV 35, 1975, 62-69

221.1.103 Harold G. Coward, Bhartrhari. Boston 1976

221.1.104 Selections translated in HTR 224-237

221.1.105 Satyakam Varma, "Sabdapurva yoga", SVSI 1976, 238-247

221.1.106 Satyakama Varma, "Linguistic contents in Vakyapadiya", SVSI 1976, 238-247

221.1.107 Harold G. Coward, "Language as revelation", IndPQ 3, 1976, 224-237

221.1.108 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Yugapadadhikaranavacana in dvandva--a critical appraisal", VIJ 14, 1976, 82-92

221.1.109 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "The negative compound in Sanskrit--a semantic analysis by Bhartrhari", ALB 40, 1976, 1-40

221.1.110 Satyakam Varma, "Tradition and Bhartrhari", SVSI 1976, 185-200

221.1.111 Satyakam Varma, "Bhartrhari: works and achievements", SVSI 1976, 201-223

221.1.111.1 Jan E.M. Houben, "Bhartrhari's perspectivism (1): the Vrtti and Bhartrhari's perspectivism in the first kanda of the Vakyapadiya", BOr 317-358

221.1.112 Book II translated by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Delhi 1977, 1983

221.1.113 Edited, with word index, by Wilhelm Rau. AKM 42.4, 1977

221.1.114 Wilhelm Rau, "Zwei neue Vakyapadiya-Handschriften", ZII 2, 1977, 114-123

221.1.115 Wilhelm Rau, "Metrical peculiarities in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 263-269

221.1.116 Ashok Aklujkar, "The concluding verses of Bhartrhari's Vakya-kanda", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 9-26

221.1.117 S.D.Joshi, "Bhartrhari's concept of pratibha: a theory on the nature of language acquisition", CVVGP 1977, 71-76

221.1.118 P. Thieme, "Bhartrhari's Allegorie vom Schiksalwurfelspiel", BIEW 511-522

221.1.119 H.S.Ursekar, "Bhartrhari and Omar Khayyam", Bhavan's Journal 1977. Reprinted in HSUEI 85-94

221.1.120 Ashok Aklujkar, "The number of verses in Trikandi, Bk. II", ALB 42, 1978, 142-167

221.1.120.1 Lawrence Ward Davis, Studies in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Massachusetts 1978; Ann Arbor 1980

221.1.121 Ashok Aklujkar, "Emendation of some verses in Bhartrhari's Trikandi", WZKSOA 23, 1979, 142-167

221.1.121.0 Hans G. Herzberger and Radika Herzberger, "Bhartrhari's paradox", JIP 9, 1981, 3-82. Reprinted 311-328

221.1.121.1 Sarveshvara Sharma Peri, "The idea of power (sakti) in the Vakyapadiya", BhV 41.1-2, 1981, 75-79

221.1.121.2 Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, "Punyaraja's Tika on the Vakyakanda of the Vakyapadiya of Bhartrhari", BhV 42, 1982,1-21

221.1.121.3 Harold Coward, "Time (kala) in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", JIP 10, 1982, 277-287

221.1.122 Giovanni Bandini, "Die Erörterung der Person. Bhartrharis Purusarthasamuddesa and Helaraja's Prakasa zum ersten Male übersetzt und mit einem Kommentar versehen", ZDMG 132, 1982, 150-173

221.1.122.1 S. Ramaswamy, "Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya and Raja Rao's The Writer and the Word", TL 5.1, 1982, 29-37

221.1.122.2 K.A.Subramania Iyer, The Vakyapadiya: Some Problems. Poona 1982

221.1.123 K.Krishnamoorthy, "Bhartrhari's idea of grammar", JOI 33, 1983, 11-16

221.1.124 R.C.Pande, "Sabda--as presented in the Mahabhasyadipika of Bhartrhari" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 298

221.1.124.1 Edited by Jayadeva M. Sukla. LDS 98, 1984

221.1.125 Bishnupada Bhattacharya, Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya and Linguistic Monism. Poona 1985

221.1.126 K.K.Mishra, "Bhartrhari's theory of sphota", ITaur 13, 1985-86, 115-122.

221.1.127 Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, "Some problems raised with regard to the concluding verses of the Vakyakanda of Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", BhV 45-47, 1985-87, 1-12

221.1.128 Alex Wayman, "Bhartrhari citations in Kamalasila's commentary on Tattvasamgraha", PWSC 5, 1985, 699-705

221.1.129 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Further remarks on Bhartrhari's Vedic affiliation", StudIndCult 216-223

221.1.130 Radhika Herzberger, Bhartrhari and the Buddhists. Studies of Classical India 8. Dordrecht 1986

221.1.130.1 E.R.Sreekrishna Sarma, "Bhartrhari as an Advaitin",  ALB 50, 1986, 579-585

221.1.131 Dipti S. Tripathi, "Apabhramsa in Sanskrit grammar: an appraisal of Bhartrhari's view", AligarhJOS 3, 1986, 81-92

221.1.132 Nandita Bandyopadhyay, Being, Meaning and Proposition: A Comparative Study of Russell and Bhartrhari. Calcutta 1987

221.1.133 Sarvesvara Sharma Peri, "Eight topics which form the subject-matter of the Vakyapadiya", SII 13-14, 1987, 219-234

221.1.134 Peri Sarvesvara Sarma, "What is apaddhara in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", AligarhJOS 4, 1987, 105-118

221.1.135 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Études sur Bhartrhari, I: L'auteur et la date de la Vrtti", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 6, 1988, 105-143

221.1.136 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies in Bhartrhari 2.Bhartrhari und Mimamsa", SII 15, 1989, 101-118

221.1.137 Tandra Patnaik, "Language, thought and communication: an appraisal of Bhartrhari's theory of language", IndPQ 15.2, 1988, 349-368

221.1.138 Tandra Patnaik, "Some reflections on Bhartrhari's notion of sentence meaning", VJP 24.2-25.1, 1988, 118-129

221.1.138.1 Wilhelm Rau, Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya.: Vollstandiger Wortindex zu den mulakarikas. Mainz 1988

221.1.139 Index to Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya. Stuttgart 1988

221.1.139.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Concept of time in the philosophy of Bhartrhari", Darshana 28.1, 1988, 25-36

221.1.140 Ashok Aklujkar, "The number of pramanas according to Bhartrhari", WZKSOA 33, 1989, 151-158

221.1.141 Harold Coward, "Derrida and Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya on the origin of language", PEW 39, 1989, 3-16

221.1.141.0 Harold Coward, "The meaning and power of mantras in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", UnM 165-176

221.1.141.1 Jan E.M. Houben, "The sequencelessness of the signifier in Bhartrhari's theory of language", ITaur 15-16, 1989-90, 119-130

221.1.141.2 A. Possi, Bhartrhari sulla sagezza mondane, sull'amore e sulla rinuncia. (Introduction, Italian translation and notes). Milan 1989

221.1.141.3 Gayatree Roth, "Advaita--metaphysical concept in Bhartrhari and Samkara", VIJ 28, 1990, 121-131

221.1.142 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Some remarks on Bhartrhari's concept of pratibha", JIP 18, 1990, 95-112

221.1.143 Summarized by Ashok Aklujkar. EnIndPh5, 1990, 121-173

221.1.143.1 H.S.Ananthanarayanana, "Bhartrhari on semantics and pragmatics", BDCRI 51-52, 1991-92, 211-220

221.1.144 Harold C. Coward, "'Speech versus writing' in Derrida and Bhartrhari", PEW 41, 1991, 141-162

221.1.144.1 R.C.Dwivedi, "Bhartrhari and Kashmir Saivism", ABORI 72-73, 1991-92, 95-107

221.1.144.5 Jean Filliozat, "A propos de la religion de Bhartrhari", Silver Jubilee Volume of the Zinbun Kagaku-Kenkyuso, (Kyoto University, 1954), 116-120. Translated by M. Shukla as "About the religion of Bhartrhari", RPY 41-46

221.1.145 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "On Bhartrhari's linguistic insight", SktRelSt 3-14

221.1.145.1 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Bhartrhari on sphota and universals", AS 45.1, 1991, 5-18

221.1.146 Brahmakanda edited by Shiv Shankar Avasthi. Varanasi 1990

221.1.146.1 Gaurinath Sastri, The Philosophy of Bhartrhari. Delhi 1991

221.1.147 Wilhelm Rau, Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya II. Text des Palmblatt-Handschrift Trivandrum s.N.532 (=A). Mainz 1991

221.1.148 J.E.M.Houben, "Bhartrhari's samaya/ Helaraja's samketa", JIP 20, 1992, 219- 242

221.1.148.5 Jan E. M. Houben, "Bhartrhari's perspectivism (3): on the structure of the 3rd kanda of the Vakyapadiya", Sambodhi 18, 1992, 1-32

221.1.149 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Études sur Bhartrhari, 4.L'absolu dans le Vakyapadiya et son lien avec le Madhyamaka", AS 46.1, 1992, 56-80

221.1.150 Tandra Patnaik, "Intention and convention in communication--understanding Bhartrhari", IndPQ 19, 1992, 335-356

221.1.151 Translated by K. Subrahmanyam. Delhi 1992

221.1.152 Saroja Bhate and Yashodhara Kar, Word Index to the Vakyapadiya of Bhartrhari. Delhi 1992

221.1.152.1 Tandra Patnaik, "Word and the world--Bhartrhari and Dinnaga", VJP 28.2, 1992, 1-13 

221.1.152.2 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "El concepto de intuision (pratibha) en la filosofia del lanuaje de Bhartrhari", BAFO 28, 1992, 33-50

221.1.153 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies in Bhartrhari, 5:Bhartrhari and Vaisesika", AS 47.1, 1993, 75-94

221.1.154 Akikho Akamatsu, "Pratibha and the meaning of the sentence in Bhatrhari's Vakyapadiya", AS 47.1, 1993, 37-44

221.1.155 Ashok Aklujkar, "Once again on the authorship of the Trikandi-Vrtti", AS 47.1, 1993, 45-58

221.1.155.1 Ashok Aklujkar, "An introduction to the study of Bhartrhari", AS 47.1, 1993, 7-36

221.1.156 Saroja Bhate, "Bhartrhari on language and reality", AS 47.1, 1993, 67-74

221.1.156.1 R.C.Dwivedi, "Bhartrhari and Kashmir Saivism", Corpus 240-246

221.1.157 Masaaki Hattori, "Kamalasila's interpretation of some verses in the Vakyakanda of Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", AS 47.1, 1993, 135-140

221.1.158 Yoshichika Honda, "Bhatrhari's definition of kriya", AS 47.1, 1993, 141-154

221.1.159 Jan Houben, "Who are Bhartrhari's padadarsins? On the development of Bhartrhari's philosophy of language", AS 47.1, 1993, 155-170

221.1.160 John D. Kelly, "Meaning and the limits of analysis: Bhartrhari and the Buddhists, and post-structuralism", AS 47.1, 1993, 171-194

221.1.161 Chr. Lindtner, "Linking up Bhartrhari and the Bauddhas", AS 47.1, 1993, 195-21

221.1.161.1 Chr. Lindtner, "A note on the Vakyapadiya, 2.484", ALB 57, 1993, 1-6

221.1.162 G.B.Palsule, "Points of agreement and difference between the Vakyapadiya and the Mahabhasya-Dipika in the matter of sphota", AS 47.1, 1993, 215-220

221.1.163 Anna Radicchi, "Vivaksa in the Vakyapadiya", AS 47.1, 1993, 221-234

221.1.165 Wilhelm Rau, "A new manuscript of the Vakyapadiya-mula karikas", SII 18, 1993, 213-216

221.1.165.1 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Bhartrhari and Mimamsa", StudinM 371-388

221.1.165.1.1 Johannes Bronkhorst, "The author of the three centuries (Studies in Bhartrhari, 6)", Vacaspatyam 32-41

221.1.165.2 Harold Coward, "Kumarila's theory of word meaning in relation to the sphota theory of Bhartrhari", StudinM 216-220

221.1.167.3 Pierre-Sylvain Filliozat, "Bhartrhari and tantra", PNRBFV 1994, 463-480

221.1.167.3.1 Jan E.M.Houben, "Bhartrhari's familiarity with Jainism", ABORI 75, 1994: 1-24, 255-256

221.1.167.4 John D. Kelly, "Bhartrhari's gentle erudiction" sakti, apoddhara, samgraha and the task of a grammarian", Vacaspatyam 1994, 88-96

221.1.167.4.5 Satya Pal Narang, "The concept of vivarta in Bhartrhari", SVUOJ 37, 1944, 49-60

221.1.167.5 G. S. Palsule, "Sphota in Bhartrhari's linguistic philosophy", Vacaspatyam 1994, 128-131

221.1.167.6 Tandra Patnaik, Sabda. A Study of Bhartrhari's Philosophy of Language. New Delhi 1994

221.1.167.6.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartrhari's philosophy of relation between word and meaning", JICPR 11.2, 1994, 43-54

221.1.167.8 Jan E.M.Houben, The Sambandha-samudesa (Chapter on Relation) and Bhartrhari's Philosophy of Language, with a Translation of Helaraja's Prakirnaprakasa. Groningen 1995

221.1.168 Toshiya Unebe, "Bhartrhari on yogyata, the natural competency of word to meaning", Vacaspatyam 139-149

221.1.168.0 D.N.Tiwari, "Bhartrharian language, being and cognition", VJP 32.1, 1995-1996, 36-55

221.1.168.1 Gregory M. Bailey, "Bhartrhari's manipulation of the feminine:, IIT 39, 1996, 201-221

221.1.169 Jan E.M. Houben, "Bhartrhari's solution to the Liar and some other paradoxes", JIP 23, 1995, 381-401

221.1.169.5 Natalia Isayeva, From Early Vedanta to Kashmir Shaivism: Gaudapada, Bhartrhari, and Abhinavagupta. Albany, N.Y. 1995

221.1.170 R. Patiraj, "The sphota doctrine of Bhartrhari", IndPQ 22, 1995, 67-74

221.1.171 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies on Bhartrhari, 7: Grammar as the door to liberation", ABORI 76, 1996, 97-106

221.1.171.5 Jan E.M. Houben, "Socio-linguistic attitudes reflect n the work of Bhartrhari and later Grammarians", ISS 157-195

221.1.172 Yoshiyuki Iwasaki, "Bhartrhari and the Vaisesika on space", ITBC 47-66

221.1.173 Hiromi Nakane, "Bhartrhari's concept of sabdajati", JIBSt 45.1, 1996, 1-3

221.1.173.1 K. Kunjunni Raja, "The word and the sentence: two perspectives, Bhartrhari and Wittgenstein", ALB 60, 1996, 267-274

221.1.174 D. N. Tiwari, "Cognition, being, and the possibility of expressions: a Bhartrharian approach", JICPR 14.1, 1996, 65-94

221.1.175 David Carpenter, "Bhartrhari and the Veda", TCon 1997, 17-32

221.1.175.4 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Bhartrhari's philosophy of language: sphotavada and sabdabrahmavada: are they interrelated?", IndBeyond 405-407

221.1.175.5 Gayatri Rath, "Pratibha versus sentence meaning", VIJ 35-36, 1997-98, 109-115

221.1.175.5.5 Srimannarayanmurti, "Bhartrhari: the grammarian", Sahitya Akademi 1997

221.1.175.6 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartrhari's reply to VaiResika's objections to universal as the import of words", Darshana 27.4, 1997, 22-33

221.1.175.7 Ben-Ami Scharfstein;, "Hierarchical idealism: Plotinus/Proclus, Bhartrhari", IndBeyond 439-470

221.1.176 Hiranmoy Banerjee, "Bhartrhari: a modern perspective", EssInP 633-637

221.1.176.5 D. C. Tiwari, "Bhartrhari on language, being and cognition", JJP 10.1, 1998, 27-42

221.1.177 Jan E. M. Houben, "Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya and the ancient Vrtti (1): The Vrtti and Vrsabhadeva's Paddhati on VP 1.46a: atmabhedam/ atmabhedas", ABORI 78, 1998, 177-198; (2): The Vedic background of the author of the Vakyapadiya-vrtti", SII 21,1997, 71-78

221.1.177.1 Jan E. M. Houben, "Bhartrhari's perspecitvism (1): The Vrtti and Bhartrhari's perspectivism in the first kanda of the Vakyapadiya", BOr 317-358

221.1.177.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Possibility of disinterested knowledge--a Bhartrharian approach", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 47-68

221.1.178 Toshiya Unebe, "Bhartrhari's verses cited in the Lankakavatara-vrtti ('Phags pa Langka gshegs pa'i 'grel pa)", JIBSt 46.1, 1998, 19-23

221.1.179 Lachman M. Khubchandrani, "Speech as an ongoing activity (comparing Bhartrhari and Wittgenstein):, IndPQ 26, 1999, 1-18

221.1.180 George Cardona, "Approaching the Vakyapadiya", JAOS 119, 1999, 88ff.

221.1.181 Akihiko Akamatsu, "The two kinds of anumana in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", JIP 27. 1999, 17-22

221.1.182 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies of Bhartrhari 8: Prakrta dhvani and the Samkhya tanmatras", JIP 27, 1999, 23-33

221.1.183 J. E. M. Houben, "The theoretical positions of Bhartrhari and the Respectable Grammarians", RDSO 72, 1999, 101-142

221.1.184 Jan E. M. Houben, "On syntactic and stylistic evidence regarding the authorship of the Vakyapadiya-Vrtti (Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya and the ancient Vrtti 3):, WZKSOA 43, 1999, 167-198

221.1.185 Lachman M. Khubchandani, "Speech as an ongoing activity (comparing Bhartrhari and Wittgenstein)", IndPQ 26, 1999, 1-15

221.1.186 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartrhari on representations (buddhyakara)", DTI 267-28

221.1.187 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartrhari on sakti: the Vaisesika categories as saktis", JIBSt 47.2, 1999, 15-22

221.1.187.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartrhari's arguments on divisibility vs. indivisibility of language", PQJNMU 5.3-4, 1999, 97-130

221.1.188 Ashok Aklujkar, "The epistemological point of view of Bhartrhari", ConK 1-19

221.1.188.5 George Cardona, "Addendum to JAOS 119.1: Interpretation and paraphrase of Vakyapadiya 2.7-8 clarified", JAOS 120, 2000, 234

221.1.188.7 Claus Oetke, "The meaning of verse 25 of the Sambandhasamuddesa and its context", Studia Indologiczny 7, 2000, 301-342

221.1.188.8 R.C.Pande, "Bhartrhari's concept of pratibha", NPVAIC 142-147

221.1.189 Gayatri Rath, Linguistic Philosophy in Vakyapadiya. Delhi 2000

221.1.191 Raghubir Singh, "Sentence-meaning and Bhartrhari", VIJ 37-38, 1999-2000, 59-69

221.1.192 Akiko Akamatsu, "Abhyudaya and nihsreyasah in Bhartrhari", WL 235-248

221.1.193 Ashok Aklujkar, "The word is the world: nondualism in the philosophy of language"", PEW 51, 2001, 452-473

221.1.194 Johannes Bronkhorst, "The peacock's egg: Bhatrhari on language and reality", PEW 51, 2001, 474-491

221.1.194.5 V.K.Chari, "Bhartrhari and dhvani: a clarification", ALB 65, 2001, 89-100

221.1.195 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, Vrttisamuddesa of Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya. A Study. Delhi 2001

221.1.196 Pascale Haag-Bernède, "Conflicting views on the interpretation of Bhartrhari? The case of madhyamapurusa in the Vakyapadiya", ABORI 82, 2001, 233-242

221.1.196.5 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartrhari on A.1.1.68", JIP 29, 2001, 531-543

221.1.196.6 Hideyo Ozawa, "Bhartrhari on pravrtti as the first karaka", Studia Indologiczny 7, 2000, 343-348

221.1.196.8 Toshiya Unebe, "Jnanasribhadra's interpretation of Bhartrhai as found in the Lankavataravrtti", JIP 28, 2000, 329-360

221.1.197 Jan E. M. Houben, "Paradoxe et perspectivisme dans la philosophie de Bhartrhari: langage, pensée et realité", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 19, 2001, 173-199

221.1.198 Terence Parsons, "Bhartrhari on what cannot be said", PEW 51, 2001, 525-534

221.1.200 Sebastian Alackapally, Being and Meaning: Reality and Language. Bhartrhari and Heidegger. Delhi 2002

221.1.201 Sebastian Alackapally, "Being and language meeting ground for Bhartrhari and Heidegger", JD 27, 2002, 193-206. Also WEIP 227-242

221.1.202 P. R. Bhat, "The problem of meaning in Vakyapadiya", PLCIT 63-80

221.1.202.5 Achyutananda Dash, "Bhartrhari: a challenge to the Navya Nyaya theory of linguistic understanding", Subhasini 63-86

221.1.203 Brendan S. Gillon, "Bhartrhari's rule for unexpressed karikas: the problem of control in classical Sanskrit", CardonaFest 93-111

221.1.205 Pascale Haag Bernède, "Conflicting views in the interpretation of Bhartrhari", ITH 425-438

221.1.205.1 Pascale Haag-Bernède, Bhartrhari. Le Samkhyasamuddesa du Vakyapadiya (VP 3.11)(Theorie du nombre) et son commentaire de Prakirnakaprakasa par Helaraja", PICI 73, 2005

221.1.205.5 Kapil Kapoor, "Appearance and reality" significating in Bhartrhari", SLC 149-160

221.1.206 Tandra Patnaik, "Intention and linguistic communication: the Bhartrharian perspective", PLCIT 81-98

221.1.207 R. C. Pradhan, "Grades of holism: Bhartrhari reconsidered", PLCIT 51-62

221.1.208 K.V.Somayajulu, A Critical Study on the Sadhanasamuddesa of Vakyapadiya. Delhi 2002

221.1.209 D. N. Tiwari, "Sentential meaning: Bhartrhari's arguments on the controversy between word-theories (padarthavada) and sentential theory of meaning (vakyarthavada)", JICPR 19.1, 2002, 125-168

221.1.209.1 D. N. Tiwari, "B. K. Matilal and Bhartrhari's logic of translation: a discussion", JICPR 19.2, 2002, 164-172

221.1.210 Toshiya Unebe, "KWIC. Index to the Vakyapadiya, Kanda I", Sambhasa 22, 2002, 1-239

221.1.211 Anirban Dash, "Nature of sabda in Brahmakanda", JGJRI 48-49, 2002-2003, 241-252

221.1.213 Ole Holten Pind, "Did Dignaga and Mallavadin know the olrd Vakya-padiya-vrtti attributed to Bhartrhari?", JIP 31, 2003, 257-270

221.1.214 D.N.Tiwari, "Reply to query by Prof. Daya Krishna, "Has there been a tradition of philosophy initiated by Vakyapadiya or has it been an isolated work?", JICPR 20.2, 2003, 188-192

221.1.214.5 Vincenzo Vergiani, "Two parallel passages in the Mahabhasyatika and the Vakyapadi ya of Bhartrhari", RDSO 77, 2003, 85-94

221.1.214.6 Claus Oetke, "The meaning of verse 25 of the Sambandha-samuddesa and its context", EIPRL 161-202

221.1.214.7 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhratrhari on pravrtti in the first karika", EIPRL 203-228

221.1.214.8 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartrhari on univeral as the import of words", JIAP 43.1-2, 2004, 33-58

221.1.215 Toshiyo Unebe, "The 'grammarian's' objection in Sthiramati's Trimsikabhasya and Bhatrhari's argument on the secondary application of words", TMSR 135-137

221.1.216 D. N. Tiwari, "The query raised by Professor Daya Krishna on the issue of turiya in Bhartrhari", JICPR 22.4, 2005, 261-266

221.1.217 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartrhari's arguments against inference", JIAP 44.1-2, 2005, 1-8

221.1.218 Nirmalya Narayan Chakraborty, "Imaginary dialogue of Bhartrhari and Quine", JICPR 22.3, 2005, 49-60

221.1.220 Pascale Haag (Bernède), "Du nombre grammatical dans les composes sanskrits: le concept d'abhedaikatvasamkhya", HEL 27.1, 2005, 127-152

221.1.228 Akihiko Akamatsu, "Bhartrhari on meaning and form: the second book of the Vakyapadiya, karikas 325-347", Acta Asiatica 90, 2006, 1-13

221.1.229 Jyotish Ch. Basak, "Concept of sphota in Bhartrhari", SPIP 142-159

221.1.229.1 Evgeniya A. Desnitskaya, "Antinomy of one and many in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", AOV 7, 2006, 209-222

221.1.229.3 Bhavatosh Indra Guru, "Vakyartha according to Bhartrhari", JASBe 48.1, 2006, 61-72

221.1.229.5 Chien-hsing Ho, "Sahing the unsayable", PEW 56, 2006, 409-427

221.1.229.7 M. G. Dhadpale, "Vakyapadiya", ABORI 87, 2007, 259-266

221.1.230 Jan E. M. Houben, Rgveda 1.164.23-24 and Bhartrhari's philosophy of language," EMH 711-720

221.1.230.5 Yi Jae Hyung, "On the concepts of existence (bhava) and non-existence (abhava) in Bhartrhari's metaphysics: an attempt to make a new interpretation", SACS 1, 2006, 47-72

221.1.231 Tandra Patnaik, "Eternality of word-meaning relation vi-a-vis contextuality: the Bhartrharian perspective", SPIP 80-89

221.1.232 Tandra Patnaik, Sabda: A Study of Bhartrhari's Philosophy of Language. Delhi 2007

221.1.234 Jae-hyung Yi, "Bhatrhari's negation of causality", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 187-188

221.1.237 Edited and translateed by J. Ouseparapil, Two volukmes. Pune 2005, 2008

221.1.240 David Shulman, "Illumination, imagination, creativity: Rajasekhara, Kuntaka, and Jagannatha on pratibha", JIP 36, 2008, 481-505

221.1.241 Raghbir Singh, "Bhartrharian import of word", VIJ 45-46, 2007-2008, 228-235

221.1.243 Devendra Nath Tiwari, The Central Problems of Bhartrhari's Philosophy. New Delhi 2008

221.1.245 Sthaneshwar Timalsina, "Bhartrhari and Mandana on avidya", JIP 31, 2009, 367-382

221.1.250 Ana Agud, "Comparing Humboldt and Bhartrhari", BLTR 545-556

221.1.251 Akhiko Akamatsu, "Anumana in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", LECI 183-190

221.1.253 Ashok Aklujkar, "Vedic revelation according to Bhartrhari", BLTR 1-98

221.1.254 Ashok Aklujkar, "Grammarians' leaving logic at the door", LBIP 383-402

221.1.256 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Bhartrhari and his Vedic tradition", BLTR 99-418

221.1.258 George Cardona, "Bhartrhari and Patanjali: traditions preserved", BLTR 119-162

221.1.260 Arindam Chakravaftik, "The case of the accusative: contemporary relevancd of Bhartrhari on the karakas", BLTR 448-458

221.1.261 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Does language map reality? Bhartrhari's view", BLTR 205-214

221.1.263 Karunasindhu Das, "Changing approaches to language in Indianschools of thought vis-a-vis Bharrhari's Vakyapadiya", BLTR 291-300

221.1.265 Madhav M. Deshpande, "Revisiting the notion of sista in Bhartrhari", BLTR 163-176

221.1.268 Pierre-Sylvain Filliozat, "Time as power of word according to Bhartrhari", BLTR 215-224

221.1.270 Brendan S. Gillon, "Bhartrhari and the syntax of Sanskrit gerunds", BLTR 433-446

221.1.271 Paolo Giunata, "Gli assunti gnoseolgici de Bhartrhari (Vakyapadiya 1.129-131) coma demonstrazione della definizione Buddhista de kalpana (Pramanavimiscaya 7.7)”, RDSO 32, 2009, 41-58

221.1.272 Jan E. M. Houben, "Bhartrhari as a 'cognitive linguist'", BLTR 523-544

221.1.273 Jan E.M. Houben, "Bhart1rhari and the Jainas", BLTR 383-414

221.1.275 Vladimir P. Ivanov, "Vidya and avidya in Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya", BLTR 253-258

221.1.278 Yoshie Kobayashi, "All words enote the univrsal (jati): Bhartrhari's approach", BLTR 483-498

221.1.281 P. K. Mukhopadhyaya, "Did Bhartrhari give us a philosophy of language?", BLTR 259-80

221.1.284 Hideyo Ogawa, "On Bhartrhari's notion of 'power' (sakti)", BLTR 225-252

221.1.285 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartrhari on unnameable things", LBIP 403-417

221.1.287 Tandra Patnaik, "Thought and language: the Bhartrharian perspective", BLTR 185-204

221.1.289 R. C. Pradhan, "Bhartrhari as a philosopher of language", BLTR 281-290

221.1.291 Anna Radicchi, "Dhvani in Bhartrhari and Abhinavagupta's philosophical works", BLTR 355-382

221.1.293 Yves Ramsier, "ABibliography on Bhartrhari", BLTR 557-615

221.1.294, Navjivan Rastogi, "Vak as pratyavamarsa: Bhartrhari from an Abhinava perspective", BLTR 301-342

221.1.297 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "The distinction in intellectu/in re in the ontologiczal pfoof and in Bhartrhari", LBIP 229-240

221.1.298 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "The conception of linga in Vakyapadiya III.13", BLTR 499-506

221.1.299 Raffaele Torella, "From an adversary to the main ally: the place of Bhartrhari in the Kashmirilan Saiva Advaita", BLTR 343-354

221.1.301 K. D. Tripathi, "Thought, languager and consciousness: Bhartrhari's view of language", BLTR 177-184

221.1.303 Toshiya Unabe, "Bhartrhari on text and context", IPTS 116-152

221.1.304 Toshiya Unabe, "Mimamsa and Buddhist criticism of Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya 2.119 and the counterarguments", BLTR 415-432

221.1.306 Vincenzo Vargiani, "Bhartrhari on sesa relationshps", BLTR 459-482

221.1.310 Yi Jue Hyung, "Bhartrhari on the action referred to the present (vartamana kriya)*", JIBSt 57.3, 2009, 30-34

221.1.312 Pradip Kumar Mazumdar, "Bharrhari's theory of sabdavivartavada and the relating of word and meaning", ESLI 133-141

221.1.315 Sthaneshwar Timalsine, "The Brahman and the word principle (sabda): influence of the philosophy of Bhartrhari on Mandana's Brahmsiddhi", JIP 37, 2009, 189-206

221.1.316 Sebastian Alackapally, "The sphota inlanguage and the exepreicne of sabdatantra”, JD 35, 2010, 203-214

221.1.317 Paolo Giunta, "Gli assunti gnoseologie di Bhartrhari (Vakyapadiya 1.129-131) come dimonstrazione della definiziond Buddhists des kalpana (Pramanaviniscaya 7.7) , RDSO 82, 2010, 41-58

221.1.320 Alberto Todeschini, "Bhartrhari's view of the six pramanas in the Vakyapadiya", AsPOxford 20, 2010, 97-109

221.1.325 Toshiya Uneda, "'Apurva', 'devata' and 'svarga: arguments on words denoting imperceptible objects", JIP 39, 2011, 535-552

221.1.330 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies on Bhartrhari 9: Vakyapradipa 2.19 and the early history of Mimamsa”, JIP 40, 2012, 411-425

221.1.333 George Cardona, "A note on Vakyapadiya I.45/46", SHANA 100-125

221.1.334 Eivind Kahrs, "Bhatrhari and the tradition karmaprava niya”, JBFV 107-122

221.1 335 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartrjhari on A1.1.45", StSG 259-318

221.1.336 Hideyo Ogawa, "Abstraction (apoddhara) theory and sentence meaning: a study of the Vrtti on VP 2/39", SHANA 307-425

221.1.337 Hideo Ogawa, "Patanjali’s view of sentence meaning andits acceptance by Bhartrhari”, JBFV 159-190

221.1.340 Toshiya Uneda, "Cognition andlanguage: a ddiscussion of Vakyapadiya I.131 with regard to the criticism from the Buddhists”, SHBNA 488=5-8

221.1.342 Vincenzo Vaughsan, "Bhartrhari’s views on liminal perception and self-awareess”, SHANA 509-527

221.1.345 Marco Ferrante, "Vrsabhadeva’s sphutaksara and Bhartrhari’s metaphysics: conventional strategy and new interpretations”, JIP 41.2, 2013, 133-143



223.Author Unknown (450)

       1.Satapancasatika- or Adhyardhasatikaprajnaparamitasutra

223.1.0 Edited by H. Izumi and S. Tagano. Kyoto 1917

223.1.1 Sanskrit fragments mixed with Khotanese edited in Leumann. Also in TDG 1930. Sanskrit portions reprinted in Mahayanasutrasamgraha I, 1961, 90-92

223.1.2 Edward Conze, "The Adhyardhasatika Prajnaparamita" in MMR 101-116

223.1.3 Shuyu Kanaoka, "The lineage of visuddhi-pada thought in the Prajnaparamitanayasatapancasatika", JIBSt 16.2, 15-21

223.1.4 Masamitsu Soejima, "A study of the Adhyardhasatikaprajna-paramitasutra" (in Japanese with English summary). RinN 19, 1970, 127-134

223.1.4.5 Yukkho Hatta, Index to the Aryaprajnaparamitanayasatapancasatika. Kyoto 1971

223.1.5 See EnBud 1.2, 209-211

223.1.7 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan by Toru Tonabachi. Sanskrit Texts from the Tibetan Autonomous Region No. 5.2. Wien 2009


224.Saramati (450)

       1.Ratnagotravibhaga Uttaratantra (NCat II, 304)

224.1.1 Translated by E. Obermiller. ActOD 9, 1931. Reprinted Shanghai 1940; Talent, Or. 1984. Reprinted with E.H.Johnston's Sanskrit text by H.S.Maitreyanath Prasad. Delhi 1991. Reprinted SPJP 325-550

224.1.2 Sections 5.1.1 and 3.1-10 edited by H.W.Bailey and E.H. Johnston. BSOAS 8.1, 1935, 77-83

224.1.2.1 Harold Walter Bailey, "A fragment of the Uttaratantra in Sanskrit", BSOAS 8.1, 1935

224.1.3 Edited by Edward Hamilton Johnston and T.Chowdhary. JBRS 36, 1950. Reprinted Patna 1950, 1960

224.1.4 V.V.Gokhale, "A note on Ratnagotravibhaga I.52 = Bhagavadgita 13.32", SIBSY 90-91

224.1.5 Jikido Takasaki, "The Tathagatotpattisambhavanirdesa of the Avatamsaka and the Ratnagotravibhaga", JIBSt 7.1, 1958, 48-53

224.1.6 Jikido Takasaki, "A comment on the term arambana in the Ratnagotravibhaga I.9", JIBSt 10.2, 1962, 26-33

224.1.7 Ichijo Ogawa, "With regard to the thought of Tathagatagarbha (Buddha-dhatu) in Indian Mahayana Buddhism" (summary). ToG 30, 1965, 10-11

224.1.8 Translated by Jikido Takasaki. SerOR 33, Roma 1966.

224.1.9Edited by Zuiryu Nakamura in A Study of Ratna-Gotra-Mahayanottara-Tantra-

Sastra Based on Comparison and Contrast between the Sanskrit Original and the Chinese Translations. Tokyo 1961, 1969

224.1.10 D. Seyfort Ruegg, La théorie du Tathagata-garbha et du gotra. Paris 1969

224.1.11 Summarized in Warder 403-407

224.1.12 Lambert Schmithausen, "Philologisches Bemerkungen zum Ratnagotravibhaga", WZKSOA 15, 1971, 123-178

224.1.13 D. Seyfort Ruegg, Le Traité du Tathagatagarbha de Bu Ston Rin Grub. Paris 1973

224.1.14 Lambert Schmithausen, "Zu D. Seyfort Ruegg's Buch 'La théorie du Tathagatagarbha et du gotra'", WZKSOA 17, 1973, 123-160

224.1.15 D. Seyfort Ruegg, "The meanings of the term gotra and the textual history of the Ratnagotravibhaga", BSOAS 39, 1976, 341-363. French summary in CIDO 29, 1976, 88

224.1.16 Translated by Katia Holmes and Ken Tsubtim Gamtsa as The Ultimate Mahayana Explanatory Text on the Changeless Nature (The Mahayana Uttara Tantra Shastra) of Maitreya and Asanga. Esklademur, Scotland 1979, 1985

224.1.16.5 William Grosnick, "Nonorigination and nirvana in the early tathagatagarbha literature", JIABS 4.2, 1981, 33-43

224.1.17 William Grosnick, "Cittaprakrti and ayonimanaskara in the Ratnagotravibhaga: antecedent for the Hsien-Nien distinction of the Awakening of Faith", JIABS 6.2, 1983, 35-47

224.1.18 Ruben L.F. Habito, "Wisdom and compassion as constitutive of Buddhahood. A Mahayana Theravada treatise in comparative light", JIBSt 34.1, 1985, 16-24

224.1.19 Ruben L.F. Habito, "On dharmakaya as ultimate reality: prolegomena for a Buddhist-Christian dialogue", JJRS 12, 1985, 233-252.

224.1.19.5 Noriaki Hakamaya, "A critique of the structure of faith in the Ratnagotravibhaga", TBKK 46, 1988, 27-50

224.1.20 Lobsang Dargyay, "What is non-existent and what is remanent in sunyata", JIP 18, 1990, 81-91

224.1.20.5 Jeffrey Hopkins, "Image-likeness and Tathagatagarbha: a reading of William of St. Therry's Golden Epistle and the Ratnagotravibhaga", BChS

224.1.21 Jikido Takasaki, "Tathagatagarbha and the community of bodhisattvas", Kalyanamittam 247-256

224.1.22 S.C.Goswami, "The monistic absolute of the Uttaratantra and modern science", PGI 275-282

224.1.23 Translated by Ken and Katia Holmes. Delhi 1994

224.1.23.1 T.R.Sharma, "The conept of gotra in the Uttaratantra of Maitreya", AIBP 116-126. Also ITaur 21-22, 1995-96, 321-332

224.1.24 S.K.Hookham, The Buddha Within. Tathagatagarbha Doctrine According to the Shentong Interpretation of the Ratnagotravibhaga. Albany, N.Y. 1991, 1995; Delhi 1992

224.1.26 Michael Zimmerman, "Identification of a quotation in the Ratnagotravibhagavrtti", ARIRSU 11, 1999, 215-216

224.1.28 Translated by Jamgon Khongtrul Lodra Theye and explanations by Khenpo Tsultrim Gyamtio Rinpoache. This translated by Rosemarie Fuchs as Buddha-Nature. Ithaca, N.Y. 2000

224.1.30 Khanchen Thranug Rinpoche's translation, with commentary, translated from the Tibetan by Ken and Katia Holmes. Ed. Clark Johnson. Forres 1999; Delhi 2001; Auckland, New Zealand 2003, 2004

224.1.31 Summarized by Jikido Takasaki. EnIndPh9, 2003, 262-272

224.1.35 C. D. Sebastian, Metaphysics and Mysticism in Mahayana Buddhism: an Analytical Study of the Ratnagotravibhaga-Mahayanottarasastra. Delhi 2005

224.1.36 A. Burchardt, "A provisional list of Tibetan commentaries on the Ratnavibhaga", TJ 31.4, 2006, 3-46

224.1.38 Klaus-Dieter Mathes, A Direct Path to the Buddha Within. Gö Lotsava's Mahamudra Interpretation of the Ratnagotravibhaga. Boston 2008

224.1.42 Yaroslav Komarovski, "Shaky Chakden's interpretation of the Ratnagotravibhasa: 'contemplative' or 'dialectical'", JIP 38, 2010, 441-452


       2.Mahayanadharmavisesasastra

224.2.1 Summarized by Jikido Takasaki in 224.1.8; reprinted EnIndPh9, 2003, 272-273

 
 

225.Skandhila or Sugandhara or Sumangala (450)

       1.Abhidharmavatara (Sarvastivada)(NCat I, 292)

225.1.1 Hajime Sakurabe, "Abhidharmavatara by an unidentified author", NNMRP II, 359-370

225.1.2 H.S.Cooray, "Abhidharmavatara-Sastra", EnBud 1.1, 1961, 88

225.1.3 Hajime Sakurabe, "A study of the Abhidharmavatara" (summary). ARROU 18, 1965, 6

225.1.4 Edited in Tibetan and translated into French by Marcel Van Velthen. Publications de l'Institute Orientaliste de Louvain 16, Louvain-la-Neuve 1977

225.1.5 Bhikkhu K. Dhammajoti, "The category of citta-viprayukta-samskara in the Abhidharmavatara", SLJBS 2, 1988, 160-174

225.1.6 Summarized by Bart Dessein in SarvastiBS 282-285

225.1.6.5 Translated by Kuala Lumpur Dhammajoti as Entrance into the Supreme Doctrine. U. of Kelaniya, Sri Lanka 1998

225.1.6.8 Raj Kumar Singh, An Analytical Study of the Abhidhammavatara. 1999. Summarized in RBS p. 195.

225.1.7 Summarized by Christian Lindtner and Fred Greiner in EnIndPh9, 2003, 274-280

225.1.10 Translated from the Chinese in Kuala Lumpur Dhammajoti, Entrance into the Supreme Doctrine: Skandhila's Abhidharmavatara. Second, revised edition. Hongkong 2008


226.Samathadeva (450)

       1.Tikopayika on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakosa

See i175.52.5

226.1.1 Summarized by Stefan Anacker. EnIndPh9, 2003, 280-282


226A.Author Unknown (450)

       1.Anaksarakarandaka(vai)rocanagarbhasutra (K.213; T.828-830; N.221, Bagchi, p. 256)

 
 

227.Nagarjuna (450)

       1.Bhavasamkrantisastra (Madhyamika)(T.575-577)

227.1.1 Sutra edited in Tibetan, restored into Sanskrit and translated by N. Aiyasvami Sastri. JOR 5, 1931, 246-260

227.1.2 Prabhubhai Patel, "A note on Bhavasamkrantisutra", JOR 7, 1933, 190-191

227.1.3 G. Stramigioli, "Bhavasamkranti", RDSO 4, 1936, 284-306

227.1.4 Restored to Sanskrit with Maitreyanatha's commentary, edited in Tibetan and translated, with English summary of Maitreyanatha's commentary, by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. ALB 1, 1937, i-iv, 1-60. 2, 1938, 61-112, i-xxxvi

227.1.5 Indumatie Karunaratne, "Bhavasamkranti", EnBud 3.1, 1971, 20

227.1.6 Edited and translated into Spanish by Carmen Dragonetti. Buenos Aires 1977

227.1.7 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Analysis of the Bhavasamkrantisutra", JIBSt 26.1, 1977, 29-33

227.1.8 Translated by Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti. BudSR 2.1 1986, 3-18

227.1.9 Translated into Spanish by F. Tola and C. Dragonetti in "Bhavasamkrantisutra", Budismo Mahayane (Buenos Aires, 1980, 19-36

 
 

227A.Author Unknown (453)

        1.Ratnameghasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283

 
 

227AA.Author Unknown (453)

         1.Dharmadhatubuddhakasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283

 
 

227B.Author Unknown (454)

         1.Sraddhabaladhanavataramudrasutra (T.305; Toh. 201)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 253

 
 

227C.Author Unknown (457)

        1.(Sarvabuddhavisayavatara)Jnanalokalamkarasutra (K. 188 = T.357-359 = N. 245)

See a49A.1.50; EnIndPh 9, 2003, 283. et49A.1.45.5

 
 

227D.Author Unknown (460)

       1.Asokarajasutra (T.2043)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283

227D.1.1 Translated by Jung-ho Li as The Biographical Scriptures of King Asoka. Berkeley, Calif. 1993

 
 

227DA.Author Unknown (460)

       1.Dasadharmasutra (T.310(9), 314; Toh. 53)

 
 

227E.Author Unknown (465)

       1.Dharmasamgitisutra (T.761; Toh. 238)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283

227E.1.1 Partly translated in Conze, BudTexts, no. 152

227E.1.2 Partly translated into German in Nyanaponika nos. 79, 82, 88

227E.1.3 Partly translated in de Bary, 97, 102-103

227E.1.4 Partly translated in German in Winternitz, nos. 16, 22, 27

 
 

227F.Author Unknown (470)

       1.Manjusripariprcchasutra (T.468, 473, 661-662)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 284

 
 

227G.Author Unknown (470)

       1.Saptasatikaprajnaparamitasutra (T.220(7), 230, 232-233, 310)

227G.1.1 Edited by Giuseppe Tucci. Memoria della Romana accademia dei Lincei, Classe di scienze morali etc., ser. 5a, vol. 17, Roma 1923

227G.1.2 Partly edited by J. Masuda. TDG 6-7.2, 1930, 185-241

227G.1.3 Edited by P.L.Vaidya in Mahayanasutrasamgraha I, 340-351

227G.1.4 Analyzed in Conze, TPL 58-60

227G.1.5 Edward Conze, "The perfection of Wisdom in Seven Hundred Lines", Kalpa 1 (1963), nos. 2, 4-20. Reprinted in 30 Yrs 191-206

227G.1.6 Partly translated by Conze BudTexts nos. 139, 145

227G.1.7 Portions translated by Edward Conze in Selected Sayings; also SPP 97-107

227G.1.8 Kamaleswara Bhattacharya, "The atman in the Prajnaparamita Sutras", Our Heritage Special Number. Sanskrit College 150th Anniversary 1824-1974, Calcutta 1979, 39-46

227G.1.9 Partly translated into French in Silburn 11, 120

227G.1.10 Translated in Treasury 100-113

227G.1.11 Summary by Edward Conze in his The Prajnaparamita Literature pp . 58-59 reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 284-285

 
 

227H.Suddhamati (470)

          1.Vyakhyana on Nagarjuna's Pratityasamutpadahrdaya

See 47.6: 6,8. Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 284


228.Author Unknown (475)

       1.Sarasamuccaya on Skandhila's Abhidharmavatara

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 286

 
 

228A.Author Unknown (475)

       1.Pratityasamutpadadivibhanganirdesasutra

228A.1.1 Edited by P.L.Vaidya in Mahayanasutrasamgraha I, 117-118

228A.1.2 Yoshohito G. Muroji, "Gunamati's version of the PSAVN", TibSt 647-656

 
 

229.Author Unknown (475)

       1.Ksemavativyakaranasutra

See EnIndPh9, 2003, 285

229.1.1 Translated into French in Feer 355-381

 
 

230.Author Unknown (475)

       1.Vajramandadharanisutra

See EnIndPh9, 2003, 285


231-234.(unassigned)


235.Vyasa (475)

       1.Bhasya on Patanjali's Yogasutras

See a22.1.69, 69.8.a23.1.100; 131.1.283 131.1.115.e131.1:2,7,10,16,18,20,40,41,43,45,56,57,75,77.1,79,91,111,112,139, 143.1, 182.1, 210.2, 216, 235.1,253, 256. et131.1:81, 131.1.180.1. t30.1.5, 131.1.35, 37,51,196.

235.1.1 Govinda Das, "The date of the Yoga Bhasya of Vyasa", IA 44, 1915, 24

235.1.2 V.Raghavan, "Abhinavagupta and his Bhasya on the Yogasutras", AOR 3, 1938-39, 1-6; also VRA 78-87

235.1.3 H.G.Narahari, "Samkara and Vyasa on the theory of karma", BDCRI 17, 1955, 20-26

235.1.4 S.Takagi, "Samkhyan view in the Yogabhasya", JIBSt 22, 1963, 824-829

235.1.5 Ram Shankar Bhattacharya, "A wrong interpretation of the word jyotih in the Vyasabhasya III.1", JYI 16, 1970-71, 103-107

235.1.6 Kamlesh Gupta, Comparative Study of Vyasabhasya. Ph.D.Thesis, Delhi University 1973

235.1.7 Anima Sen Gupta, "Prakrti and the Vyasabhasya on Yogasutra 2.19", VK 60, 1973-74, 457-458

235.1.8 Selections translated in HTR 81-85

235.1.9 Y.K.Wadhwani, "Ekabhavika karmasaya in Yogabhasya 2.13", BDCRI 36, 1976-77, 164-170

235.1.10 Translated by Subbuswami Krishnamurti. HinduReg 9, 1979 - 12, 1982

235.1.11 Peter Connolly, "Some critical comments on Vyasa's interpretation of selected Yoga sutras", PIRKW 35-44

235.1.12 Ravindranath Bodha, "Vyasa on klesa and vrtti", YM 26.2, 1987, 53-56

235.1.13 Parimal Devnath, "Cittamala prasangana", YM 26.2, 1987, 47-52

235.1.13.5 Chandrimali S. Naikar, "The quintessence of Yogabhhsya in the Brahmapurana", JKU 33, 1989-90, 208-213

235.1.15 P. V. Shastri, "Is Vyasa the same as Badarayana?" Triveni 65.2-3, 1996, 38-39

235.1.16 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Vyasa in the Yogabhasya", BJBS 519-528

235.1.16.5 Jens-Uwe Hartmann, "New fragmente aus dem 'Yogalehrbuch'", FDS 127-136

235.1.17 Yoharan Grinshpon, "Yogic revolution and tokens of conservatism in Vyasa-Yoga", JIP 25, 1997, 129-138

235.1.20 Ko Endo, "Prasamkhyana in the Yogabhasya", WL 75-90

235.1.25 Summarized by Ram Shankar Bhattacharya, EnIndPh 12, 2008, 184-218

235.1.28 Hayato Kondo, "A comparative study of characteristics of the perception theories in the Yuktidipika and the Yogasutrabhasya", JIBSt 58.3, 2010, 18-22

 
 

235A.Author Unknown (475)

        1.Simhanadakasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 285

 
 

236.Buddhapalita (480)

       1.Vrtti on Nagarjuna's Madhyamakasutras

See e47.4:8,61, 94; 47.16.31; 136.1.1.5

236.1.1 Chapter One reconstructed from Tibetan to Sanskrit by I.Datar, "A study of the first twenty chapters of Buddhapalita's Mulamadhyamakavrtti", JASBo 26, 1950-51, 129-139. Summarized in PAIOC 15, 1949, Summaries 79

236.1.2 Indumatie Karunaratne, "Buddhapalita-Mulamadhyamaka-Vrtti", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 458-459

236.1.3 Upali Karunaratne, "Buddhapalita", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 458

236.1.3.5 Part of Chapter Two translated in Musashi Tachikawa, "A study of Buddhapalita's Mula-madhyamakavrtti (I)", Journal of the Faculty of Literature, Nagoya University 63, 1974, 1-19

236.1.4 Christian Lindtner, "Buddhapalita on emptiness", IIJ 23, 1981, 187-217

236.1.4.5 Chapter One translated in Judit Feher, "Buddhapalita's Mulamadhyamakavrtti: arrival and spread of Prasangika-Madhyamika literature in Tibet", in Louis Ligeti (ed.), Tibetan and Buddhist Studies Commemorating the 200th Anniversary of the Birth of Alexander Csoma de Koros: Bibliogtheca Orientalis Hungarica, Vol. XXIX, Part 1 (Budapest 1984).

236.1.4.7 Akira Saito, A Study of the Buddhapalita-Mulamadhyamakavrtti. Ph.D.Dissertation, Australian National University 1984

236.1.5 William L. Ames, "Buddhapalita's exposition of the Madhyamaka", JIP 14, 1986, 313-348. Reprinted BCCRS 16-51

236.1.6 Akira Saito, "Buddhapalita in the history of Madhyamika philosophy" (summary). TICOJ 31, 1986, 106-107

236.1.7 Summarized by William L. Ames. EnIndPh9, 2003, 286-305

236.1.8 William L. Ames, "Bhavaviveka's own view of his differences with Buddhapalita", SPD 41-66

236.1.12 Edited b Anne McDonald. Tokyo 2007

236.1.14 Charles Goodman, "Bhavavivdka's arguments for emptiness", AsPOxford 18, 2008, 167-184


237. Madhava (480)

       1.General

237.1.1 V.Raghavan, "Madhava, an early unfaithful exponent of the Samkhya", Sarup 162-164

237.1.2 Esther A. Solomon, "Samkhya-nasaka Madhava", PAIOC 26, 1972, 355-365


238-240.(unassigned)


241.Author Unknown (480)

       1.(Maha) Ratnakutadharmaparyayasatasahasrikaparivartakasya-paparivartatika (T.1523)


243.Author Unknown (480)

       1.Suvarnasaptati on Isvarakrsna's Samkhyakarikas

See e163.1:21,49

243.1.1 Samuel Beal, "On a Chinese version of the Samkhya Karika", JRAS n.s. 10, 1878, 355-360

243.1.2 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "The Chinese Suvarnasaptati and the Mathara Vrtti", JOR 5, 1931. Also CPSSS 349-355

243.1.3 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "A commentary on the Samkhya Karika in Chinese", JSVRI 2, 1941, 65-67

243.1.3.1 Edited by N. Aiyaswami Sastri. SVOS 7, Tirupati 1944

243.1.4 Summarized by Gerald J. Larson. Samkhya 67-78


244.Author Unknown (480)

       1.Samkhyasaptativrtti on Isvarakrsna's Samkhyakarikas

244.1.1 Edited by Esther A. Solomon. Ahmedabad 1973

244.1.2 Summarized by Esther A. Solomon. Samkhya 193-208


245-246.(unassigned)


247.Author Unknown (485)

        1.Buddhanamasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 285

 
 

247.1.1 Klaus Wille, "New fragments of the Buddhadharmasutra", ITaur 23-24, 1997-1998, 363-366

 
 

247B.Author Unknown (485)

          1.Sarvabalapaladharanisutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 305

 
 

247C.Author Unknown (485)

          1.Manjusriparicaranasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306

 
 

247D.Author Unknown (485)

           1.Maitreya(bodhisattva)pariprcchasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306

 
 

248.Author Unknown (488)

       1.Samghata(dharmaparyaya)sutra (T.423-424; Toh. 102)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306

248.1.1 Partly translated into German in Leumann, 1-41

248.1.2 Sections edited and translated by Sten Konow, Saka Studies. Oslo Ethnografiske Museum Bulletin 5 (Oslo 1932)

248.1.3 Sections edited in L.G.Herzenberg's unpublished dissertation Jazyk khotanosakskix buddhijskix pamjatnikov (Leningrad 1966)

248.1.4 Edited and translated by R.A.Gunatilaka's unpublished dissertation, Cambridge 1967

248.1.5 Translated into German in Oskar von Hinuber, "Das Samghatasutra. Ausgabe und Kommentierte Übersetzung eines nord-buddhischen Lehrtextes in Sanskrit und Sakisch", unpublished Habilitatenschrift, Mainz Universitat 1973

248.1.6 Sections edited H.W.Bailey, KT 5, 1983

248.1.7 G. Canevascini, "New readings and new works in the Khotanese Sanghatasutra", Studia Iranica 19.1, 1990, 13-20

248.1.8 G.Canevascini, The Khotanese Sanghatasutra, a critical edition. Unpublished doctoral dissertation, Hamburg 1992

248.1.9 Deborah E. Klimburg-Salter, The Painted Covers of the Samghatasutra 627/8 and the Votive Objects from Gilgit. Madison, Wisconsin 1992

249.Author Unknown (490)

       1.Maricidharanisutra (T.1256)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307

 
 

249A.Buddhasena (490?)

        1.Yogacarabhumi

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307

 
 

249B.Author Unknown (491)

        1.Maitreya(maha)simhanadasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307

249B.1.1 Gregory Schopen, "The bones of a Buddha and the business of a monk: conservative monastic values in an early Mahayana polemical text", JIP 27, 1999, 279-324. Reprinted FFMBI 63-107


250.Author Unknown (492)

       1.Niyataniyatavataramudrasutra (T.645-646; Toh. 202)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308


251.Author Unknown (492)

       1.Paramarthadharmavijayasutra (T.833-834)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308


252.Author Unknown (492)

       1.Ratnacudamanisutra (T.1526)


253.Author Unknown (492)

       1.(Saddharma)Smrtyupasthanasutra (T.721-722)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306-307

253.1.0 Edited by Satya Brata Samasrami. Calcutta 1873

253.1.1 Lin Li-Kouang, L'Aide-Mémoire de la Vraie Loi (Saddharma-Smrtyupasthana-Sutra)--Recherches sur un Sutra Développé du Petit Véhicule. Musee Guimet Bibliotheque d'Etudes, Tome 54. Paris 1949.

253.1.1.3 Extracts edited and translated into French in Lin-li Kouang, Dharmasamuccaya, compendium de la loi. Three volumes, AMG 53, 65, 75. Paris 1946-1973. Part 3, Chapters 13-36 revised by Andrê Breau.

253.1.2 Ratna Handurukande, "Dasakusalakaranaphala", Kalyani 5-6, 1986-87, 43-48

253.1.5 Pasadika, "The Smrtyupasthanasutra or the Ekottaragama (EA)(tr. from the Chinese version)", FacIC 494-502

253.1.9 Satipatthanasutra. The Direct Path to Realization. Tr. Amalaya. Birmingham, 2003

253.1.10 Patrick A. Pranke, "Satipatthana-Sutta", EnB 2, 2004, 754

253.1.15 Mitsuyo Demoto, "Die 128 Nebenhöllen nach dem Saddharmasmrtupasthanasutra”, Pasadikanam

253.1.17 Eviatar Shulman, "Mindful wisdom: the Sati-pattana Sutra on mindfulness, memory, and liberation”, HistR 49, 2009, 393-420


254.Author Unknown (492)

       1.Vyasapariprcchasutra (T.354, 310(49))

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308


254A.Author Unknown (492)

       1.Kanakavarnapurvayoga or -avadana-sutra (T.162)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308


254B.Author Unknown (492)

       1.Mangalastakasutra (T.429)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308

 
 

254C.Author Unknown (492)

        1.Vimala(nana)upakasikapariprcchasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307

254C.1.1 Translated in F.W.Thomas, Tibetan Literary Texts and Documents, Part I (London 1935), 179-258

 
 

254D.Author Unknown (492)

         1.Sutra on the highest reliance

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308-309


254E.Author Unknown (510)

       1.Maitreya(maha)simhanadasutra (T.310(23))

254E.1.1 Gregory Schopen, "The bones of a buddha and the business of a monk: conservative monastic values in an early Mahayana polemical tract", JIP 27, 1999, 279-324

 
 

254F.Author Unknown (492)

        1.Paramarthadharmavijayasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308

 
 

255.Author Unknown (495)

       1.Karandavyuhasutra

See a103.1.103.5

See also EnIndPh9, 2003, 310-311

255.1.0 Edited by Satya Brata Samasrami. Calcutta 1873

255.1.1 Partly translated in Edward B. Cowell, "The northern Buddhist legend of Avalokiteswara's descent into the hell Avichi", Journal of Philology 6, 1876, 222-231; also IA 8, 1879, 250-252

255.1.1.5 Giuseppe Tucci, "La reduziopne poetica del Karandavyuha", Atti della Reale Accademia della Scienze di Torinot 58, 1923, 605-630

255.1.2 Summarized in Prabhas Chandra Majumdar, "The Karandavyuha: its metrical version", IHQ 24, 1948, 239-299

255.1.3 Translated in Thomas 72-78

255.1.3.3 Constantin Regamrey, "Randbemerkungen zur Sprache und Textuberlieferung des Karandavyuha", Asiatica 514-527

255.1.3.5 Constantin Regamey, Lexicological Gleanings from the Karandavyuhasutra. Poona, Madras 1955

255.1.4 Edited by P. L. Vaidya in Mahayanasutrasamgraha 258-308

255.1.4.0 Constantin Regamey, "Motifs vichnouites et saivaites dans le Karandavyuha", Extraacts from Lalou 1971, pp. 411-432

255.1.4.01 Edited in pothi form by Janahta Presa. 1974-1983

255.1.4.1 Edited from a Nepalese manuscript by Lokesh Chandra. New Delhi 1981, 1999

255.1.4.5 Afshar Qobad, North-western Rivers and Regions in the Prose Recension of the Karandavyuhasutra: Probable Recension of Ancient Iranian Beliefs in a Buddhist Sanskrit Text. Lausanne 1983

255.1.5 Adeheid Mette, "Beschreibung eines Kultbildes im Gilgit-Manuscript des Karandavyuhasutra", BIS 9-10, 1996, 217-224

255.1.6 Adelheid Mette, Die Gilgitfragmente des Karandavyuha. Swisstal-Odendorf 1997

255.1.7 Adelheid Mette, "Die stotras der Karandavyuha", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 15, 1997, 145-169

255.1.8 Song Kyun Sun, A Study of the Karanavyuhasutra. 2000. Summarized in RBS 203-204

255.1.10 Alexander Studhelme, The Origins of Om Manipadme Hum. A Study of the Karandavyuha Sutra. Albany, N.Y. 2002

255.1.15 Ruriko Sakama, "A study od the Karandavyuha: differences between the Matte edition and the Samasrami edition", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 163

255.1.16 Gregory Schopen, "The ambiguity of Avalokitesvara and the tentative identification of a painted scene from a Mahayana Sutra in Ajanta", FFMBI

255.1.18 Ruriko Sakume, "Forms of Avalokite'vara and the Karandavyuha Sutra", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 197-198

 
 

255A.Author Unknown (495)

         1.Buddhagotrasastra

255A.1.1 Summarized by Jikido Takasaki. EnIndPh9, 2003, 309

 
 

256.Brahmanandin or Tanka (500) (NCat VIII, 1)

       1.Vakya on Chandogya Upanisad (NCat VII, 117)

See a277.3.1

256.1.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Fragments from Brahmanandin", KBPCV 151-158. Reprinted in IPS 2, 65-72

256.1.2 Polagolam Sri Rama Sastri, "Some pre-Sakara Advaitins I", TVOS 20.1, 1995, 11-19


        2. General

256.2.1 Polagam Sri Rma Sastri, "Some pre-Samkara Advaitins Atreya Brahmanani and Dravidacarya”, TVOS 34, 2008, 34-43


 
 

257.Pujyapada or Devanandin (500) (NCat IX, 110)

       1.Istopadesa with autocommentary (NCat II, 262) (Jain)

257.1.1 Edited, with Asadhara's commentary, and translated by Manoharalala Sastrin. MDJG 13, 1918. Reprinted Bombay 1954

257.1.1.5 Adinath Neminath Upadhye, "An old prefatory gloss on Istopadesa", ABORI 13, 1932, 86-87

257.1.2 Translated by Champat Rai Jain as The Discourse Divine. Hardoi 1925. This translation reprinted, with Raoji Nemchand Shah's translation of Pujyapada's Samadhisataka, all edited by Jagdish Prasad Jain 'Sadhak', New Delhi 2000

257.1.3 Edited with Asadhara's Tika and Champat Rai Jain's The Discourse Divine. Text and commentary translated by Dhanyakumar Jain. Agasa 1973

257.1.3.5 Edited, with Prabhacandra's Tika, by Chhotalal Gulabcand Gandhi. Bombay 2003

257.1.4 Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 174

257.1.7 Edited with editor's commentary by Visuddhisagara. Solapur 2009

257.1.10 Edited (and translated?), with Pujyapada's Samadhitantra and Yogindudeva's Amrtasati,. GJW 4. 2009


       2.Samadhitantra or Samadhisataka (Jain) (NCat IX, 110)

See t257.1.2

257.2.1 Edited, with Prabhacandra's Tika, and translated by M. N. Dwivedi. Ahmedabad 1895

257.2.2 Edited, with Prabhacandra's Tika, by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905

257.2.3 Edited by Muni Manik. Meerut 1915

257.2.4 Edited by Sital Prasad. Delhi 1918

257.2.5 Edited by Jnanananda in Santisopana (Banaras 1922)

257.2.6 Translated with English commentary by Ajita Prasad. JainG 33, 1936 - 34, 1937

257.2.6.5 Edited and translated by Herbert Warren (revised by Furchand H. Dashi), Prabhandu: A Century of Verses on Concentration. New Delhi 1937

257.2.7 Edited with Prabhacandra's Tika by Ravaji Namcand Shah. Sangli 1938

257.2.8 Edited by J. Mukhtar. Sarsawa 1939

257.2.9 Translated with commentary by Raoji Nemchand Shah. Second edition, Aliganj 1962

257.2.11 Edited with Asadhara's commentary, with Gujarati and Hindi translations. Bombay 2003

257.2.11.5 Edited b Jay Kumar Jalaj. Mumbai 2006

257.2.12 Summarized by K. H. Potter, EnIndPh10, 2007, 174-176

257.2.13 Edited by Marsh Modi. Mumbai 2008


     3.Sarasamgraha (Jain) (NCat IX, 10)


     4.Sarvarthasiddhi on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra (NCat VIII, 78; IX, 10)

See e196B.1:10.1, 45.0. t196B.1.62

257.4.1 Edited by Virchand and Amichand Dharasivakar. Kolhapur 1903, 1911, 1917

257.4.2 Edited by J.R.Sahaya. Etah 1928

257.4.3 Edited by Jinadas Sastri. Sholapur 1939

257.4.4 Abridged by Chainsukhdas and edited with English notes by C.S.Mallinathan. Jaipur 1951

257.4.5 Edited by Phulcandra Siddhantasastri. JPMJG 13, 1955, 1971.

257.4.6 Translated by S.A.Jain, Reality. Calcutta 1960

257.4.7 Summaried by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2008, 159-174


        5.General

257.5.1 Jyoti Prasad Jain, "Jaina gurus of the name Pujyapada", JainA 16, 1950: 1, 46. 18, 1952, 7

257.5.2 S. A. Srimandhar Kumar, "Saint scholar Pujyapada as recounted by poet Devacandra in his work", Jinamanjari 17.1, 1998, 47-50

257.5.5 M. Jalendiram, "Acarya Pujyapada and his works". JainJ 28, 2003, 84-91


258-259.(unassigned)

 
 

261.Author Unknown (500)

       1.Aparamitayurjnanahrdayadharanisutra (T.370)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311


262.Author Unknown (500)

       1.Mahamanivipulavimanavisvasupratisthitaguhyasutra (T.1005(a), 1006-1007)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311

 
 

262A.Author Unknown (500)

        1.Saptabuddhakasutra (T.1682)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311

 
 

262B.Author Unknown (508)

         1.Pradipaniyasutra (T.702)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311

       

262C.Author Unknown (508)

          1.Lokaprajnapti(abhidharmasutra)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 312. Analyzed in e175.1.2

262C.1.1 Paul Mus, La Lumiére sur les Six Voies. Paris 1939

262C.1.2 Paul Mus, Sadgatikarika et Lokaprajnapti. Étude sur les sources sanskrites anciennes conservées dans le Pali birman. Paris 1939

262C.1.3 Paul Mus, Les Sadgatikarika de Dharmika Subhuti retrouvées au Nepal par Sylevain levi, publiées, traudites et annotées à l'aide des versions in pali, chionis et tibetain. Paris 1939

262C.1.4 Eugene Denis, "La Lokapannati et la legende birmane d'Asoka", JA 264, 1976, 97-116

262C.1.4.5 Eugêne Denis, Le Lokapannatti et les idêes cosmologiques du bouddhisme ancien. Lille, Paris 1977

262C.1.5 A. Yuyama, "Remarks on the Køkiji fragment of the Lokaprajnapti", in India and the Ancient World: History Trade and Culture before A.D. 650 (Festschrift P.H.L.Eggermont) (Leuven 1987), 215-227.

262C.1.5.5 Walther Heissig, "Nochmals zur Frege der mongolischen LokaprajnaptipUbersetzugen", ZAS 21, 1988-89, 222-227

262C.1.6 Sieglinde Dietz, "Die verschudene versionen der Lokaprajnapti", ZDMG Supplement 7, 1989, 489-496

262C.1.9 Edited and translated by Kalpakam Sankaranarayanam, Kazunobu Matsudu and Motohiri Yoritami ain Lokaprajnapti: A Critical Exposition of Buddhist Cosmology. Mumbai 2002

 
 

262D.Author Unknown (508)

         1.Sumerugarbhasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 312


263.Author Unknown (510)

         1.Anuttarasrayasutra (T.669)

263.1.1 Jikido Takasaki, "Structure of the Anuttasrayasutra (Wu-sheng-i-ching)", JIBSt 8.2, 1960, 30-37


264.Author Unknown (510)

       1.Devarajapravarasutra (T.220, 231)


265-266.(unassigned)


267.Asuvarman (510)

       1.Catuhsatyasastra


268.Dignaga or Dinnaga (510) (NCat IX, 36-37)

      1.Marmapradipa on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakosa (NCat I, 290; IX, 36)

268.1.1 Summarized by Mark Tatz. EnIndPh9, 2003, 313


       2.Alambanapariksa and Vrtti thereon (Vijnanavada) (NCat II, 182; IX, 36)

See e174.6.11, 175.18.10. t175.19.12

268.2.1 Translated into French by Susumu Yamaguchi and Henriette Mayer as "Examen de l'objet de la connaissance", with Dharmapala's commentary and notes based on Vinitadeva's commentary. JA 214, 1929, 1-66

268.2.2 Edited in Tibetan and translated into German, with Dharmapala's commentary, by Erich Frauwallner. WZKM 37, 1930, 174-194

268.2.3 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "Note sur l'Alambanapariksa", JA 217, 1930, 296-298

268.2.4 Summarized by Stcherbatsky in BL

268.2.5 Restored into Sanskrit and translated, with Dharmapala's commentary, by N. Aiyasvami Sastri. ALB 3, 1939 - 6, 1942. Reprinted Adyar 1942

268.2.6 Edited by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 157 ff.

268.2.7 Masaaki Hattori, "Samvrtisat and paramarthasat in Dignaga", F.A.S. 50, 1961, 16-28

268.2.8 Shuyu Kanaoka, "Alambanapariksa", EnBud 1.3, 1964, 375-376

268.2.9 Summarized and studied in D.J.Kalupahana, "Dignaga's theory of immaterialism", PEW 20, 1970, 121-128

268.2.9.3 Karikas translated in Alex Wayman, "Yogacara and the Buddhist logicians", JIABS 2.1, 1979, 68-69

268.2.9.5 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Alambanapariksa. Invetigacion sobre el punto de saproyo del conociomiento", BAEO 16, 1980, 91-126

268.2.10 Edited, with edition and translation of Vinitadeva's and Dharmapala's commentaries, by N. Aiyasvami Sastri. Bulletin of Tibetology 1980, 1-170

268.2.10.1 Vrtti edited in Tibetan and translated in Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Dignaga's Alambanapariksavrtti", JIP 10, 1982, 105-134. Translation reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 314-318

268.2.11 Translated into Danish by Christian Lindtner in LindM 100-107


       3.Hastavala(prakarana) (Vijnanavada) (NCat IX, 37)

268.3.1 Edited and translated by F.W.Thomas and Hakuju Ui. JRAS 1918, 267-310

268.3.2 Edited in Tibetan by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 152ff.

268.3.3 Translated by Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti. JRS 8.1, 1980, 18-31. Also OV 1-17 with summary at xxiii-xxviii. Translation reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 318-319

268.3.4 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Le Hastavalanama-prakaranavrtti des Ariadeva", BAEO 21, 1985, 137-156

268.3.5 Reconstructed into Sanskrit by Waso Harada. BBSRU 6, 1993, 92-110


       4.Hetucakra(nirnaya) or (-damaru) (NCat IX, 37)

Discussed in b300.1.11

268.4.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Hetu-cakra-damaru, or Dignaga's Wheel of Reasons, recovered from Labrang in Sikkim", JASBe n.s. 3, 1907, 627-632

268.4.2 Fold-out tabular summary in Vidyabhusana, HIL, Appendix 268.4.3. Reconstructed into Sanskrit by D.C.Chatterji. IHQ 9, 1933, 511-514

268.4.4 Edited in Tibetan by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959.

268.4.5 Richard S.Y. Chi, "Buddhist logic and Western thought", BAT 111-119

268.4.6 Eli Franco, "A note on Hetucakradamaru 8-9", JIP 36, 1993, 235-237

268.4.7 Lambert Schmithausen, "A further notes on Hetucakradamaru 8-9", JIP 27, 1999, 79-82

268.4.10 Takashi Iwata, "The Pramanaviniscaya on the purpose of the division of reasons into nine types in the Hetucakra", WZKSOA 46, 2002, 225-258

268.4.11 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 319-320


       5.Nyayamukha or Nyayadvara (NCat IX, 36-37)

See a268.7.28

268.5.1 Portions translated by Hakuju Ui, The Vaisesika Philosophy (Cambridge 1917), 67-68; ChSSSt 22, 1962.

268.5.2 Edited in Chinese and Tibetan and translated by Giuseppe Tucci. MKB 15, 1930. Reprinted San Francisco 1976, 1978

268.5.3 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "A lost commentary on the Nyayamukha", SIS 2, 1946, 45-56

268.5.4 Portions translated in Hajime Nakamura, "Buddhist logic expounded by means of symbolic logic", JIBSt 7.1, 1958, 3-21

268.5.5 Shoryu Katsura, "A study of the Nyayamukha" (in Japanese with English summary). HDBK 38, 1978 - 43, 1984

268.5.6 Edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Vrtti, by Sempa Dorje. Bibliotheca Indo-Tibetica 6. Varanasi 1983

268.5.6.5 Alex Wayman, "The Nyayavatara and Buddhist logical works by Dignaga and Ratnarkarasanti", Nirgrantha 2, 1996, 1-8

268.5.7 Printed in Siddheshwar Rameshwar Bhatt, Buddhist Epistemology. Westport, Conn. 2000

268.5.8 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 320-322


       6.Prajnaparamitapindartha(samgraha) (Prajnaparamita) (NCat IX, 37)

See e174.3.15

268.6.1 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan and translated by Giuseppe Tucci in "Minor Sanskrit texts on the Prajnaparamita", JRAS 1947, 53-75

268.6.2 Edited by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 140-144

268.6.3 Translated by Raniero Gnoli in TBIS, 415-425

268.6.4 Translated by Bhikkhu Pasadika. TWB 91-106

268.6.4.5 Verses 26-29 translated by Christian Lindtner in WZKSOA 41, 1997, 176

268.6.5 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 322-323


       7.Pramanasamuccaya and Vrtti thereon (Vijnanavada)

See e29.1.41

268.7.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Dignaga and his Pramanasamuccaya", JASBe n.s.1, 1905, 217-227

268.7.2 Summarized in Vidyabhusana, ILMS, in 5 pages

268.7.3 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in HIL, 274-288

268.7.4 Passages edited and translated by H.N.Randle in Fragments from Dignaga. London 1926; Delhi 1981

268.7.4.1 Giuseppe Tucci, "On the fragments from Dinnaga", JRAS 1928, 377-390

268.7.5 D.C.Chatterji, "A note on the Pramanasamuccaya", ABORI 11, 1929-30, 195-196

268.7.5.1 Erich Frauwallner, "Bemerkungen zu den Framenten Dignagas", WZKM 37, 1929, 136-139

268.7.6 Chapter One translated into Sanskrit from Tibetan, with Jinendrabuddhi's Visalamalavati, by H.R.Rangaswami Iyengar. Mysore 1930

268.7.7 I.9-10 translated, with Jinendrabuddhi's Visalamalavati thereon, by Stcherbatsky in BL II, 377-400

268.7.8 N. Aiyasvami Sastri, "Notes on the Pramanasamuccaya of Dignaga", ALB 1, 1937: 26-32, 57-68

268.7.9 Shoho Takemura, "A commentarial inquiry into the original text of Pramanasamuccaya" (summary). RDR 350, 1956, 5-6

268.7.10 Masaaki Hattori, "Fragments of Pramanasamuccaya", JIBSt 7, 1958, 66-71

268.7.11 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignaga's theory of direct knowledge", BUOP series C, vol. 7, 1959, 1-20

268.7.12 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignaga's criticism of the Samkhya theory of perception", BUOP series C, vol. 8, 1960, 1-32

268.7.13 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignaga's criticism of the Mimamsaka theory of perception", JIBSt 18, 1961, 711-724

268.7.14 Masaaki Hattori, "Pramanasamuccaya I.3: Nyayamatavicara", MIK 3, 1962, 7-18

268.7.15 Masaaki Hattori, "Pratyaksabhasa. Dignaga's view and Dharmakirti's interpretation", MIK 6-7, 1965, 122-128

268.7.16 Edited in Tibetan and partially translated into Japanese by Hidenori Kitagawa, in Dignaga no Taikei (Kyoto 1965)

268.7.15.1 I.36-47 and II.47-52 translated in Erich Frauwallner, Materialien zur altesten Erkenntnislehre der Karmamimamsa (Wien 1968), pp. 94-106

268.7.17 Pratyaksa chapter edited in Tibetan and translated by Masaaki Hattori as Dignaga on Perception. HOS 47, 1968

268.7.18 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "Dignaga's remarks on the concept of anumeya", JGJRI 24, 1968, 151-160

268.7.19 Shoryu Katsura, "New Sanskrit fragments of the Pramanasamuccaya", JIP 3, 1975, 67-78

268.7.20 Summary of Svarthanumana section in Richard P. Hayes, "Dinnaga's views on reasoning (svarthanumana)", JIP 8, 1980, 219-277. Reprinted BCCRS 5, 65-115

268.7.20.1 Chapter Five: Anyapohapariksa, with Jinendrabuddhi's commentary, edited Tibetan with Sanskrit fragments by Masaaki Hattori. Memoirs of the Faculty of Letters, Kyoto University 21, 1982, 103-224

268.7.21 Richard Philip Hayes, On the Nature of Knowledge acquired through Language: A Study of the Apoha Theory in Dignaga's Pramana-samuccaya. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983.

268.7.22 Eli Franco, "On the interpretation of Pramanasamuccaya(vrtti) I, 3d", JIP 12, 1984, 389-400

268.7.23 L. W. van der Kuijp, "Studies in the life and thought of khas-grub-rje I: Mkha-Grub-rje's epistemological oeuvre and his philological remarks on Dignaga's Pramanasamuccaya I", BIS 1, 1985, 75-106

268.7.23.1 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Dignaga's criticism of Vasubandhu", Sramana Vidya. Studies in Buddhism. Prof. Jagannath Upadhyaya Commemoratioin Volume I (ed. N.H.Samtani), 47-63

268.7.24 Richard P. Hayes, Dignaga on the Interpretation of Signs. Studies of Classical India 9. Dordrecht 1988. Contains translation of Chapters 2 and 5-7. Two volumes

268.7.24.0 Georges Dreyfus and Christian Lindtner, "The Yogacara philosophy of Dignaga and Dharmakirti", SCEAR 2 (1989), 27-52

268.7.24.1 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "Apoha: Dinnaga as interpreted by Uddyotakara", IJBS 1, 1989, 53-60

268.7.25 Marek Mejor, "On the date of the Tibetan translations of the Pramanasamuccaya and the Pramanavarttika", StBudEp 175-197

268.7.25.1 Ole Pind, "Dignaga on sabdasamanya and sabdavisesa", StBudEp 269-280

268.7.25.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "Two new fragments from the Vrtti on Pramanasamuccaya I.23b--a supplement to MESB V", WZKS 34, 1990, 209-210

268.7.26 Eli Franco, "Did Dignaga accept four types of perception?", JIP 21, 1993, 295-299

268.7.27 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Pre-Dharmakirti commentators on Dignaga's definition of a thesis (paksatalaksana)", BF 3, 1994, 295-306

268.7.27.1 Michael Torsten Much, "Samanadhikaranya in Dignaga, Uddyotakara and Dharmakirti", Studia Ind4 163-176

268.7.27.5 Heramba Chatterjee Sastri, "Short notes on Dignaga's definition of perception (pratyaksa)", JDPaliUC 8, 1998, 5-7

268.7.28 Tom Tillemans, "A note on Pramanavarttika, Pramanasamuccaya and Nyayamukha. What is the svadharmin in Buddhist logic?", JIABS 21.1, 1998, 111-124

268.7.28.5 Verses 1-11 translated by Alex Wayman in MBL

268.7.29 Ole H. Pind, "Dharmakirti's interpretation of Pramanasamuccayavrtti V. 36: sabda 'rthanantaranivrttivisistam eva bhavan aha", DTI 317-332

268.7.30 Noboru Ueda, "On the deduction of vyapti from the second condition of hetu", DTI 405-417

268.7.35 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignaga's theory of meaning: an annotated translation of the Pramanasamuccayavrtti Chapter V: Anyapohapariksa (I)", WCSU 137-146

268.7.35.5 Chapter Four translated by Tom J. F. Tillemans. OAWV 32, Volume One, Wien 2000

268.7.36 Pratyaksa chapter summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh9, 2003, 328-337

268.7.37 Svarthanumana and Apohapariksa chapters summarized by Richard P. Hayes in EnIndPh9, 2003, 337-360

268.7.38 Pararthanumana, Drstanta, and Jati chapters summarized by Shoryu Katsura in EnIndPh9, 2003, 2342-349 and 360-362

268.7.38.5 Dan Arnold, "Candrakirti on Dignaga on svalaksanas", JIABS 26.1, 2003, 139-174

268.7.40 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 409

268.7.40.5 Chamali Chowdhury, "Santaraksita's reaffirmation of Dignaga and Dharmakirti's views of perception and his defense of the Nyaya-Mimamsa criticisms", IIJBS 5, 2004, 21-40

268.7.41 Junjie Chu, "A study of sataimira in Dinnaga's definition of pseudo-perception (PS 1.7d-8ab)", WZKS 48, 2004, 113-150

268.7.43 H. Yaita, "Tibetan text of Dignaga's Pramanasamuccaya, sku-'bum edition", JNIBS 27, 2004, 77-114

268.7.45 Eli Franco, "On Pramanasamuccayavrtti again", JIP 33, 2005, 631-633

268.7.48 Pramod Kumar, "A critical examination of Dignaga's views on sentences", EAW 57, 2007, 391-394

268.7.52 Zhihua Yao, "Empty subject terms in Buddhist Logic: Dignaga and his Chinese commentators", JIP 31, 2009, 383-398

268.7.55 Birgit Kellner, "Self-awareness (svasamvedana) in Dignaga's Pramanasamuccaya and -Vrtti: a close reading", JIP 38, 2010, 203-231

268.7.60 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "Dignaga, Bhaviveka and Dharmakirti on apoha”, RLBPA 449-458

268.7.62 Toshikazu Watanabe, "Dharmakirti’s interpretation of Pramanasamuccaya III.12:, RLBPA 459-467


       8.Trikala- or Traikalya-pariksa (Vijnanavada)(NCat VIII, 233; IX, 36)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 367

268.8.1 Edited in Tibetan, with Vakyapadiya III.xiv, by Erich Frauwallner, WZKSOA 3, 1959, 145-152

268.8.2 Mangala R. Chinchoe, "Dinnaga on trikalapariksa", JASBo 67-68, 1992-93, 118-137. Includes text


     9.Upadayaprajnaptiprakarana

268.9.1 Abridged English translation in Hidenori Kitagawa, "Study of a short philosophical treatise ascribed to Dignaga", SIS 5, 1957, 126-138. Reprinted in H. Kitagawa, Dignaga no Taikei (Kyoto 1965). Sections of this quoted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 362-367

268.9.2 Edited in Tibetan by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 121 ff.


     9A.Dvadasasataka

268.9A.1 Fragments in Ole Pind, "Dignaga on sabdasamanya and sabdavisesa", StBudEp 269-280


      10.General

See a47.16.31; 48.1.74; 175.24:2, 21; 221.1:27, 238; 300.1:2,5,6,7; 344.3.18, 344.9.33. bH3880

268.10.1 H.R.Rangaswami Iyengar, "Kumarila and Dignaga", IHQ 3, 1927, 603-606

268.10.2 A.S.Krishna Rao, "Place of Prasastapada and Dignaga in the evolution of vyapti", JOR 1, 1927, 77-86

268.10.3 Stefan Stasiak, "Fallacies and their classification", RO 6, 1928, 191-198

268.10.4 Giuseppe Tucci, "On the fragments from Dinnaga", JRAS 1928: 377, 905

268.10.5 Erich Frauwallner, "Bemerkungen zu den Fragmenten Dignagas", WZKM 36, 1929, 136-139

268.10.6 Giuseppe Tucci, "Bhamaha and Dignaga", IA 59, 1930, 142-147. Reprinted in GTOM 185-194

268.10.7 Th. Stcherbatsky, "Dignaga's theory of perception", TDG 6-7, 1930, 89-130

268.10.8 Erich Frauwallner, "Dignaga und anderes", FMW 237-242

268.10.9 H.R.Rangaswami Iyengar, "Bhartrhari and Dignaga", JASBo 26, 1951, 147-150

268.10.10 Erich Frauwallner, "Dignaga, sein werk und seine entwicklung", WZKSOA 3, 1959, 83-164

268.10.11 A.K.Sarkar, "Dignaga and the four Buddhist schools", DMDV 339-357

268.10.12 Shri Nivas Shastri, "The theory of cognition (jnana) propounded by Dignaga", KUJ 3, 1969, 20-25

268.10.13 Masaaki Hattori, "Prasastapada and Dignaga: a note on the development of the Vaisesika theory of anumana", WZKSOA 16, 1973, 169-180

268.10.14 Chitrarekha V. Kher, "The concept of pramana according to Dignaga and Dharmakirti", JOI 22, 1973, 256-264

268.10.15 Chandra Kanta Datta, "The philosophical positions of Dignaga and Samkara", JDBSDU 1, 1974, 5-13

268.10.16 Shiv Kumar, Dignaga: His Life and Works. Ph.D.Thesis, Delhi University 1974

268.10.17 Friedrich V. Lustig, "The great logician guru Dignaga", MB 82, 1974, 264-266

268.10.18 Chhote Lal Tripathi, "The role of apoha in Dignaga's theory of knowledge", EAW 25, 1975, 455-470

268.10.19 Richard S.Y. Chi, "A tentative comparison between the Aristotelean logic and the Dignagean logic", CIDO 29, 1976, 354-362

268.10.20 Chhote Lal Tripathi, "A rethinking of Dignaga's definition of perception", BandJ 2, 190-195

268.10.21 Sangam Lal Pandey, "Back to Dignaga", in WIP 31-48

268.10.22 Shoryu Katsura, "The apoha theory of Dignaga", JIBSt 28.1, 1979, 16-20

268.10.23 Th. Stcherbatsky, "Dignaga and Dharmakirti", SHIP 3, 261-271

268.10.24 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignaga's criticism of the Vaisesika theory of inference" (in Japanese with English summary). Tetsugaku 33, 1981, 51-65

268.10.25 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignaga on trairupya", JIBSt 32.1, 1983, 15-21

268.10.26 Amar Singh, The Heart of Buddhist Philosophy--Dinnaga and Dharmakirti. Delhi 1984

268.10.27 V.N.Jha, "Dinnaga and Indian logic", SILLE 101-109

268.10.28 R.S.Y.Chi, "Dignaga and post-Russell logic", BLE 107-116

268.10.29 Richard P. Hayes, "An interpretation of Dinnaga's general theory of inference", BLE 31-58

268.10.29.5 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Dinnaga's criticism of Vasubandhu", SramV 47-64

268.10.30 A.G.S.Kariyawasan, "Dignaga", EnBud 4.4, 1989, 617-625

268.10.30.1 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignaga and Dharmakirti on apoha", StBudEp 129-146

268.10.31 B.K.Matilal, "Apoha: Uddyotakara's critique of Dinnaga", IJBS 1.2, 1989, 4-12

268.10.31.1 M.T.Much, "Fragments from Dignaga? Traces of a pre-Dharmakirti Buddhist polemic against the Nyaya nigrahasthana", StBudEp 211-220

268.10.32 Lobzang Tsewang, "The mentalism of Dignaga and Dharmakirti", Tulku 9-16

268.10.33 M.R.Chinchore, "Dignaga on purvavat, sesavat and samanyatodrsta anumana", Tulku 104-135

268.10.34 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignaga and Dharmakirti on adarsanamatra and anupalabdhi", AS 46.1, 1992, 222-231

268.10.35 Ewing Y. Chinn, "The anti-abstractionism of Dignaga and Berkeley", PEW 44, 1994, 55-78

268.10.36 Rita Gupta, "Some remarks on Dignaga and Dharmakirti's theory of the identity of pramana and pramanaphala", VJP 30.2, 1994, A23-41

268.10.37 Chien-Hsing Ho, "How not to avoid speaking--a free exposition of Dignaga's apoha doctrine", JIP 24, 1996, 541-562

268.10.38 K. Kunjunni Raja, "Dinnaga and Bhartrhari", BudIA 1996, 143-145

268.10.39 Biswanarayan Shastri, "Dinnaga and Dharmakirti on pratyaksabhasa (pseudo perception)", Srijnanamrtam 412-422

268.10.40 Alex Wayman, "The Nyayavatara and Buddhist logical works by Dignaga and Ratnakara Santi", Nirgrantha 2, 1996, 1-8

268.10.42 Richard P. Hayes, "Dignaga", Routledge Encyclopedia of Philosophy 3, 1998, 74-76

268.10.45 Jonardon Ganeri, "Self-intimation, memory and personal identity", JIP 27, 1999, 469-483

268.10.43 Harjeet Singh Gill, "The dialectics of langue and parole–parole parlee and parole parlante", SBFT 98-122

268.10.55 H. S. Prasad, "The phenomenology of meaning: Dinnaga to Ratnakirti", JICOR 18.1, 2001, 131-162

268.10.165 Shyamlal Sanyal, "Dignaga's interpretation of the perceptual universe", IndPQ 29.1, 2002, 97-104

268.10.172 Zhihua Yao, "Dign¹ga and four types of perception", JIP 32, 2004, 57-79

268.10.173 Helmut Krasser, Helmut Krasser, "Are Buddhist pramanavadins non-Buddhistic? Dignaga and Dharmakirti on the impact of logic and epistemology on emancipation”, Horn 11, 2004, 129-146

268.10.175 Dan Arnold, "Dignaga's transformation of Buddhist Abhidharma", BBB 18-31

268.10.177 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Pramanas and language: a dispute between Dignaga, Dharmakirti and Akalanka", JIP 33, 2005, 343-400

268.10.178 Pramod Kumar, "A critical examination of Dinnaga's views on sentences", EAW 57, 2007, 391-394

268.10.180 Toshikazu Watanabe, "On svarupa and visesa in Dignaga's theory of paksabhasa", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 198

268.10.185 V. N. Jha, "Dignaga and Indian logic", QJMS 99.3-4, 2008, 88-97

268.10.188 V. S. Saibaba, "Dignaga's conception of ultimate reality", QJMS 99.3-4, 2008, 81-87

268.10.190 Toshikazu Watanabe, "On anapaksa", JIBSt 56.3, 2008, 109-115

268.10.102 Hisataka Ishida, "A newly discovered dignaga fragment in Sanskrit", JIBSt 57.3, 2009, 99-103

268.10.102.5 Shoryu Katsura, "Rediscovering Dignaga through Jinendrabuddha”, BudMC

268.10.104 Dan Arnold, "Self-awareness (svasamvitti) and related doctrines of Buddhists following Dignaga: philosophical characterizations of some of the main issues", JIP 38, 2010, 323-378

268.10.105 Amita Chatterjee, "Dinnaga on mental models: a reconstruction", PEW 60, 2010, 315-340

268.10.196 Horst Lasic, "A hot dispute about lukewarm air: Dignaga on apoha-vada", LBIP 509-526

268.10.200 Birgit Kellner, "Self-awareness (svasamvedana) as infinite regress: a comparison of arguments by Dignaga and Dharmakirti", JIP 39, 2011, 411-426

268.10.203 Ole Pind, "Dignaga’s apoha theory: its presuppositions and main theoretical implications”, Apoha 64-83

268.10.205 Kiyokuni Shigu, "Remarks on the origin of all-inclusive pervasion", JIP 37, 2011, 521-534

268.10.208 Tom Tillemans, "How to tallk about ineffable things: Dignaga and Dharmakirti on apoha”, Apoha 1-49

268.10.210 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "How to refer to a thing by a word: another difference between Dignaga and Kumarila's theories of denotation", JIP 39, 2011, 575-587

268.10.2015 Wung Yung Kang, "The tpology of jati-s indicated by Dinngsand development of Dinnaga’s thought”, JIP 40, 2012, 615-633

268.10.2016 Helmut Krasser, "Bhaviveka, Dharmakirti and Kumarila”, JBFV 535-594

 
 

268A.Triratnadasa (510)

       1.Prajnaparamitapindarthavivarana

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368


269.Author Unknown (515)

       1.Rajaparikatharatnamalasutra (T.1656)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368

269.1.1 Edited and translated by Jeffrey Hopkins, Anne Klein and Lati Rimpoche as The Precious Garland. The Song of the Four Mindfulnesses (causing the rain of achievement to fall). London 1975, 1976


270.Author Unknown (515)

        1.Vijayamatrsiddhi

Cf. EnIndPh9, 203, 369

 
 

270A.Author Unknown (515)

         1.Vidyapravartanasastra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368

 
 

270B.Author Unknown (515)

         1.Vidyanirdesasastra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368

 
 

270C.Author Unknown (515)

         1.Tryalaksanasastra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369

 
 

270D.Jina (515)

         1.Anakaracintaraja

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369

 
 

270E.Jina (515)

         1.Mustiprakaranasastra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369

 
 

270F.Author Unknown (515)

          1.Life of Vasubandhu

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369

 
 

270G.Author Unknown (515)

          1.Buddhabhidharmasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369

 
 

270H.Vasuvarman (515)

           1.Catuhsatyasastra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369


271.Mahanama (520)

       1.Saddhammappakasini on the Patisambhidamagga

See 7.1.4:1-2, 4; 9.1.9. Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 369-370

271.1.1 Edited in Thai script. Bangkok 1921, 1922, 1970, 1980, 1984, 1987, 1988, 1990, 1991

271.1.2 Edited Colombo 1927

271.1.3 Edited by Cintamani Vinayaka Joshi. PTS Text Series 103-105. London 1933, 1947, 1979

271.1.4 Edited in Burmese script. Rangoon 1958


272.Author Unknown (520?)

       1.Mahayanabhisamayasutra (T.673-674)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 370-371


273.Author Unknown (520)

       1.Mahaghanavyuhasutra (T.673)


274.Asvabhava (520)

       1.Tika on Kambala's Alokamala

274.1.1 Shodo Kurihara, "Asvabhava's commentary on Alokamala", JIBSt 37.2, 1989, 10-13.


       2.Upanibandha on Asanga's Mahayanasamgraha (NCat I, 485)

See a174.7.22. t174.7.1. Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 371

274.2.1 Noriaki Hakamaya, "On a versed quoted in the Tibetan translation of the Mahayanasamgrahopanibandhana", JIBSt 22.2, 1974, 17-21


       3.Tika on Asanga's Mahayanasutralamkara (NCat I, 485)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 371

274.3.1 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Asvabhava's commentary on the Mahayanasutralamkara IX.56-76", JIBSt 20.1, 1971, 23-31

274.3.2 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Asvabhava's and Sthiramati's commentaries on the Mahayanasutralamkara XIV. 34-35", JIBSt 27.1, 1978, 12-16

 
 

274A.Vinitabhadra (520)

        1.Bhasya on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakosakarika

274A.1.1 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 370


275.Author Unknown (525)

       1.Ekadasamukhihrdayasutra (T.1069-1071)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 371


276.Author Unknown (525)

       1.Pitapitarasamagamahrdayasutra (T.310(16), 320; Toh. 60)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 371, 370


277.Dramidacarya (525?)(NCAT IX, 177)

       1.Bhasya on Badarayana's Brahmasutras (NCat IX, 178)


       2.Bhasya on Brahmanandin's Chandogyopanisadvakya (NCat VII,117)


       3.General

See EnIndPh 9, 2003, 379; a156.1.1; 256.2.1

277.3.1 V.Krishnamacharya, "Tanka and Dramida", Dhruva III, 222-225



277A.Kambala or Kampala or Kambarambara (Pada) (525)

       1.Abhisamayapanjika (NCat III, 169)


       2.Alokamala

277A.1.0 Translated by Christian Lindtner. WZKS 41, 1977, 159-206. Reprinted, with translation and an Appendix on cittamatra, Fremont, Calif. 2003

277A.1.1 Discussed in Christian Lindtner, "Adversaria Buddhica", WZKSOA 26, 1982, 167-194

277A.2.2 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan and translated by Christian Lindtner, "A treatise on Buddhist idealism: Kambala's Alokamala", MiscB 109-219.

277A.2.3 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 372-377

277A.2.5 Burkhard Scherer, "Kambala's Alokamala and the perils of philology", BudSR 23.2, 2006, 259-264


       3.(Navasloki)Pindartha on Astasahasrikaprajnaparamitasutra (NCat III, 169)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 378-379

277A.3.1 Edited and translated by Tucci in MBT 216-217, 225-231

277A.3.2 Edited by Janardan Pandey. BLSam 1-9


       4.Prajnaparamitoopadesa (NCat III, 109)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379


        5.Saptaslokibhagavatiprajnaparamitasutra (NCat III, 169)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379


       6.Tattvaprabhasakaranadipa (NCat III, 168)

Cf. EnIndP, 2003, 379


       8.General

277A.8.1 Shodo Kurihara, "The classification of Kambala's school", JIBSt 39.2, 1991, 42-49


278.Prasastapada (530)

       1.Padarthadharmasamgraha (Vaisesika)

See EFNW2; a29.1:51, 54, 75. a867.8.1. e29.1:12, 14,31,47. e29.1.30.1, 268.12.1

278.1.1 Edited, with Sridhara's Nyayakandali, by V.P. Dvivedin. VizSS 6, 1895

278.1.2 Translated, with Sridhara's Nyayakandali, by Ganganatha Jha. Pan n.s. 25, 1903 - 37, 1915. Reprinted Banaras 1916; Varanasi 1982. Portions reprinted in Source Book 397-423

278.1.3 Edited, with Vyomasiva's Vyomavati, Padmanabha Misra's Setu and Jagadisa's Sukti, by Gopinatha Kaviraj and Dundhiraja Sastri. ChSS 61, 1924-31

278.1.4 Edited with Jagadisa's Sukti by Kalipada Tarkacarya. SSPS 15, 1925

278.1.5 Portions translated in Henry N. Randle, Indian Logic in the Early Schools. Oxford 1930; Delhi

278.1.6 A.Vasudeva Jha, "A lost work of Prasastapada", PAIOC 20, 1959, 299-302

278.1.7 Edited with Sridhara's Nyayakandali by Durgadhara Jha Sarma. Ganganatha Jha Granthamala l, Varanasi 1963, 1977, 1997

278.1.8 George Chemparathy, "The various names for the famous Vaisesika work of Prasastapada", Rtam 1.1, 1960, 23-28

278.1.8.1 George Chemparathy, "The Isvara doctrine of Prasastapada", VIJ 6, 1968, 2-23

278.1.9 George Chemparathy, "Prasastapada and his other names", IIJ 12, 1970, 241-254

278.1.10 Lambert Schmithausen, "Zur Lehre von der vorstellungsfreien Wahrnehmung bei Prasastapada", WZKSOA 14, 1970, 125-130

278.1.11 Edited, with Udayana's Kiranavali and Laksanavali, by J.S.Jetly. GOS 154, 1971

278.1.11.9 Kadamabari Haravu, Concepts in the Vaisesika darsana and the Prasastapadabhasya from the Perspective of Physics. Ph. D. Thesis, University of Texas (Austin), 1974

278.1.12 Kadambari Haravu, "Concept of matter in the Vaisesika darsana and the Prasastapada Bhasya from the perspective of physics", JKUOML 20, 1975, 21-39

278.1.13 Kadambari Haravu, "Concept of space in the Vaisesika darsana and the Prasastapada Bhasya compared with those of physics", JKUOML 20, 1975, 77-92

278.1.14 Selections translated in HTR 106-107

278.1.15 Summarized by Karl H. Potter. EnIndPh2, 1977, 282-303

278.1.16 Wilhelm Halbfass, "Prasastapada's concept of substance (dravya)", LSFV 537-544

278.1.16.0 Edited from Gajiyabada, U.P. 1984

278.1.16.1 Edited with Sridhara's Nyayakandali, Naracandra Suri's Tippani, Rajasekhara Suri Panjika, and Sidila Vommideva's Nyayakusumodgama, by J.S.Jetly and Vasant G. Parikh. GOS 14, 1991.

278.1.16.2 S. Peeru Kanna, The Critical Study of Prasastapadabhasya. Delhi 1992

278.1.17 Masanobu Nozawa, "Prasastapada's theory of fallacious reasons", ZDMG Supplement 9, 1992, 657-658

278.1.18 Claudius Nenninger, Aus guten Grund. Prasastapadas anumana-Lehre und die drei Bedingungen der logischen Grundern. Reinbek 1992

278.1.19 Johannes Bronkhorst and Yves Ramseier, Word Index to the Prasastapadabhasya. Delhi 1994

278.1.19.1.Claus Oetke, "Prasastapada's views on the 'antinomic reason' and their consequences for the theory of default reasoning", AS 48, 1994, 845-866

278.1.20 Yasuhiro Okazaka, "Prasastapada's definition of sense-organs: a note on the development of early Vaisesika", JIBSt 42.2, 1994, 4-8

278.1.21 Edited with Sridhara's Nyayakandali by Durgadhara Jha Sarma. Varanasi 1997

278.1.22 Victoria Lyssenko, "La connaissance suprarationale chez Prasastapada", AS 52, 1998, 85-116

278.1.30 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Water and ocean", IIJ 45.1, 2002, 45-49

278.1.33 Daya Krishna, "Prasastapada's mapping of the realm of qualities: a neglected chapter in Indian philosophy", JICPR 20.1, 2003, 115-124. Reprinted in IPACP

278.1.35 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 165-250

278.1.38 Katsunori Hirano, "The genesis of commentary texts in an ancient India: from a quotation theory viewpoint", CTCIP 37-46

278.1.39 Saccidananda Misrta, "What do the terms murta and amurta exactly mean in Padarthadharmasamgraha", JICPR 23.3, 2006, 215-221

278.1.39.5 Victoria Lysenko, Prasastapada: the Collection of the Charateristics of Categories. Moscow 2006

278.1.40 Hirofumi Miura, "the causal distinction of cognition in Prasastapadabhasya", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 154-155

278.1.45 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Aristotle and Prasastapada on the genesis of universals", ITaur 33, 2007, 319-334. In Spanish Pensiamento 64, 2008, 433ff.

278.1.48 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Ether in Kant and akasa in Prasastapada: philosophy in comparative perspective" (in Spanish). Pensiamento 65, 2009, 1013

278.1.51 Victoria Lysenko, "Buddhist motives in some doctrines of prasastapada”, Vacaspativaibhavan 1223-1253

278.1.52 Section on inherence translated, studied in NVPTS.

278.1.55 Anna-Pya Sjödin, "The girl who knew her brother would be coming home: Arsajnana Prasastapadabhasya, Nyayakandali and Vyomavati”, JIP 40, 2012, 469-488

278.1.60 Takanori Suzuki, "On the validity of commentarial approaches among the commentators on the Padarthadharmasamgraha: a considerationof the natureof theVaisesika school”, WVTIP 137-153


278A.Dharmadasa (530)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379


278B.Author Unknown (530)

       1.Suvikrantavikramanipariprcchasutra (Prajnaparamita)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379-380

278B.1.1 Tokumyo Matsumoto, Die Prajnaparamita-Literatur. Nebst einem Specimen der Suvikrantavikrama-Prajna-paramita. BonnOS 1, Stuttgart 1932

278B.1.2 Tokumyo Matsumoto, "The second chapter of the Suvikranta- vikramapariprccha" in P. Kahle, Studien zur Geschichte und Kultur des Nahen und Fernen Ostens

278B.1.3 Edited by Tokumyo Matsumoto, Aryasuvikranta vikramipariprccha-prajna-paramita nirdesa sardhavisahasrika bhagavatarya prajnapradipa Tokyo 1956

278B.1.4 Edited by Ryusho Hikata Fukuoka Committee for Dr. Hikata's Retirement. Fukuoka 1958. Reprinted in Mahayanasutrasamgraha 1, 1961. Summary in JSR 11, 1960, 49-51

278B.1.5 Parts translated in Conze, Selected Sayings

278B.1.6 Hiromasa Tosaki, "Remarks on J.W.de Jong's notes on the Suvikrantavikramanipariprccha-Prajnaparamita text", JIBSt 31.2, 1983, 8-12

 
 

278C.Gunamati or Gunasri (530)

       1.Laksanusarinitika

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 380-381

278C.1.1 Section translated in Hakuju Ui, The Vaisesika Philosophy (Cambridge 1917), 74-77; ChSSSt 22, 1962.

278C.1.2 Megumu Honda, "Samkhya reported by Paramartha in the Buddhist canon", JIBSt 21.1, 1972, 7-18


         2.Pratityasamutpadaivibhanganirdesatika

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 381


         3.Tika on Vasubandhu's Vyakhyayukti

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 381

 
 

278D.Author Unknown (534)

          1.Padmamukha- or Pundarikamukha-sastra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382


279.Author Unknown (535)

       1.Mahakarunapundarikasutra (T.380; Toh. 111)

279.1.1 Chapter 1 translated into French in Feer, 158-175

279.1.2 Leon Feer, "Entretiens du Bouddha et le Brahma, sur l'origine des choses, traduit du tibetain", CIDO Paris 1873, 473-496


281.Author Unknown (535)

       1.Sriguptasutra (T.545)


282.Author Unkown (535)

       1.Tathagatasrisamayasutra (T.397(16))

 
 

283.Author Unknown (536)

        1.Sutra on the good qualities of rare comparison

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382


283A.Author Unknown (537)

       1.Dvadasabuddhakasutra (T.1348-1349)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382


283AA.Author Unknown (537)

        1.Amoghapasahrdayasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 382

283AA.1.1 R. O. Meisezahl, "The Amoghapasahrdaya Dharani: the early Sanskrit manuscript of the Reiunji critically edited and translated", Monumenta Nipponica 17, 1962, 265-328


283B.Author Unknown (546)

        1.Agrapradipadharanividyaraasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383


284.Author Unknown (550)

       1.Dharmadhatuprakrtyasambhedanirdesasutra (T.310(8))

Cf. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 382


286.Author Unknown (540)

       1.Candrottaradikarikavyakaranasutra (T.480)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382

286.1.1 Ratna Handurakande, "Candrottaradikarikavyakaranasutra", EnBud 3.4, 1977, 657

286.1.2 Partly translated in Paul 193-199 and the German translation, 199-205

286.1.3 Jens Braarvig and Paul Harrison, "Candrottaradikavyakarana", ManSC 2, 51-68


287.Author Unknown (541)

       1.Bhadrapalasresthipariprcchasutra (T.310(39), 347; Toh.83)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382

287.1.1 Translated Treasury 223-237


287A.Author Unknown (544)

        1.Pancasahasrapancasatabuddhanamasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383


287B.Author Unknown (544)

         1.Acintyagunasarvabuddhaparigrahasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383


287C.Author Unknown (544)

          1.Mahadharmolkadharanisutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383


287D.Author Unknown (545)

           1.Sarvadharmavacarasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383


287E.Author Unknown (545)

           1.Mahasannipatavadanarajasutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383


287F.Author Unknown (546)

           1.Mahabaladharmaikadharanisutra

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383


287G.Author Unknown (546)

            1.Sutra on the Bodhisattva Akincana

Cf. EnIndPh2003, 384


289.Author Unknown (550)

       1.Karmavaranapratiprasrabdhisutra (T.1493)


290.Author Unknown (550)

       1.Manjusriviharasutra (T.470-471)


292.Author Unknown (550)

       1.Varmavyuhanirdesasutra (T.310(7))


293.Mallavadin Ksamasramana (550)

       1. (Dvadasara) Nayacakra (Jain)

See e29.1.41

293.1.1 Edited, with Simhasuragani's Nyayagamanusarini, by Vijayalabdhisuri. Chhani 1948-60. Four parts

293.1.2 Jambuvijaya Muni, "Literature known to Mallavadi, the author of Nayacakra, and the commentator Simhasuragani", PAIOC 14.3, Summaries 1948, 15

293.1.3 Edited, with Simhasuragani's Nyayagamanusarini, by M. Caturvijayaji and L.B.Gandhi. GOS 116, 1952

293.1.4 Erich Frauwallner, "The edition of Mallavadi's Dvadasaranayacakram", WZKSOA 1, 1957, 147-152

293.1.5 Edited, with Simhasuragani's Nyayagamanusarini, by Jambuvijaya Muni. Two parts. Bhavnagar 1976

293.1.6 Summarized in George B. Burch, "Seven-valued logic in Jain philosophy", IPQ 4.1, 1964, 68-93

293.1.7 Edited, with Simhasuragani's commentary, by Muni Jambuvijaya. Bhavnagar 1966-1988. Three volumes

293.1.8 Summarized in K.K.Dixit, Jaina Ontology (LDS 31, 1971), 114-122

293.1.9 A. Wezler, "Studien zum Dvadasaranayacakra des Svetambara Mallavadin", Gedankenschrift für Ludwig Alsdorf. Alt- und Neu-Indische Studien herausgegeben vom Seminar fur Kultur und Geschichte Indiens an der Universitat Hamburg, 23. Studien zum Jainismus und Buddhismus (Wiesbaden, n.d.), 359-408.

293.1.10 Aruna Ranjan Mishra, "Mallavadi Ksamasramana on the self-effulgence of objects", JLE 112-122

293.1.15 Albrecht Wiezler, "Studien zum Dvadasaranayacakra des Svetambara Mallavadin I: The twelve aras of the Dvadasara-naya-cakra and their relation to the canon as seen by Mallavadin", EJPR 13-23

293.1.20 Summarized by Erich Frauwallner, Jambuvijaya, Jan Willem de Jong and K.K.Dixit. EnIndPh10, 2007, 201-210


294.Bhavya or Bhavaviveka (550)

See a236.1.8; 268.7.60

       1.Karatalaratna (Madhyamika) (NCat III, 177)

294.1.1 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "L'auteur du joyau dans la main", MCB 2, 1932-33, 60-67

294.1.2 Translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. MCB 2, 1932-33, 60-67

294.1.3 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "Madhyamikas and the tathata", IHQ 9, 1933, 30-31

294.1.4 Restored from Chinese into Sanskrit and summarized in 32 pages by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. VBA 2, 1949, 1-124. Reprinted as VBS 9, 1949

294.1.5 Summarized by N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Bhavaviveka and his method of exposition", PAIOC 10, 1941, 285-295

294.1.6 Summaried by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 384-397


       2.Madhyamakahrdaya and Tarkajvala on it (Madhyamaka) (NCat VIII,112)

See a29.1.70

294.2.1 Slokas of Chapter 5 edited in Tibetan and translated into Japanese by Susumu Yamaguchi in his Bukkyo ni okeru Mu to U tono Tairon. Kyoto 1941

294.2.2 Chapter 8, karikas 1-16 edited in Tibetan by Hajime Nakamura. ?IIJ 2, 1958, 181-190

294.2.3 Chapter 8, karikas 1-16 reconstructed into Sanskrit, with translation of autocommentary thereon, by V.V.Gokhale. IIJ 2, 1958, 165-180. Gokhale's copy of text photographed, published by Shrikant S. Bahulkar, Sambhasa 15, 1994

294.2.4 Karikas of Chapter 5 edited in Tibetan and partially translated by V.V.Gokhale. IIJ 5, 1962, 271-275

294.2.5 Hajime Nakamura, "The Vedanta as presented by Bhavya", JOI 14, 1965, 287-296

294.2.6 V.V.Gokhale, "The second chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamakahrdaya", IIJ 24, 1972, 40-45

294.2.7 Shinjo Kawasaki, "A reference to maya in the Tibetan translation of the Tarkajvala", JIBSt 23.2, 1975, 14-20

294.2.8 Shinjo Kawasaki, "Quotations in the Mimamsa chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamakahrdayakarika", JIBSt 22.2, 1974, 1-8

294.2.9 Chapter 8 partially edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan in Hajime Nakamura, "The Vedantic chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamakahrdaya", ALB 39, 1975, 300-329

294.2.10 Shotaro Iida, "The nature of samvrti and the relationship of paramartha to it in Svatantrika-Madhyamika", PTT 64-77

294.2.11 Nathan Katz, "An appraisal of the Sautrantika-Prasangika debates", PEW 26, 1976, 253-268

294.2.11.1 Shinjo Kawasaki, "The Mimamsa chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamaka-hrdaya-karika--text and translation", Studies 1976, Institute of Philosophy, University of Tsukuba (Sept. 1977), pp. 1-15; Studies No. 12 (March 1987), pp. 1-23; Studies No. 13 (March 1988), pp. 1-42

294.2.12 Karikas of Chapter One, translated. with translation of Tarkajvala thereon, by V.V.Gokhale and S.S.Bahulkar. MiscB 76-108

294.2.13 Olle Qvarnstrom, "The Vedantatattvaviniscaya-chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamikahrdayakarika", WZKS 23, 1989; WZKSOA 34, 1990, 123-146. Also Lund Studies in African and South Asian Religions, Volume 4, Lund 1989

294.2.13.1 Chapters 9-10 edited in Shinjo Kawasaki, Issaicho shiso no kenkyu. Tokyo 1992

294.2.13.5 Shinjo Kawasaki, "Discrepancies in the Sansktit and Tibetan texts of Bhavya's Madhyamaka-hrdaya-Tarkajvala (the IXthe and Xth chapters", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 131-144

294.2.14 Shinjo Kawasaki, "Principle of life according to Bhavya", RIBP 69-82

294.2.15.Malcolm David Eckel, To See the Buddha: A Philosopher''s Quest for the Meaning of Emptiness. Princeton, N.J. 1994

294.2.16 Annette L. Heitmann, "Erörterungen zum Begriff "Gnosis" (jnana), wie er in den Madhyamakahrdayakarika und der in tibetischer Übersetzung erhaltenen Tarkajvala I-V definiert wird", ActO 56, 1995, 144-161

294.2.17 Annette L. Heitmann, "Momentane (*ekaksana) Gnosis (jnana) im Sinne der Madhyamakahrdayakarika und der in tibetischer Übersetzung vorleigenden Tarkajvala I-IV", AS 49.2, 1995, 391-427

294.2.17.5 Edited b Christian Lindtner. Adyar Library Pamphlet Seires 48. Madras 1995

294.2.18 Chapter Five (Yogacaratattvaviniscaya) edited by Christian Lindtner. ALB 59, 1995, 37-65

294.2.18.5 Selections from Chapter Four translated in Peter Skilling, "Citations 'from the scriptures of the 'eighteen schools' in the Tarkajvala", BVSK 605-614

294.2.18.7 Vincent Eltschinger, "Bhavaviveka et Dharmakirti sur agama et cntre de Mimamsa", AS 52, 1998, 57-84

294.2.18.8 Chapters 1-3 translated into German by Annette L. Heitmann. Copenhagen 1998

294.2.19 Chapters 1-5, 8-9 translated into Danish by Christian Lindtner in LindH 118-241

294.2.19.1 Jens Braarvig, "Bhavya on mantras: apologetic endeavours on behalf of the Mahayana", StudiaInd4 31-40

294.2.19.2 Edition and translation of Chapter 9 in Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya on Mimamsa", StudiaInd4 91-124; also ALB 63, 1999, 245-304

294.2.20 Book III.137-146 translated by Chikefumi Watanabe. JIABS 21.1, 1998, 125-156

294.2.25 Chikafumi Watanabe, "Bhaviveka on invalidations by pratyaksa and pratiti: the Madhyamakahrdayakarika III.176-181", ABORI 80, 2000, 155-166

294.2.27 Edited by Chistian Lindtner. Adyar Library Series 123, 2001

294.2.28 Summarized by V.V.ogokhale, Shotaro Iida, Jay Hirabayashi, Christian Lindtner, K.H.Potter and Olle Qvarnstrom. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 397-422

294.2.32 Chapters 4-5 edited and translated, with the Tarkajvala, by Malcolm David Eckel as Bhaviveka and his Buddhist Opponents. Cambridge, Mass. 2008

29.2.34 Tsuyoshi Yasuma, "Bhaviveka to Tarkajvala (Bh ad TJ)”, Report of the Japanese Association for Tibetan Studies 54, 2008, 47-62

294.2.35 I-III translated into German in Annette L. Heitmann, Buddhist Lehre Indiens (Hamburg 2009)

294.2.40 Chickafumi Watanabe, "Madhyamakahrdayakarika III.147-158", SHANA 545-551


        3.Prajnapradipa or Madhyamakaratnapradipa on Nagarjuna's Madhyamakakarikas

See a47.4,69; e47.4:9,61

294.3.1 Five stanzas translated in Stanislas Schayer, "Notes and queries on Buddhism", RO 11, 1936, 206-213

294.3.2 Chapter One translated into German by Yuichi Kajiyama. WZKSOA 7, 1963 - 8, 1964. Reprinted StudBudPhilos 417-474

294.3.3 Toyoki Mitsukawa, "On the philosophical background of Bhavaviveka and Candrakirti--from the citation of sutras and treatises in their commentaries on the Mulamadhyamakakarikas" (summary). RDR 376, 1964, 74-75

294.3.4 Masamichi Ichigo, "Madhyamika's argument against the soul-theory of the Vaisesika and Naiyayika--as it appears in Prajnapradipa xviii" (summary). ToG 34, 1967, 7-8

294.3.5 Ryushin Uryuzu, "The middle stanzas XXIV-6", JIBSt 36, 1970, 1009-1017

294.3.6 Yasunori Ejima, "A study on Bhavaviveka (1): Sunyata and logic" (in Japanese with English summary). TBKK 51, 1970, 39-177

294.3.7 Koichi Furusake, "A study of the two-fold truth philosophy in Mahayana Buddhism with special reference to the Aryasatyapariksa chapter of the Prajnapradipa" (in Japanese with English summary). OKDKH 25.3, 1977, 117-131

294.3.8 Shotaro Iida, Reason and Emptiness. A Study in Logic and Mysticism. Tokyo 1980

294.3.10 R.N.Pandey, "Bhavaviveka's philosophical criticism of reductio ad absurdum", JDBSDU 7, 1983, 13-20

294.3.11 Koichi Furusaka, "The sutra quoted in the Prajnapradipa and a concordance of its two Tibetan translations" (in Japanese with English summary). OKDKJ 32.1, 1984, 25-36

294.3.12 Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya's contrtoversy with Yogacara in his appendix to Prajnapradipa XXV", Tib. Bud. Kor. 2, 1984, 77-97

294.3.13 M. David Eckel, "Bhavaviveka's critique of Yogacara philosophy in Chapter 25 of the Prajnapradipa", MiscB 25-75

294.3.15 William Longstreet Ames, Bhavaviveka's Prajnapradipa: Six Chapters. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Washington 1986

294.3.15.1 Daniel Ferrer, "Bhavaviveka's abridged meaning of the middle position", TJ 17.2, 1992, 52-55

294.3.16 Shotaro Iida, "Buddhist critique of Samkhya-Yoga--Asvaghosa and Bhavaviveka", ZDMG Supplement 9, 1992, 176-177

294.3.17 Chapter One translated by William L. Ames, JIP 21, 1993, 209-260; 22, 1994, 93-116

294.3.18 Chapter Two translated by William L. Ames, JIP 23, 1995, 295-365

294.3.19 Annette L. Heitmann, Testcritischen Beitrag zu Bhavyas Madhyamakakarikas, Kapital 1-3: Ausgabe der Textes nach indischen und tibetschen Quelle. Copenhagen 1998

294.3.20 Summaried by C.Lindtner and K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 422-442

294.3.25 Koichi Furusaka, "Views of the four noble truths in Mahayana Buddhist sutra texts quoted in the Aryasatyapariksa chapter of the Prajnapradipa", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 160

294.3.28 Hirotaka Miiyamoto, "Bhaviveka's understanding of vyavaharasatya as expressedin the fifteenth chapter of his Prajnapradipa: in liglht of the Sautrantika theory in the Abhidharmakosabhasya", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 170-171

294.3.30 Chiaki Ozawa, "Sapeksa in the Prajnapradipa", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 201

    4.Madhyamakarthasamgraha

294.4.1 Restored into Sanskrit and translated by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. JOR 5, 1931, 41-49

294.4.2 Translated in Christian Lindtner, "Atisa's introduction to the two truths", JIP 7, 1981, 200. This reprinted in EnBudP 9, 2003, 442-443

294.4.3 Translated by Daniel Ferrer, TJ 17.2, 1992, 52-55


    4A.Madhyamakaratnapradipa

294.4A.1 Christian Lindtner, "On the authority of Madhyamakaratnapradipa" in his "Adversaria Buddhica", WZKSOA 26, 1981, 167-194

294.4A.2 Christian Lindtner, "On Bhavya's Madhyamakaratnapradipa", ITaur 12, 1984, 163184

294.4A.2.5 .Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya's critique of Yogacara in the Madhyamakaratnapradipa, Chapter IV", BLE 239-264

294.4A.3 Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya's critique of Yogacara in I-V definiert wird", ActO 56, 1995, 144-161.8l

294.4A.4 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 443-457

294.4A.6 Izumi Miyazaki, "On 'bdag gis bkod pa rTag ge 'bar ba' in the Madhyamakaratnapadipa", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 200-201


     5.General

See a200.1.8. a47.16.31; 294.10: 173, 216. b50.2.16.1

294.5.1 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "Nanjio's 1185: Bhavaviveka", JRAS 1903, 581-583

294.5.1.5 N. Aiyasvami Shastri, "Bhavaviveka and his method of exposition", PAIOC 10, 1941, 286-295

294.5.2 Sebun Fukaura, "Controversy between Dharmapala and Bhavaviveka" (summary), RDR 345, 1952

294.5.3 Yuichi Kajiyama, "Bhavaviveka and the Prasangika school", NNMRP I, 289-331

294.5.3.5 Yuichi Kajiyama, "An examination of the syllogism of Bhavaviveka", NBGKN 26, 1961, 1-16

294.5.4 Megumu Honda, "Samkhya philosophy described by its opponent Bhavya", JIBSt 31, 1967, 436-442

294.5.5 Shotaro Iida, An Introduction to Svatantrika-Madhyamika. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin 1968; Ann Arbor 1997

294.5.6 Y.Kajiyama, "Bhavaviveka, Sthiramati and Dharmapala", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 193-203. Reprinted StudBudPhilos 177-188

294.5.7 Takeki Okuzumi, "Candrakirti's refutation of Bhavaviveka in the first chapter of the Prasannapada", JIBSt 33, 1968, 136-138

294.5.8 Upali Karunaratne, "Bhavaviveka", EnBud 3.1, 1971, 21-22

294.5.9 Shotaro Iida, "Agama (scripture) and yukti (reason) in Bhavaviveka", in Treatises on Indian and Buddhist Studies: A Commemoration Volume for the 70th Birthday of Dr. Prof. E. Kanakura (Tokyo 1971), 85-91

294.5.10 Malcolm D. Eckel, "Bhavaviveka and early Madhyamika theories of language", PEW 23, 1978, 323-328. Reprinted in BCCRS 127-142

294.5.10.1 Malcolm David Eckel, A Question of Nihilism: Bhavaviveka's Response to the Fundamental Problem of Madhyamika Philosophy. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1980

294.5.10.5 Shotaro Iida, "Bhavaviveka's argument for the omniscience of the Buddha", Proceedings of the Fifth World Sanskrit Conference. International Association of Sanskrit Studies. Hq. R.N.Dandekar and P.D.Navathe (New Delhi 1981), 524-535

294.5.10.7 Christian Llindtner, "Materials for the study of Bhavya", Kalyanamitraraganam 179-202

294.5.11 M. David Eckel, "Bhavaviveka's vision of reality: structure and metaphor in a Buddhist philosophical system", JAAR 55, 1987, 39-56.

294.5.11.1 Chrisian Lindtner, "Bhavya, the logician", ALB 50, 1986, 58-84; also VBA n.s. 2, 1990, 30-50

294.5.12 John F.G. Gregory, The Divining of the Middle Path: Bhavaviveka and the Prajnaparamita Tradition. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Hawaii 1987

294.5.13 J. Sitaramamma, "Bhavaviveka: his life and works", QJMS 79, 1988, 384-390

294.5.14 D. Seyfort Ruegg, "On the authorship of some works ascribed to Bhavaviveka/Bhavya", 7WSC2 59-71

294.5.15.3 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "Tsong kha pa et al on the Bhavaviveka-Candrakirti debate", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 315-326

294.5.15.5 John P. Keenan, Dharmapala's Yogacara Critique of Bhavaviveka's Explanation of Emptiness. Lewiston, 1997

294.5.15.7 P. Hoornaert, "Can emptiness be proven? the alogicality of Bhavaviveka's proof of emptiness", in Encounter of Wisdom between Buddhism and Science. Essays in Honour of Professor Keisho Tsukamoto on his Sixtieth Birthday (Tokyo 1993), 3-24

294.5.16.Musashi Tachikawa, "The concept of universal in Bhavaviveka's writings", AS 48, 1994, 891-902

294.5.16.2 Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya, Legs ldan 'byud–quoting and quoted", SCEAR 8, 1995, 90-97

294.5.16.5 A. L. Heitmann, "Bibliographie zur Bhavya-Literature", GSBL 106-154

294.5.17 Vincent Eltschinger, "Bhavaviveka et Dharmakirti sur agama et contre la Mimamsa", AS 52, 1998, 57-84

294.5.18 Akira Saito, "Bhavaviveka and the Madhy(anta)-vibhaga-(bhasya)", JIBSt 46.2, 1998, 23-29

294.5.21 Masamichi ichigo, "Santaraksita and Bhavaviveka as opponents of the Madhyamika in the Madhyamakaloka", WCSU 147-170

294.5.23 Paul Williams, "Bhavaviveka", EnB 1, 2001, 42

294.5.23.5 Jindo Nagashima, "The distinction between Svatantrika and Prasangika in late Madhyamaka: Atisa and Bhavya as Prasangika", Sambhasa 24, 2004, 65-98

294.5.24 Akira Saito, "Bhaviveka's theory of meaning", JIBSt 52.2, 2004, 24-31

294.5.27 Akira Saito, "Bhaviveka's theory of perception", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 100-108

294.5.30 Mayumi Nasu, "The connection between ultimate truth and analysis in Bhavaviveka's theory of two truths", BGP2, 43-53

294.5.35 Charles Goodman, "Bhavaviveka's arguments for emptiness", AsPOxford 18, 2008, 167-184

294.5.38 Masaki Tamura, "Bhaviveka on the proof of nihsvabhavata", JIBSt 57.3, 2009, 94-98

294.5.42 Masaki Tamura, "Bhaviveka's view of the conventional world as external object (bahyartha) and a conceptuial cognition (vikalpa)", JIBSt 58.3, 2010, 108-112

294.5.45 Helmut Krasser, "How to teach a Buddhist monk to refute the outsiders–text critical remarks on some works by Bhaviveka”, Dhih 51, 2011, 49-76

294.5.50 Olle Qvarnström, "Samkhya as portrayed by Bhavaviveka and Haribhadrasuri: early Buddhist and Jaina criticisms of Samkhya epistemology and the theory of reflection”, JIP 40, 2012, 395-409


295.Author Unknown (550)

       1.Manimekhalai (in Tamil)

295.1.1 Hermann Jacobi, "Über des Alter der Manimekhalai", ZII 5, 1927, 293-310. Reprinted in HJKS.

295.1.2 K.G.Sesha Aiyar, "The date of the Manimekhalai", JOR 1, 1927, 321-329

295.1.3 K.V.Ramchandran, "The age of Manimekhalai", JOR 2, 1928, 220-224

295.1.3.1 Sakkottai Krishnaswami Aiyangar, Manimekhalai in its Historical Setting. London 1928

295.1.4 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Manimekhalai's contributions to Indian logic", JOR 11, 1937, 116-128

295.1.5 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Central teachings of the Manimekhalai", JSVRI 2, 1941, 17-43

295.1.5.1 Summarized in V. Kanakasabhai, The Tamils Eighteen Hundred Years Ago. Second edition 1956

295.1.5.2 V. Kanakasabhai, The Great Twin-Epics of Tamil. Tirunelveli 1956

295.1.6 N.Balusvamy, Studies in Manimekhalai. Madurai 1965

295.1.6.1 Extracts translated by Rao Bahadur Krishnaswamy Aiyangar in Hissale Swami Dhammaratna, Buddhism in South India. Kandy 1968

295.1.7 V.Varadachari, "Treatment of the schools of religion and philosophy in the Manimekhalai". SVUOJ 14, 1971, 9-26

295.1.8 Prema Nandakumar, "Manimekhalai", AP 46, 1975, 20-25

295.1.9 S.N.Kandaswamy, Buddhism as Expounded in Manimekhalai. Annamalainagar 1978

295.1.10 Shu Hikosaku, "Tracing the origin of the Tamil epic Manimekhalai", JASSt 1.1, 1983, 84-115

295.1.11 Paula Sue Richman, The Religious Rhetoric in Manimekhalai. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Chicago, 1983

295.1.11.5 Ruth Wallden, "The presentation of Samkhya in the Manimekhalai", Kalyanamitraraganam 303-312

295.1.12 Translated into French by A. Danielou with T.V.Gopala Iyer, Manimekhalai ou le scandal de la vertu du Prince-Marchand Shattan. Paris 1987. This translated into English by T.V.Gopala Iyer, New York 1989; New Delhi 1993. Translated into Spanish, Palma de Mallorca 2007

295.1.13 Shu Hikosaka, "The age of Cilappatikaman and Manimekhalai", JASSt 4.2, 1988, 91-114

295.1.14 Paula S. Richman, Women, Branch Stories, and Religious Rhetoric in a Tamil Buddhist Text. Syracuse 1988

295.1.15 A. Veluppillai, "The Manimekhalai: historical background and organization of Buddhism", JAsSt 9, 1991, 1-22

295.1.15.5 Ruth Wallden, "Materialism as expounded in the Manimekhalai, the Nilakeci and the Civananacittiyar", OS 60, 1991, 246-251

295.1.16 G. John Samuel, "Cilapattikaram and Manimekhalai--the earliest Tamil epics of the heterdoxies", JASSt 11.2, 1994, 66-4

295.1.17 S. N. Kandaswamy, "Mahayana Buddhism in Manimekhalai", Bud IA 1996, 166-196

295.1.18 Peter Schalk, "A Buddhist woman's path to enlightenment", Acta Universitatis Uppsaliensis, Historia-Religionum 13 (Uppsala 1997), 223-239

295.1.19 Portions summarized by Paula Richman. EnIndPh9, 2003, 457-462

295.1.21 Sukla Chakrabarti, "Buddhism in Manimekhalai", JAIH 22, 2003-2004, 37-43

295.1.24 Prema Nandakumar, "Manimekhalai: physician to the hungry", PB 113, 2008, 543-546

 
 

296. Bhadrabahu (550)

       1.Avasyakasutraniryukti (Jain)

296.1.1 Edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Sisyahita, by Ernst Leumann. AKM 10.2, 1897

296.1.1.5 Edited, with Jinabhadra Gani's and Maladhari Hemacandra's commentaries, by Hargovinda Dasa. YJG 25, 27-28, 31, 33, 35, 37, 39, 1911-14

296.1.2 Edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Sisyahita, by Sagarananda. AgSS (Bombay 1916-1917). Corrected reprint 1981

296.1.2.1 Edited by Amolaka Rsiji Maharaja. Sikandarabad 1919

296.1.3 Edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Sisyahita and Maladhari Hemacandra's Tippana, by Kumudavijaya. DLP 53, 1920, 1988

296.1.3.1 Edited with Jinadasa Gani's Curni, by Ganadhara Gautama Svami. 2 volumes. Indore 1928-29

296.1.3.1.5 Sakkottai Krishnaswami Ayyangar, "The Buddhism of Manimekhalai", Buddh. St. 1931, 1-25

296.1.3.2 Sections translated into German, with Haribhadra Suri's Sisyahita and Maladhari Hemacandra's Tippana, by Walther Schubring in Ernst Leumann's Übersicht über die Avasyaka-Literature. Hamburg 1934.

296.1.3.3 Edited, with Jinabhadra's Visesavasyakabhasya and Kotyacarya's commentary. ASS 1936-37

296.1.3.3.1 Edited, with Malayagiri's commentary, in three volumes. Bombay 1936

296.1.3.4 Edited with Manikyasekhara Suri's Dipika, by Gopipura. Three volumes. Surat 1939-40

296.1.3.5 Edited by Ghasilalaji. 1951, 1958

296.1.3.6 Walther Schrubing, "150 Strophen Niryukti: ein Blick in die Jaina-Scholastik". BonnOS, New Series 3, 1955, 297-319. Translated in Walther Schubring, Kleine Schriften 321-343

296.1.4.1 Edited, with Jinabhadra Gani and Maladhari Hemacandra's commentaries, by Rajendravijaya. Two volumes.  1962-63

296.1.4.2 Edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Vrtti and Jnanasagara Suri's Avacuri. DLJP 108, Surat 1965.

296.1.4.3 Katrin Verclas, Die Avasyaka-Erzählungen über die Upasargas des Mahavira im Vergleich mit dem Versuchen des Bodhisattva in der buddhistischen Literature. Ph.D.Dissertation, U. of Hamburg 1978

296.1.5 Edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Tika by Merukala Kanayalala Kothari. 1979

296.1.6 Edited, with Haribhadra Suri's Sisyahita. Two volumes. Bombay 1981

296.1.7 Nalini Balbir, Études d'exegèse jaina: les Avasyaka.Thèse de Doctorat d'État, Paris 1986.

296.1.8 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisangraha.(Santipura, Saurastra 1989), pp. 455-475

296.1.9 Nalini Balbir, "Stories from the Avasyaka commentaries translated into English", in Phylllis Granoff (ed.), The Clever Adulteress and Other Stories: A Treasury of Jain Literature (Oakville, Ontario 1990), 17-74

296.1.9.1 Edited, with Municandra Suri's Panjika and Bhadrankarasuri's Bhadrankari, by Vikramasena. Madras 1990

296.1.10 Thomas Oberlies, Avasyaka-Studien (2): Glosser ausgewählten Wörter zu E. Leumann's 'Die Avasyaka-Erzählen'. Stuttgart 1993

296.1.11 Nalini Balbir, Avasyaka-Studien (1). Introduction generale et traductions. Two volumes. Stuttgart 1993

296.1.11.5 Edited and translated into Gujarati, with Maladhari Hemacandra"s Pradesavyakhya. Ahmedabad 1996. Two volumes.

296.1.15 Klaus Bruhn, "Bibliography of studies connected with the Avasyaka-commentaries", Catalogue of the Papers of Ernst Leumann in the Institute for the Culture and History of India and Tibet, University of Hamburg (cp. Birte Plutat). (Stuttgart 1998), 119-136


    2.Acaranganiryukti

296.2.1 Edited, with commentaries of Silanka, Jinahamsa Suri and Parsvacandra Suri, by Bhagavan Vijayasadhu. Calcutta 1879

296.2.2 Edited with Silanka's Vivrti. Mahesana 1916

296.2.3 Edited witih Silanka's Tika. Gopipura, Surat 1935

296.2.4 J. N. Sharma, A Critical Study of (the) Acaranga based on its Niryukti, Curni and Tika. Thesis, Bihrar University. Muzaffarpur 1974

296.2.5 Edited with Jinadasa Gani's Curni by Muni Punyavijaya. Ahmedabad 1975

296.2.6 Edited and translated into German by Willem B. Bollee. Two volumes. Wiesbaden 1977-1988

296.2.7 Edited with Kotyacarya's Tika by Jambuvijaya, Sagarananda Suri and (Punyavijaya Maharaja) Dharmacandravijaya. Delhi 1978

296.2.8 Edited with Silanka's Vrtti. Tripathi 1981

296.2.8.1 Bansidhar Bhatt, "Acara-culas and -niryukti Studies I", ITaur 14, 1987-88, 95-116

296.2.9 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisangraha (Santipura, Saurastra 1989).

296.2.10 Willem B. Bollee, The Nijuttis on the Seniors of the Svetambara Siddhanta: Acaranga, Dasaveyaliya, Uttarajhaya and Suyagada: text and selection glossary. Beitrage zur Sudasienforschung Sudasien-Institute Universitat Heidelberg 169, 1995

296.2.11 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipancaka. (Ladnum 1999)


    3.Dasavaikalikaniryukti

See b296.2.10

296.3.1 Ernst Leumann, "Dasavaikalikasutra und -niryukti auf ihren Erzählungsgehalt untersucht und herausgegeben", ZDMG 46, 1892, 581-663

296.3.2 A. M. Ghatage, "The Dasavaikalika-Niryukti", IHQ 11, 1935, 627-639

296.3.3 Edited by Kashinath Vasudev Abhyankar. Ahmedabad 1932

296.3.3.1 Edited with Agastya's Curni by Punyavijaya Muni. Varanasi 1973

296.3.4 Edited with Jinadasagani's Curni by Anandasagara. Ratlam 1989

296.3.5 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisangraha.(Santipura, Saurastra 1989), 328-364

296.3.6 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipancaka. (Ladnum 1999)


    4.Sutrakrtanganiryukti

See b296.2.10

296.4.1 Edited with Silanka's Tika. AgSS 18, 1917, 1978

296.4.1.1 Edited by Parasurama Lakshmana Vaidya. SBJ 2, Poona 1928

296.4.2 Edited with Silanka's Tika by Muni Manaka. Ahmedabad 1922-1932

296.4.3 Edited with Silanka's Tika by Ambikadatta Ojhe. Four volumes. Rajkot 1936-40

296.4.4 Edited by P. L. Vaidya. Poona 1928

296.4.5 Amrit Madhav Ghatage, "The Sutrakrtanga Niryukti", IHQ 12, 1936, 270-281

296.4.6 Edited with Jinadasa's Curni by Mohanlal M. Badami. Ratlam 1941

296.4.7 Edited with Silanka's Tika by Candrasagara Suri. Two volumes. Bombay 1950-53

296.4.8 Edited with Sadhuran(ga)gani Dipika by Buddhisagara Gani. Surat 1959, 1962

296.4.9 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisangraha.(Santipura, Saurastra 1989), 455-475

296.4.10 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipancaka. (Ladnum 1999)


    5.Uttaradhyananiryukti

See b296.2.10

296.5.1 Edited with Santyacarya (Vadivetala's) Sisyahita by Anandasagara. Two parts. Bombay 1915-18; Surat 1950

296.5.2 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisamgraha (Santipura, Saurashtra, 1989), 365-419

296.5.3 Edited with Bhavavijaya's Vrtti by Vijayendra Suri. Santipur, Saurashtra 1993

296.5.4 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipancaka. (Ladnum 1999)


297. Bhartrprapanca (550)

       1.General

297.1.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Fragments of Bhartrprapanca", PAIOC 3, 1924, 439-450. Reprinted IPS 2, 6-16

297.1.2 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Bhartrprapanca: an old Vedantin", IA 53, 1924, 77-86. Reprinted in IPS 1, 79-94

297.1.3 Satyadeva Misra, "Bhartrprapanca--a Vedantin of pre-Samkara era". JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 125-134. Also TVOS 25.1-2, 2000, 126-136

297.1.4 Selections translated in HTR 252-259

297.1.5 Arvind Sharma, "Some differences in the jnanakarmasamuccaya approach of Bhartrprapanca and Bhaskara", JOI 31, 1981, 113-116

297.1.6 Sharada Gadgil, "Bhartrprapanca and Samkara on the conception of ultimate reality" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 343

297.1.7 Shoun Hino, "Suresvara's criticism of Bhartrprapanca's view of liberation", AligarhJOS 1, 1984, 137-148

297.1.10 Takahiro Kato, "Bhaskara's Brahmasutrabhasya: an unpublished edition by J.A.B.Van Buitenen", WZKSOA 52-53, 209-2010, 295-306

297.1.11 Fragments summarized in EIP 15, 2013, 53-60


298.Candramati or Maticandra or Prajnacandra (550)

       1.Dasapadarthasastra (Vaisesika) (NCat VI, 363)

298.1.1 Hakuju Ui, Vaisesika Philosophy according to the Dasapadarthasastra. Chinese text, English translation and notes. London 1917; ChSSt 22, Banaras 1962

298.1.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Candramati und sein Dasapadarthasastram", BonnOS n.s. 3, 1955, 65-86

298.1.3 Restored into Sanskrit by Karunesha Shukla. JGJRI 19, 1963-63 - 20, 1963-65

298.1.4 Summarized by Masaaki Hattori. EnIndPh2, 1977, 275-281

298.1.5 Edited and translated in Keiichi Miyamoto, The Metaphysics and Epistemology of Early Vaisesikas. Bhandarkar Oriental Series 28. Pune 1996

298.1.6 S. Sankaranarayanan, "Dasapadarthi of Candramati--a study", ALB 60, 1996, 199-218

298.1.9 Discussed by Anantalal Thakur in ODVS 169-170


299.Siddhasena Divakara (550)

       1.(Astadasani)Dvatrimsika (Jain)(NCat I, 467; IX,l90)

299.1.0 Edited with Udayasagar Suri's Tika, by Vardhamana. Bhavnagar 1903

299.1.1 Edited, with Siddhasena Mahamati's Nyayavatara and Sanmatitarka, by Anandasagara. Bhavnagar 1908

299.1.2 Edited by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. Bharatiyavidya Granthavali Granthaloka 7, Ahmedabad 1932; Bombay 1945;

299.1.3 Edited, with editor's Kiranavali, by Lavanyasuri. Botad (Saurashtra) 1951-55

299.1.3.1 Edited Madras 1956

299.1.4 A.N.Upadhye (ed.), Siddhasena's Nyayavatara and Other Works (Bombay 1971). Includes edition of Dvatrimsika by M.Desai, edition and translation of Siddhasena's Sanmatitarka with Vinaya Vijaya's Nayakarnika by Desai, edition, with Siddharsigani's Vivrti, and translation of Nyayavatara by Satischandra Vidyabhusana and introductory essay "Siddhasena and his works" by Upadhye.

299.1.5 Edited by Vijayalavanyasuri. Bhotad 1977

299.1.5.3 Edited and translated into Gujarati by Muni Bhuvanacandra. Gandhiodhama-Kaccha 2002

299.1.5.5 Discussed by Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 427-428

299.1.5.7 Ram Kumar Ratnam and P. Vari Prasada Murthy Panchadas, "Buddhasantana Dvatrimsika of Siddhasena Divakara ©. A.D.400-444)", Prasadam 204-245

299.1.6 Summarized by P.N.Dave. EnIndPh10, 2007, 177-191


     4.Sanmatitarka

See a374.3:21, 21.5. e374.1.1. et374.1.4

299.4.1 Partially edited, with Abhayadevasuri's Vadamaharnava and editor's commentary, by Viracandra Dipacandra. YJG 13, 1910-17

299.4.2 Edited, with Abhayadevasuri's Vadamaharnava, by Sukhlalji Sanghvi and Bechardas Doshi. Five volumes. Ahmedabad 1921-31. Two volumes, Kyoto 1984

299.4.3 Gujarati translation by Sukhlalji Sanghvi and Bechardas Joshi of Allahabad 1932 translated into English by A.B.Athalye and A.S.Gopani, Banaras 1939. Section of this reprinted in Source Book 268-271. Also reprinted in two volumes, Kyoto 1984

299.4.4 Edited with editor Vijayadarsana Suri's Maharnavatarika. Madras 1956

299.4.5 Edited by Devendra Kumar Sastri as Sammai Suttam. Neemuch (M.P.) 1978; New Delhi 2003

299.4.6 Edited Kyoto 1984. Two volumes

299.4.6.5 Edited, with Abhayadeva Suri's Tattvabodhavidhayini, by Jayasundara Vijaya. Dholaka, Gujarat 1986

299.4.7 Edited with Abhayadeva Suri's Vyakhya and Jayasundaravijaya's commentary. Two volumes. Ahmedabad 1985-86

299.4.8 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2007, 191-201


        5.(Vadi) Gajagandhahastimahabhasya on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra (NCat VIII,80)


       6.General

299.6.0 Charlotte Krause, "Siddhasena Divakara and Vikramaditya" in Vikrama Volume (ed. Radha Kumad Mookerjee), Ujjain 1948, 213-280

299.6.1 M.A.Dhaky, "Some less known verses of Siddhasena Divakara", Sambodhi 10, 1981-82, 169-173

299.6.2 Phyllis Granoff, "The biographies of Siddhasena: a study in the texture of allusion and the weaving of a group image", JIP 17, 1989, 329-384

299.6.3 Sin Fujinaga, "Distinguishing the two Siddhasenas", JIBSt 43.1, 1999, 1-6


300.Samkarasvamin (555)

       1.Nyayapravesa

300.1.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Nyayapravesa", JASBe n.s. 3, 1907, 609-617

300.1.2 A.B.Dhruva, "The Nyayapravesa of Dinnaga", PAIOC 3, Summaries 1924, 4

300.1.3 M.Tubianski, "On the authorship of Nyayapravesa", BASR 1926, 975-982

300.1.4 Edited in Tibetan by Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya and in Sanskrit by A.B.Dhruva, with the commentaries of Haribhadra Suri and Parsvadeva. Two volumes. GOS 38-39, 1927-1930, 1968. Reprinted Delhi 1987

300.1.5 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Nyayapravesa of Dignaga", IHQ 3, 1927, 152-160

300.1.6 N.D.Mironov, "Dignaga's Nyayapravesa and Haribhadra's commentary on it", AIK 37-46

300.1.7 Giuseppe Tucci, "Is the Nyayapravesa by Dignaga?", JRAS 1928, 7-14. Reprinted GTOM 169-174

300.1.8 Giuseppe Tucci, "Notes on the Nyayapravesa by Samkarasvamin", JRAS 1931, 381-413. Reprinted in GTOM 277-304

300.1.9 Giuseppe Tucci, "Samkarasvamin, Sivasvamin and Gopadatta", FMW 243-246. Reprinted in GTOM 277-304

300.1.10 Chapter One edited in Tibetan and Chinese and reconstructed into Sanskrit by N. D. Mironov. TP 28, 1931, 1-25

300.1.10.0 R. S. Y.Chi, Buddhist Syllogistic and its Relation to Modern Formal Logic: A Study mainly based on K'uei-chi's commentary on the Nyayapravesa. Ph.D.Thesis, King's College, U. of Cambridge 1964

300.1.10.1 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan by D.L.Tsulthim. Varanasi 1968

300.1.11 Richard S. Y. Chi, Buddhist Formal Logic. London 1969

300.1.12 Translated by Musashi Tachikawa, "A Sixth Century Manual of Indian Logic", JIP 1, 1970-71, 111-145

300.1.12.1 Douglas Dunsmore Daye, Metalogical Studies in Sixth-Century Buddhist Proto-Metalogic from the Sanskrit and Chinese Text of the Nyayapravesa; or Unpacking Ordinary Sanskrit. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1972; Ann Arbor 1978

300.1.13 Douglas D. Daye, "Remarks on early Buddhist protoformalism (logic) and Mr. Tachikawa's translation of the Nyayapravesa", JIP 3, 1975, 383-398

300.1.14 Brendan S. Gillon and Martha Lila Love, "Indian logic revisited: Nyayapravesa reviewed", JIP 8, 1980, 349-384. Reprinted IPACR 2, 65-100

300.1.15 R.Lance Factor, "What is the 'logic' in Buddhist logic?", PEW 33, 1983, 183-188

300.1.15.1 Edited with Haribhadra's Vrtti by Sempa Dorje. Varanasi 1983

300.1.16 Douglas Dunsmore Daye, "Metalogical remarks on the procrustean translation of the Buddhist pararthanumana into the Anglo-European predicate calculus", BLE 117-132

300.1.16.1 Walter Slaje, "Miscellanea zu den Wiener Sanskrithandschriften. 1. Nyayapravesa and Bilvamangalastava", WZKS 29, 1985, 151-154

300.1.17 Douglas D. Daye, "On translating the term drstanta into early Buddhist formal logic", PEW 38, 1988, 147-156

300.1.18 Edited, with Haribhadra's Vrtti and Sricandrasuri's Panjika, by Rajan Kumar Sharma. Sarnath 1999

300.1.19 Summarized by Douglas D. Daye, Musashi Tachikawa and K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 468-470

300.1.21 Gunapala P. Malalasekara, Encyclopedia of Buddhism 7.1 Mind-Nyayapravesa. Colombo 2003

300.1.25 Edited by Jambuvijaya. Pramanakirti 395-406

300.1.30 Edited and translated, with Haribhadra's Aloka, by Gareth Sparham. Three volumes. Fremont, Cal. 2006-2009


301.(Arya) Vimuktisena (555)

       1.Vrtti on Asanga's Abhisamayalamkara (NCat I, 313-314)

See t174.3.46

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 470-471

301.1.1 Corrado Pensa, L'Abhisamayalamkaravrtti di Arya-Vimuktisena. Primo Abhisamaya. Texto e note critiche. SOR 37, 1967

301.1.2 David Seyfort Ruegg, "Arya and Bhadanta Vimuktisena on the gotra-theory of the Prajnaparamita", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 303-318

301.1.3 Hirofumi Isada, "Arya Vimuktisena's Abhisamayalamkaravrtti" (in Japanese with English summary). Bunka 39.1.2, 1975, 158-184


302.Dharmapala (560) (NCat IX, 253)

See a175.23C.1

       1.Commentary on Dignaga's Alambanapariksa (NCat II, 182; IX, 253)

See e175.18.9. et268.2:5,10. t268.2:1,2

302.1.1 Translated into German by M. Schott in Sein als Bewusstsein. MKB 20, 1935

302.1.2 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 471-474


       2.Vrtti on Aryadeva's Catuhsataka (NCat IX, 253)

See b50.2.16.1. d50.2.15.1. e50.2.15

302.2.1 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 474-479


       3.Vrtti on Aryadeva's Satasastra (NCat IX, 253)

302.3.1 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 479-486


       4.Vijnaptimatratasiddhi on Vasubandhu's (Vimsatika and Trimsika (NCat VIII, 230; IX, 253)

See e175.18:9, 175.18.27.2. t135.1.4. t175.18.2.Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 486

302.4.1 Chapter One translated by Wong Mow-Lan. Chinese Buddhist 2, 1932, 1-57

302.4.2 Sanskrit restoration of Yuan Chwang's Vijnaptimatratasiddhisastra by Rahula Sankrtyayana. JBRS 19, Appendix, 1933-34

302.4.3 Megumu Honda, "Dharmapala's report on Samkhya", JIBSt 33, 1968, 439-445

302.4.3.2 Edited by Sukumal Chaudhuri. CSCR Research Series 96. Calcutta 1975

302.4.3.5 Prabal Kumar Sen, "A recent translation of Vijnaptimatratasiddhi", JDPaliUC 2, 1984-85, 67-80

302.4.4 Iso Kern, "Object, objective phenomenon and objectivating act according to the Vijnaptimatratasiddhi of Xuanzang (600-664)", PhIP 262-269

302.4.7 Charles Muller, Buddhist Pehnomenology: a Philosophical Investigation of Yogacara Buddhism and the Ch'eng Wei-Shih Lun. London 2002

302.4.6 Tao Jian, "Alayavijnana and the problematic of continuity in the Cheng Weishi Lun", JIP 33, 2005, 243-284

302.4.8 Lambert Schmithausen, On the Problem of the External World in the Ch'eng wei shih lun.Studia Philologica Buddhica Occasional Papers Series 13. Tokyo 2005

302.4.12 Ensho Nasu, "Debates on the concept of dharmanihsvabhava in Dharmapala's Vijnaptimatratasiddiratnasambhava", JIBSt 58.3, 2010, 113-118


    4A.Commentary on the Nettiprakarana

302.4A.1 Extracts edited by Edmund Hardy. London 1961


       5.General

See b50.6.10; 294.5.15.5. a294.5:2,6

302.5.1 N. Aiyaswami Sastri, "On Dharmapala", JSVRI 2, 1941, 347 ff.

302.5.5 Toru Funayama, "Two notes on Dharmapala and Dharmakirti", Zinbun 35, 2000, 1-12


302A.Paramartha (560)

    1.Astadasasunyatasattva on Asanga's Madhyantavibhaga

302A.1.1. K. Tamure, "Astadasasunyatasattva", EnBud 2.2, 1967, 236


     1A.Commentary on Vasubandhu's Trimsika

302A.1A.1 Summarized by Diana Paul in 302A.2.1 (below), 121-130. Selections in EnIndPh9, 2003, 486-490


    2.General

See a200.1.6; 423.1.5

302A.2.1 Diana Paul, "An introductory note to Paramartha's theory of language", JIP 4, 1976, 231-255

302A.2.2 Diana Paul, "The structure of consciousness in Paramartha's purported trilogy", PEW 31, 1981, 297-320

302A.2.3 Diana Paul, "The life and times of Paramartha (499-569)", JIABS 5.1, 1982, 37-69

302A.2.3.1 Diana Paul, Philosophy of Mind in Sixth-Century China: Paramartha's 'Evolution of Consciousness'. Stanford, Calif. 1984

302A.2.4 Swati Ganguly, "Paramartha and Hsuan Tsang on the Tathagatagarbha and the alayavijna causation: a perspective of the Buddhist idealism in China", JDBSDU 8.2, 1984, 7-12

302A.2.5 Sallie B. King, "Buddha nature and the concept of a person", PEW 39, 1989, 151-170

302A.2.6 Robert K. C. Forman, "Paramartha and modern constructivists on mysticism: epistemological monomorphism versus duo-morphism", PEW 39, 1989, 393-418

302A.2.8 Daniel Boucher, "Paramartha", EnB 2, 2004, 630-631

302A.2.12 Michael Radich, "The doctrine of *amalavijnana in Paramartha (499-569) and later authors to approximately 800 C.E.", Zinbun 41, 2008, 45-174

302A.2.14 Toru Funayama, "The work of Paramartha: an example of Sino-Indian cross-cultural exchange", JIABS 31, (2008) 2010, 141-184


304.Sthiramati (560)

       1.Tattvarthatika on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakosa (NCat I, 290)

304.1.1 Uigur translation edited by Sinasi Tekin. New York 1970

304.1.2 Masahiro Shogaito, "On the contents of the Uighur version of the Abhidharmakosabhasya Tattvartha" in Turfan, Khotan und Dunhuang (ed. Ronald E. Emmerick, Weimer Sundermann, Ingrid Warnke and Peter Zieme) (Berlin 1996)

304.1.3 Summaried by Robert E. Buswell Jr. in EnIndPh9, 2003, 491-495

304.1.4 Masaru Akimoto, "Abhidharmakosabh1a1sya commentary of Sthiramati–On the reality of the past, present and future", Bulletin of the International Cultural Research Institute of Chikashi Jogakan College 4, p. 54


       2.Commentary on Asanga's Abhidharmasamgitisastra (Sanskrit ms.in Ngor, according to Warder, 543)


       3.Bhasya on Asanga's Abhidharmasamuccaya (NCat I, 292)

304.3.1 Prahlad Pradhan, "A note on Abhidharmasamuccaya Bhasya and its author Sthiramati(?)", JBRS 35.1-2, 1950, 34 ff.

304.3.2 Edited by Nathmal Tatia. TSWS 17, 1976; Patna 2005

304.3.2.5 Robert Kritzer, "On the 'additional leaf' in the Abhidharmasamuccaya manuscript", JIBSt 50.1, 2002, 32-35

304.3.2.6 R. Kritzer, "The 'additional leaf' of the Abhidharmasamuccayabhasya manuscript: the result of the ten bad courses of action", JA 290.2, 2002, 417-464

304.3.3 Summaried by Paul Griffiths. EnIndPh9, 2003, 495-510


       4.Commentary on Nagarjuna's Madhyamakakarikas (available in Chinese)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 510


       5.Tika on Vasubandhu's Madhyantavibhagasutrabhasya

See et174.6.2. e174.6:7,10. t174.6.4

304.5.1 Edited by Susumu Yamaguchi. OG 11, 1929 - 13, 1931

304.5.2 Partially edited by Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya and Giuseppe Tucci. COS 24, 1932

304.5.3 Edited by Sylvain Levi. Nagoya 1934

304.5.4 Book One translated by David L. Friedman. Utrecht 1937

304.5.5 Extracts edited by Chandradhara Sharma in JP 2, 1963 and Madhya Bharati 2, 1963. Reprinted Jabalpur 1963

304.5.6 Summaried by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 510-513


       6.Mahayanadharmadhavavisesatasastra (available in Chinese)


       7.Tika on Asanga's Mahayanasutralamkara

See a274.3.2.Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 514


       8.Tika on the Kasyapaparivarta (Vijnanavada)

304.8.1 Edited in Tibetan and Chinese by A. von Stael-Holstein, A Commentary to the Kasyapaparivarta. Peking 1933

304.8.2 Leslie Kawamura, "The middle path according to the Kasyapaparivartasutra", WCSU 221-232

304.8.3 Summaried by Jikido Takasaki. EnIndPh9, 2003, 526-532


       9.Vaibhasya on Vasubandhu's Pancaskandhaprakarana or -Vibhasa

See et175.11:1, 13. a304.9

304.9.1 Summaried by Ronald Davidson. EnIndPh9, 2003, 514-523

304.9.5 Jowita Kramer, "On Sthiramati's Pancaskandhavibhasa: a preliminary survey", Sambhasa 27, 2008, 149-172


       10.Bhasya on Vasubandhu's Trimsika

See a221.1.215. et175.18.18. e175.18:1,8-10,15,17, 27.1. t175.18.5

304.10.1 Hakuju Ui, "Commentaries by Sthiramati and Dharmapala on Vasubandhu's Trimsika-vijnaptimatra" (summary). JSR 5, 1954, 58-62

304.10.2 V.V.Gokhale, "Fragments of Sthiramati's Trimsikavijnaptibhasya in the Patna collection of Tibetan materials", JUP 27, 1968, 175-179

304.10.3 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh9, 2003, 523-525

304.10.5 Kazuo Kano, "Two folios from Sthiramati's Trimsikabhasya in Sanskrit photographed by Rahula Sankrtyayana: diplomatic and critical editions of Gottingen Xc14/1e", WZKSOA 49, 2005, 113-150


       11.Bhasya on Vasubandhu's Vimsatika

See e175.18:10,17,21. See also EnIndPh9, 2003, 525


       12.General

See a175.24.17. a294.5.6

304.12.1 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Transfer of meaning--a Buddhist view", ALB 20, 1956, 345-348

304.12.2 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Sthiramati and Silabhadra", JIBSt 25.l, 1976, 36-37

304.12.2.1 Cuong Tu Nguyen, Sthiramati's Interpretation of Buddhology and Soteriology. Ph.d.Thesis, Harvard University 1990

304.12.3 Yuichi Kajiyama, "Sthiramati, Uddyotakara and Arcata on vyabhicara", AS 46.1, 1992, 212-221

304.12.5 Hidenori S. Sakuma, "On doctrinal similarities between Sthiramati and Xuanzang", JIABS 29 2006 (2008), 357-382


304A.Vasumitra (560)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 490-491


304B.Author Unknown (565)

       1.Sutra on the original cause of raising the world

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 532


305.Bhavivikta (570)

       1.General

305.1.1 See IndP 2, 1977: 281, 337


307.Ananda (570) (NCat I, 289; II, 113-114)

       1. Mulatika on Buddhaghosa's Atthasalini (NCat I,289; IX, 235)

307.1.1 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1910

307.1.2 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1915


       2.Mulatika on Dhammasangani (NCat I, 289; IX, 235)

307.2.1 Edited, with Culla Dhammapala's Anutika, by U Hpye in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1908

307.2.2 Edited Burma 1924-26

307.2.3 Edited by Pannasara and Vimaladhamma. Colombo 1938

307.2.4 Edited, with Dhammapala's Anutika. Burma 1958

307.2.6 Edited with Dhammapala Anutika. Igatpuri 1998


       3.Mulatika on Dhatukatha (NCat I, 289)

307.3.1 Edited in Burmese characters, with Ananda's commentaries on Buddhaghosa's Kathavatthu, Puggalapannati, Vibhanga, Yamaka and Sammohavinodani, by U Ngui. Three volumes. Rangoon 1910-1912

307.3.2 Edited in Burmese characters, with Ananda's commentaries on Buddhaghosa's Kathavatthu, Puggalapannati, Vibhanga and Yamaka, by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1915

307.3.3 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958


       4.Mulatika on Kathavatthu (NCat I, 289)

See e307.3:1-2


       5.Mulatika on Patthana (NCat I, 289)

307.5.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958


       6.Mulatika on Puggalapannati (NCat I, 289)

See e307.3:1-2

307.6.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958


       7.Mulatika on Buddhaghosa's Sammohavinodani

See e307.3.1

307.7.1 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1915


       8.Mulatika on Vibhanga (NCat I, 289)

See e307.3:1, 2, 5.1; e3.1.5.1

307.8.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958

307.8.2 Edited with Dhammapala's Anutika by Dhammapala Thera. Varanasi 1987


          9.Mulatika on Yamaka (NCat I, 289)

See e307.3:1-2

307.9.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958


308.Vimalamitra (580)

       1.Abhidharma(pra)dipa and Vibhasaprabhavrtti thereon (Sarvastivada)(NCat I, 291)

See a134.1.4

308.1.1 Padmanabh S. Jaini, "A rare manuscript of Abhidharmadipavibhasa- Prabha-Vrtti", PAIOC 17, 1953, 284-289. Also Bh 1, 1956-57, 50-66

308.1.2 Edited by Padmanabh S. Jaini, TSWS 4, 1959. Includes 16 page summary

308.1.3 P.S.Jaini, "Abhidharmadipa", EnBud 1.1, 1963, 53-57. Reprinted CPBS 260-265

308.1.4 J.W.de Jong, "L'auteur de l'Abhidharmadipa", TP 52, 1966, 305-307

308.1.5 Tomoichi Hirose, "The criticism of the isvara doctrine in the Abhidharmadipa" (in Japanese with English summary). TISGR 7, 1980, 41-68

308.1.5.5 Kamaleswar Bhattahcayra, "Ontological realism and grammatical opportunities in the Abhidharmadipa and Vibhasaprabhavrtti", BSPF 8-9, 84-76

308.1.6 Summarized by Collett Cox, SarvastiBS 249-254

308.1.7 Summaried by Pamanabh S. Jaini. EnIndPh9, 2003, 532-558

308.1.10 Ken'yo Mitumo, "Sastras quoted in the Abhidharmadipa", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 243-244


309.Silabhadra (580)

       1.Buddhabhumivyakhyana

See b132.1.1. e132.1.2.

309.1.1 Edited in Tibetan by K. Nishio. Nagoya 1940; Tokyo 1982

309.1.1.5 J. K. Sharma, "Silabhadra, an eminent teacher. Administrator of Nalanda", NBWGJ 9-22

309.1.2 Summary based on b132.1.1 in EnIndPh9, 2003, 558-561


       2.General

See e304.12.2

309.2.1 Puspa Niyogi, "Silabhadra and Santideva", JAIH 13, 1980-82, 169-178

309.2.5 Jayanti Chattopadhyay, "Silabhadra, the teacher of Hsuan-tsang at Nalanda Mahavihara", JDPUC 12, 2008, 55-57


310.Gunaprabha (580) (NCat VI, 49)

       1.Vrtti on Bodhisattvabhumi section of Asanga's Yogacarabhumi

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 561

310.1.1 Indumatie Karunaratne, "Bodhisattvabhumi-Vrtti", EnBud 3.2, 1972, 236-237

            

       2.Vivarana on Vasubandhu's Pancaskandha(prakarana)

See a175.11.5

310.2.1 Summaried by Stefan Anacker. EnIndPh9, 2003, 562-564


311.Yasomitra (580)

       1.Sphutarthavyakhya on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakosa (NCat I, 290)

See a192.3.4. et175.1.2. e175.1:11,15,35. t6.1.1.1

311.1.1 Chapter 1 edited by Sylvain Levi and Th. Stcherbatsky. BBudh 21, 1918

311.1.2 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "A passage of the Abhidharmakosavyakhya", IHQ 2, 1926, 418-420

311.1.3 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "A passage of the Abhidharmakosavyakhya", IHQ 2, 1926, 656-657

311.1.4 Sylvain Levi, "Abhidharmakosa Vyakhya", ERE 1, 1926, 19-20

311.1.5 Chapter 2 edited by Unrai Wogihara, Th. Stcherbatsky and Ernst Obermiller. BBudh 21, 1931. Reprinted Osnabruck 1970; Delhi 1992

311.1.6 T.Rajapatirana, "Abhidharmakosa-Vyakhya", EnBud 1.1, 1961, 63-64

311.1.7 Bhikkhu Pasadika, "Zu der Zitaten in Yasomitra's Abhidharmakosa-vyakhya", Ananda 22-31

311.1.8 Summaried by Stefan Anacker. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 565-593

 

       2.Bhasya on Asanga's Abhidharmasamuccaya (NCat I, 292)

311.2.1 T. Rajapatirana, "Abhidharmasamuccaya-Bhasya", EnBud 1.1, 1961, 87


       3.Vyakhya on Asanga's Abhidharmasamuccaya


312.Jinabhadra Gani Ksamaramana (580) (NCat VII, 262)

       1.Brhatsamgrahani or Brhatksetrasamasa (Jain) (NCat VII, 262)

312.1.1 Edited with Malayagiri's Vrtti by Pannyasadana Vijaya Gani. JAG 47, Bhavnagar 1917

312.1.2 Edited with Malayagiri's Tika. Bombay 1920-21, 1987, 1988

312.1.3 Edited with Malayagiri's Vrtti by Vijaya Danasurisvara. Bombay 1987

312.1.4 Edited with Malayagiri's Vrtti by P.A.Kothari. Mahesana 2000


       2.Dhyanasataka or Jhanasaya (Jain) (NCat VII, 262; IX, 307)

312.2.1 Edited and translated by Muni Dalaharaj. Delhi 1972. Translated reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 210-224

312.2.2 Edited b Kanhaiyalal Lurha and Suchama Sanghvi. Jaipur 2007


       3.Vrtti on Bhadrabahu's Avasyakalaghunirukti


       4.Visesavasyakabhasya on Bhadrabahu's Avasyakanirukti (NCat VII,262; II, 189)

See e296.1: 1.1.5.; 1.3; 1.3.3; 1.4.1; 1.11.5

312.4.1 Laghuvrtti edited, with Maladhari Hemacandra's Sisyahita and digest by Dhrubhai P. Thaker of Ratnaprabha Vijaya's commentary, by Haragovinda. YJG 15, 1911-1950

312.4.2 Index to gathas. Mahsava 1923

312.4.2.1 Edited with Malladhari Hemacandra's Sisyahita. Bombay 1924-25

312.4.3 Edited, with Maladhari Hemacandra's Sisyahita, by Rajendra Vijayaji Maharaj. Three volumes. Ahmedabad 1962-63. Reprinted Bombay 1982-83, 1988

312.4.3.1 Ganadharavada and Nihnavavada sections edited and translated, with Maladhari Hemacandra's Sisyahita, by Ratna Prabha Vijaya and Dhirabhai P. Thakur. Ahmedabad 1947, 1950, 1951

312.4.4 Edited with Sanskrit autocommentary by Dalsukh Malvania. Three volumes. Ahmedabad 1966-68. Summary by Dalsukh Malvania (in LDS 21) reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 224-233

312.4.4.1 Ganadharavada section translated, with Maladhari ghemacandra's Sisyahita, by Esther A. Solomon, Ganadharavada. (Ahmedabad 1966).

312.4.5 Edited by Nathmal Tatia. Vaishalli, Bihar 1972

312.4.5.1 Edited by Vijay Bhuvanabhanusuri. Delhi 1989

312.4.5.2 K. Butzenberger, Beiträge zum Problem der personalen Identität in der indischen Philosophie: die jinistischen Beweiss für die Existenz einer jiva im Visesavasyakabhasya. Inaugural Dissertation, University of Munich 1989

312.4.5.3 Partly translated in Acharya Vijay Bhuvanabhanasvami, The Essential Bhagavan Mahavira (Delhi 1989)

312.4.6 K. R. Chandra, "Editing of ancient Ardhamagadhi texts in view of the text of Visesavasyaka-Bhasya", Nirgrantha 1, 1995, 1-10


313.Upasena (580)

         1.Saddhdammapajotika on the Niddesa

See e9.1:5, 8, 9

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 564

313.1.1 Petra Kieffer-Putz, "The Gantharambhakathas of Jayasena's Saddhammapajjotyika and Varabuddhi's Vajirabuddhitika", IIJ 52, 2009, 143-177


314.Isvarasena (580)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 593

         1.Padmacintamanidharanisutra

314.1.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "Bemerkungen zu Isvarasena's Lehre vom Grund", WZKS 10, 1966, 73-85


314A. Bhadanta Vimuktisena (590)

        1.Abhisamayalamkavarttika

See a301.1.2

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 593-594


314B.Author Unknown *(600)*

       1.Buddhabaladhanapratiharyavikurvananirdesa (Toh. 186)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 593

314B.1.1 Summarized by Nalinaksha Dutt, GilgitM 4, xxv-xxvii

314B.1.2 Edited and translated in Gregory Schopen, "The five leaves of the Buddhabaladhana-prati-gharyavikurvananda-Sutra found at Gilgit", JIP 5, 1977, 319-336

 
 

315.Author Unknown (600)

       1.Rasmisamantamukhanirdesasutra (T.310(11); Toh. 55)

315.1.1 Translated Treasury 191-218


317.Gaudapada (600) (NCat VI, 219)

       1.Mandukyakarikas or Gaudapadiyakarikas or Agamasastra (Advaita)

See b221.1.169.5. e379.23:1,2. a47.4.49.5

317.1.1 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya and Anandagiri's Tika. Calcutta 1873

317.1.2 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya. Calcutta 1884

317.1.3 Edited by M.N.Ghoshal. Banaras 1889

317.1.4 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya, Anandagiri's Tika and Samkarananda's Dipika, by A.Kathavate, ASS 10, 1890, 1900, 1928, 1977

317.1.5 Edited by Yamunasamkara Nagara. Lucknow 1891

317.1.6 Translated, with Samkara's Bhasya, by M.N.Dvivedi. Bombay 1894, 1909

317.1.7 Translated into German by Paul Deussen in Sechzig Upanisaden des Veda (Leipzig 1897, 1921)

317.1.8 Edited, with Samkara's and Ranga Ramanuja's commentaries on the Isa, Kena, Katha, Prasna, Mundaka, Mandukya, Aitareya, Brhadaranyaka, Chandogya and Taittiriya Upanisads, by A. Srinivasa Tatacarya Svami. Madras 1897-98

317.1.9 Edited, with Bhaskarananda Sarasvati's commentary, in Upanisatprasada (Banaras 1898-99)

317.1.10 Edited by Badaridatta Sarma. Meerut 1907

317.1.11 Books I and II edited by Darsananda Sarasvati. Lahore 1907, 1910

317.1.12 Edited, with Samkarananda's Dipika and Svayamprakasananda Sarasvati's Mitaksara, by R.G.Bhatta. KSS 48, 1910, 1986

317.1.13 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya and Samkara's commentaries on Aitareya, Brhadaranyaka, Chandogya, Isa, Katha, Kena, Mandukya, Mundaka and Prasna Upanisads, by Durgacarana Samkhyavedantatirtha and Anilacandra Datta. Nine volumes. Calcutta 1911-1921

317.1.14 Edited by Nathurama Sarma. Ahmedabad 1911

317.1.15 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya, Samkara's commentaries on Isa, Kena, Katha, Prasna, Mundaka, Mandukya, Aitareya, Taittiriya and Chandogya (incomplete) Upanisads, Narayana's commentary on Isa, Jayatirtha's Vivarana on Madhva's Isopanisadbhasya, Rangaramanuja's commentaries on Kena and Katha Upanisads, by Chintaman Gangadhara Bhanu. Bombay 1911-1915

317.1.16 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya and Samkara's commentaries on Isa, Katha, Kena, Mandukya, Mundaka and Prasna Upanisads, by Durgacarana Samkhyavedantatirtha. Calcutta 1912

317.1.17 Edited with Samkara's Bhasya by Cintamana Gangadahra Bhanu. Bombay 1913

317.1.18 Hermann Jacobi, "On mayavada", JAOS 33, 1913, 51-54

317.1.19 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1917

317.1.20 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "The Gaudapada-karika on the Mandukya Upanishad", PAIOC 2, 1920, 439-462

317.1.21 Summarized in Dasgupta I, 424-428

317.1.22 Edited, with Purusottama Pitambara's Dipika. Bombay 1923

317.1.23 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "The Mandukya Upanisad and the Gaudapada Karika", IHQ 1, 1925: 119-125, 295-302

317.1.24 Edited by Damodar Patva Senvi. Bombay 1925

317.1.25 Edited with Samkara's Bhasya in WSS 5, 1927

317.1.26 Translated, with Samkara's Bhasya, by M.S.Rao. VK 18, 1931-32 - 21, 1934-35

317.1.27 B.N.Krishnamurti Sarma, "New light on the Gaudapada karikas", RPR 2.1, 1931 - 4.2, 1933

317.1.28 H.M.Bhattacharya, "The philosophy of Gaudapada", HMBSP 16-25

317.1.29 B.N.Krishnamurti Sharma, "Still further light on the Gaudapada-karikas", RPR 4.2, 1933, 1-22

317.1.30 Y.Subrahmanya Sarma, "The Upanisadic theory of the Gaudapada-karikas", RPR 4.2, 1933, 196-204

317.1.31 A.Venkata Subbiah, "The Mandukyopanisad and Gaudapada", IA 62, 1933, 181-193

317.1.32 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya, by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1935

317.1.33 Summarized by N.B.Purohit, "Gaudapada-karikas and Buddhism", PAIOC 8, 1935, 352-382

317.1.34 Amarnath Ray, "Bhagavata Purana and the karikas of Gaudapada", BSOAS 8, 1935-37, 107-112

317.1.35 A. Venkata Subbiah, "Gaudapada's Agamasastra", IHQ 11, 1935, 783-790

317.1.36 Translated, with Samkara's Bhasya, by Nikhilananda. Mysore 1936, 1949

317.1.37 A.Venkata Subbiah,"Are the Gaudapada karikas sruti?", PO 1, 1936-37: 1, 7-18; 2, 1-12

317.1.38 B.N.Krishnamurti Sharma, "Upanisadic theory of Gaudapada's karikas", PO 1.2, 1936-37, 27-38

317.1.39 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Agamasastra of Gaudapada", JBHU 1.1, 1937, 3-15

317.1.40 V.A.Gadgil, "The Mandukyopanisad and the Gaudapadakarikas", JUBo 6, 1937-38, 66-79

317.1.41 B.N. Krishnamurti Sharma, "Are the Gaudapada-karikas sruti-a rejoinder", PO 2.1, 1937-38, 20-30

317.1.42 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Gaudapada", IHQ 14, 1938, 392-397. Also WMN 192-197; SHIP 3, 272-275

317.1.43 B.A.N.Roy, "The Mandukya Upanisad and the karikas of Gaudapada", IHQ 14, 1938, 564-569. Also WMN 364-369; SHIP 3, 276-281

317.1.44 K.Venkatarama Sastri, "Absolutism of Vedanta according to Gaudapada", PAIOC 10, Summaries 1939; 75-76

317.1.45 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Some observations on the Mandukya Karikas", JOR 13, 1939, 99-109. Reprinted CPSSS 262-271

317.1.46 P.C.Divanji, "Gaudapada's asparsayoga and Samkara's jnanavada", PO 4, 1940, 149-158

317.1.47 Prabhavananda, "The philosophy of experience", VK 27, 1940, 181-184

317.1.48 Edited and translated, with a 14 page summary, by Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, The Agamasastra of Gaudapada (Calcutta 1943; Delhi 1989)

317.1.49 Edited and translated into French by E. Le Simple. Paris 1944

317.1.50 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Some problems of the Mandukya Karikas", JMU 15, 1944, 130-146. Also PQ 20, 1944, 18-34

317.1.51 Summarized in T.M.P.Mahadevan, "The ajativada of Gaudapada", BCLV I, 308-320

317.1.52 J.L.Majumdar, "The philosophy of Gaudapada", IHQ 23, 1947, 1-16

317.1.53 Book 4 translated in J.L.Majumdar, "Gaudapada's karikas", JGJRI 5, 1947-48 - 6, 1948-49

317.1.54 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Place of reason and revelation in the philosophy of an early Advaitin", PICP 10.1, 1949, 247-255

317.1.55 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "The relation between Mandukya Upanisad and the karikas", BVK 2.2, 1950, 1-7

317.1.56 J.L.Majumdar, "Philosophy of Gaudapada (alata-santi-prakaranam)", JGJRI 8, 1950-51 - 9, 1951-52

317.1.57 R.D.Karmarkar, "'Dvipadam vare' in Gaudapadakarika (IV.1)", ABORI 32, 1951, 130-145

317.1.58 T.M.P.Mahadevan, Gaudapada: A Study in Early Advaita. Madras 1952

317.1.59 Edited and translated, with 12 page summary, by R.D. Karmarkar. GOSBORI B9, 1953

317.1.60 R.D.Karmarkar, "Yogavasistha, Lankavatara and Gaudapadakarika--mutual relation", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 124-125

317.1.61 B.N.Krishnamurti Sharma, "The problem of the Upanishadic theory of the Agamaprakarana of Gaudapada", BhV 17.3-4, 1957, 96-121

317.1.62 Edited by Bhadanta Ananda Kosalyayan. Calcutta 1957

317.1.63 A.D.Shastri, "Gaudapada-karika IV.1--an interpretation", BCGV 2, 1958, 51-53

317.1.64 S.N.Bhattacharya, "Gaudapada on maya and avidya", PB 65, 1960, 210-212

317.1.65 Govinda Chandra Dev, "Notion of falsity of the world in Gaudapada and Samkara", JASP 5, 1960, 148-163

317.1.66 Translated in Chinmayananda. Discourses on Mandukya Upanisad with Gaudapada's Karikas. Madras 1966

317.1.67 Edited and translated. Gorakhpur 1967

317.1.68 A.G.Krishna Warrier, "Gaudapada and Samkara (a study in contrast)", ABORI 48-49, 1968, 179-186

317.1.68.5 S. S. Ray, "Advaita Vedanta and Buddhist absoltism", VandB 41-62

317.1.69 L.M.Joshi, "Gaudapada's rapprochement between Buddhism and Vedanta", Rtam 1.1, 1969, 179-186

317.1.70 Caterina Conio, The Philosophy of Mandukyakarikas. Varanasi 1971

317.1.71 Portions translated by Eliot Deutsch in SBAV 120-121

317.1.72 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "A new approach to Gaudapada", Bulletin of Tibetology 8.1, 1971, 15-46

317.1.73 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya and Anandagiri's Tika, by Vishnudevananda Giri. Varanasi 1972

317.1.73.0 Translated, with Samkara's Atmabodha, by Sulman Samuel Cohen as Advaitic Sadhana, or The Yoga of Direct Liberation. Delhi 1975

317.1.73.01 Colin A. Cole, The Soteriology of Gaudapada's Mandukyakarika. M.A.Thesis, U. of British Colmbia, 1975. Canadian thesis on microfiche no. 25118

317.1.73.1 Alexander Paul Hixon, Mahayana Buddhist Influence on the Gauda School of Advaita Vedanta: An Analysis of the Gaudapadakarikas. Ph.D.Thesis, Columbia University 1976

317.1.74 Selections translated in HTR 190-196

317.1.74.1 Edited, with Samkara's and Anubhuti Svarupacarya's commentaries, by S.R.Krishnamurti Sastri and P.V. Sivarama Dikshitar. Madras 1978

317.1.75 S.S.Deshpande, "A conceptual layout of Gaudapadakarikas", IPQ 6, 1978-79, 281-288

317.1.76 Karl H. Potter, "Was Gaudapada an idealist?", SISDI 183-200

317.1.77 Christian Bouy, Gaudapada. Agamasastra text transcrit, traduction et notes, accompagnes d'une introduction, d'une bibliographie et d'un index des mots et expressions du texte. Doctorat, Paris-Sorbonne, 1981

317.1.78 Summarized by Karl H. Potter in EnIndPh3, 1981, 105-114

317.1.79 Colin A. Cole, Asparsa-Yoga. A Study of Gaudapada's Mandukyakarika. Delhi 1982

317.1.79.1 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Influence of Buddhism on Gaudapada:a critical estimate", JASP 27.2, 1982, 113-125

317.1.80 Esho Kanakura, "Indian Buddhism and Indian philosophy: an essay on Gaudapada" (in Japanese with English summary). HNBTK 369-394

317.1.81 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Gaudapada and non-origination", MP 19, 1982, 49-52, 115-120

317.1.81.1 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Gaudapada and Samkara on the nature of dream and waking experience", JASP 28.1, 1983, 16-21

317.1.82 Stephen Kaplan, "A critique of an ontological approach to Gaudapada's Mandukyakarikas", JIP 11, 1983, 339-355

317.1.83 Edited and expounded by Karunesa Shukla. Gorakhpur 1983

317.1.84 Linda Kay Barabas Mackey, Reflections on Advaita Vedanta: The Approach of Gaudapada's Karika on the Mandukya Upanishad with Samkara's Commentary. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Texas 1983.

317.1.84.1 S. M. Shah, "The theory of two-fold truth according to Gaudapada and Kundakunda", CASSt 5, 1986, 41-48

317.1.84.2 Douglas A. Fox, "The Gaudapada riddle", AJOS 6, 1989, 101-114

317.1.85 Stephen Kaplan, Hermeneutics, Holography and Indian Idealism. A Study of Projection and Gaudapada's Mandukya Karika. Delhi 1987.

317.1.85.0 Edited and translated by Gambhirananda. Trichur, Kerala 1987

317.1.85.1 Thirteen Principal Upanisads. Volume II. Mandukya Upanisad with Gaudapadakarikas and Samkara's Bhasyas on both. Edited and translated by Jayant Krishna Dave. Bombay 1990

317.1.86 Richard King, "Asparsa-Yoga meditation and epistemology in the Gaudapadiyakarika", JIP 20, 1992, 99-132

317.1.87 Book 4 translated by Douglas A. Fox in Alatasanti. Albany, N.Y., 1992

317.1.87.1.Hajime Nakamura, "Buddhist influences as is noticed in the 4th chapter of the Gaudapadiya-karikas", PGI 241-258

317.1.88 Ranjan Umapathy, "The Mandukya Upanisad and karikas: the Advaitic approach", IndPQ 20, 1993, 243-264

317.1.88.1 S. Sobhana, "Glimpses of Mandukyakarika of Gaudapada", VIJ 31, 1993-94, 129-138

317.1.89 Walter Slaje, "Die angst yogis vor der Versenkung", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 273-291

317.1.89.1 Bina Gupta, "Samkara's notion of saksin: its anticipation in Upanisads and Gaudapada", IndPQ 22, 1995, 291-312

317.1.90 Richard King, "Early Advaita Vedanta: the date and authorship of the Gaudapadiyakarika", IIJ 38, 1995, 317-355

317.1.91 Richard King, Early Advaita Vedanta and Buddhism: the Mahayana Context of the Gaudapadiya-Karika. Albany, N.Y. 1995

317.1.92 Stephen Kaplan, "Culture, genome and the Mandukyakarikarikas. Philosophical inconsistency, historical uncertainty or textual discontinuity?", AsPOxford 6.2, 1996, 129-146

317.1.93 Christian Bouy, "La Mandukya-Upanisad et l'Agamasastra. Concordance esternes et citations", WZKSOA 41, 1997, 119-158

317.1.94 Douglas A. Fox, Dispellling Illusion: Gaudapada's Alatasanti. Delhi 1997

317.1.94.5 N. M. Kansara, "The Gaudapada-karika and Suddhadvaita", JOI 47, 1997, 227-236

317.1.95 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasya, Anandagiri's Bhasya, Visnudevanandagiri's Govindaprasadini and Vidyananda Giri's Mitaksara, by Umesananda Sastri. Rshikesh 1998

317.1.96 Richard King, "Early Advaita and Madhyamaka Buddhism: the case of the Gaudapadakarika", IJHS 2.1, 1998, 67-84

317.1.97 P.K.Sundaram, "Gaudapada and Buddhism", ALB 62, 1998, 95-98

317.1.100 G. Mishra, "Advaita--a reconciliation and reconstruction (An analysis of Upanisadic and Buddhist concepts vis-a-vis Gaudapada and Samkara)", JICPR 17.1, 1999, 99-112

317.1.102 Edited and translated into French by Christian Bouy. PICI 69, Paris 2000

317.1.103 Byungmoo Lee, The role of Gaudapada's ajativada in early Advaita Vedantist attempts to resolve the satkaryavada-monism contradictions. S.T.M. Thesis, Boston U. 2000

317.1.107 Alberta Palissena, Strumenti per lo studio dell'Agamasastravivarana. Torino 2002

317.1.109 N. Jayashanmugam, "Mandukya or Catuspadatma Siddhi", ABORI 83, 2003, 121-138

317.1.111 Translated into French by Pierre Feuga, Comme un cercle de feu: Mandukya upanisad et karikade Gaudapada. Paris 2004

317.1.113 Srinivasa Rao, "The paradigm of metaphysics of experience: a study of Gaudapada's Mandukya-karika", PappuSV 3-11


    2.Sri Vidya Sutras (NCat VI, 219)

317.2.86.1 Edited, with Samkararanya's Dipika by Narayana Sastri Khiste.   POWSBT 11, 1924

317.2.86.2 R.A.Sastri, "Gaudapada and his Devi Sutras", Theosophist 18:298, 345


    3.General

See a23.1.128; 47.16:75,134; 196A.7.10.1; 175.24.36. b47.16.119; 221.1.169.5

317.3.1 L.M.Joshi, "Gaudapada", EnBud 5, 1991, 314-318

317.3.2 Michael Comans, The Method of Early Advaita Vedanta (A Study of Gaudapada, Samkara, Suresvara and Padmapada). Delhi 2000

317.3.5 Joshua Anderson, "An investigation ofr moksa in the Advaita Vedanta of Shankara and Gaudapada”, AsPOxford 22, 1012, 275-288


318.Visvarupadeva (600)

       1.Vivekamartanda (Vedanta)

318.1.1 Edited by K. Sambasiva Sastri. TSS 119, 1935

318.1.2 Edited by Sivagoraksa Mahayogi Goraksanatha. Gorakhpur 1983


319.Simhasuragani (600)

       1.Nyayagamanusarini on Mallavadin's Nayacakra

See e293.1:1,3,5,7. a293.1.2

319.1.1 Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 233


320.Priticandra (600)

       1.General

320.1.1 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 338


321.Candrakirti (600) (NCat VI, 346-347)

       1.Vrtti on Aryadeva's Catuhsataka (NCat VI, 347)

See a47.16.168; e50.2:2, 6, 7, 10, 15, 28. t50.2:12, 16.0

321.1.1 Ratna Handurukanda, "Bodhisattva-Yogacara-Catuhsatika Tika", EnBud 3.2, 1972, 248

321.1.1.5 Chapter 14 edited and translated by Karen Christina Lang. M.A.Thesis, U. of Washington 1976

321.1.2 Ichigo Ogawa, "Criticism of kalavada from the standpoint of Mahayana Buddhism--a partial Japanese translation of Candrakirti's Catuhsatikatika (kalarthapratisedha nama ekadasam prakaranam) from a Tibetan text" (in Japanese with English summary). ODKN 29, 1977, 1-53

321.1.3 Koshin Suzuki, Index to the Sanskrit Fragments and Tibetan Translation of Candrakirti's Bodhisattvayogacara Catuhsakatika, Sanskrit-Tibetan. Two volumes. Tokyo 1994, 1996

321.1.4 Translated by Karen C. Lang as Four Illusions. Candrakirti's Advice to Travelers on the Bodhisattva Path. Oxford 2002; New York 2003

321.1.8 Koshin Suzuki, "A transliteration of the Sanskrit notes on the Catuhsatakatika in the *Laksanatika," GJWDJ 189-206


      2.Madhyamakavatara and Bhasya (Madhyamika) (NCat VI, 347)

See a81.1.25; a47.13.30

321.2.1 Text partly translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. LM n.s. 8, 1907 - 12, 1911

321.2.2 Text edited in Tibetan by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. BBudh 9, 1909, 1912. Reprinted Louvain 1970; Delhi 1992

321.2.3 Chapter 6 of text restored into Sanskrit, with autocommentary, by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. MOS 4, 1929. Also JOR 3-4, 1929-30, Supplement

321.2.4 Robert F. Olson, "Candrakirti's critique of Vijnanavada", PEW 24, 1974, 405-412

321.2.4.1 Chapter Two translated in Jeffrey Hopkins, Analysis of Going and Coming. 1976

321.2.5 Jeffrey Hopkins, "In praise of compassion", TJ 3.3, 1978, 21-28

321.2.6 Shiro Matsumoto, "The satyadvaya theory of the Madhyamakavatarabhasya", JIBSt 38.1, 1979, 11-15

321.2.7 Joe Wilson, Chandrakirti's Seven-Fold Reasoning: Meditation on the Selflessness of Persons. Dharamsala 1980

321.2.8 Chapter 6, verses 166-226 edited and translated into German, with Bhasya, by Helmut Tauscher. Wiener Studien zur Tibetologie und Buddhismuskunde, Heft 5, Wien 1981

321.2.9 C. W. Huntington, Jr., "The system of the two truths in the Prasannapada and the Madhyamakavatara: a study in Madhyamika soteriology", JIP 11, 1983, 77-106

321.2.10 Peter G.Fenner, "A reconstruction of the Madhyamakavatara: analysis of the person", JIABS 6.2, 1983, 7-34

321.2.10.5 Translated by Rabten/Batchelor. London 1983. Partly reprinted in SourceBAP 272-297

321.2.11 Peter Fenner, "A study on the relationship between analysis (vicara) and insight (prajna) based on the Madhyamakavatara". JIP 12, 1984, 139-197

321.2.12 Part of Chapter 6 translated in Artemus Bertine Engle, A Buddhist Theory of Self according to Acarya Candrakirti. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983.

321.2.13 Translated by C.W.Huntington in The Emptiness of Emptiness: An Introduction to Early Indian Madhyamika. Honolulu 1989

321.2.14 Translated by Peter G. Fenner as The Ontology of the Middle Way. Dordrecht 1990

321.2.15 Brian Galloway, "On Madhyamakavatara 6.26", IIJ 34, 1991, 199-202

321.2.16 Jose Ignacioo Cabezon, "On retreating to method and other post-modern turns: a response to C.W.Huntington, Jr.", JIABS 15, 1992, 134-143

321.2.17 C.W.Huntington, Jr., "The theory of objectivity: comments on Jose Cabezon's interpretations of mKos grub rje's and C.W.Huntington, Jr.'s interpretation of the Tibetan translation of a seventh century Indian Buddhist text", JIABS 15, 1992, 118-133

321.2.20 Yoshiyasu Yonezawa, "Sanskrit notes on the Madhyamakavatara-bhasya, Chapter I in the *Laksanatika", JIBSt 49.2, 2001, 47-49

321.2.23 Chapter Six translated from Tibetan by Ari Goldfield, Jules Levison, Jim Scott and Birgit Scott under the guidance of Khenpa Tsultrim GyantsoRinpoche. Ithaca, N.Y.2005

321.2.28 James Duerlinger, "Candrakirti on the theories of persons of the Sammitiyas and Aryasammitiyas", PEW 58, 2008, 446-469

321.2.35 James Duerlinger, The Refutation of the Self in Indian Buddhism: Candrakirti on the Selflessness of Persons. New York, 2012

321.2.40 Yoshiyasu Yonizawa, "*Laksanatika. Sanskrit notes on the Madhamakavatarabhasya Chapter VI”, JNIBS 36, 2013, 107-176


       3.Pancaskandhapraka

rana (NCat VI, 347)

321.3.1 Tibetan text edited, ActOD 40, 1979, 146-156. Reprinted 1995


       4.Prasannapada on Nagarjuna's Madhyamikakarikas (NCat VI, 347)

See a44.1.8; 47.4.69; 268.7.38.5; 294.3.3; 294.5.7; 321.2.9. e47.4:2,5,21,23,52,61.s47.4.4. t47.4.12-14,17,20,22

321.4.1 Chapter 2 partially translated into Italian by Giuseppe Tucci in Il Buddismo (Foligno 1926), 234-246

321.4.2 Jacques May, "Récherches sur un système de philosophies bouddhique", BAFS 3, 1954, 21-33

321.4.3 Arnold Kunst, "The function and meaning of the prasanga", CIDO 24, Munich 1957, vol. 1, 550-552

321.4.4 Chapter 1 summarized by Satkari Mookerjee in NNMRP 1, 42-58

321.4.5 Johannes Rahder, "Jacques May's translation of Prasannapada", JIBSt 9.2, 1961, 753-755

321.4.6 J.W.de Jong, "La Madhyamakasastrastuti de Candrakirti", Oriens Extremus 91, 1962, 47-56

321.4.7 Chapter 15 translated by Mervyn Sprung and U.S.Vyas. Anviksiki 6.3-4, 1973, 201-214

321.4.8 Susumu Yamaguchi, Index to the Prasannapada Madhyamakavrtti. Volume I: Sanskrit-Tibetan. Volume II: Tibetan-Sanskrit. Kyoto 1974

371.4.8.5 Jeffrey Hopkins, "An analysis of coming and going: the second chapter of Candrakirti's Clear Words, a commentary on Nagarjuna's Treatise on the Middle Way. Dharamsala 1974

321.4.9 J.W.de Jong, "Textcritical notes on the Prasannapada", IIJ 20, 1978, 217-252

321.4.10 Akira Yuyama, "Prajna-paramita-ratna-guna-samcaya-Gatha (Rgs) quoted by Candrakirti in his Prasannapada", JIBSt 27.1, 1978, 17-20

321.4.11 Partly translated into Italian by Raniero Gnoli in TBIS 381-413

321.4.11.5 Amalia pezzali, "L'importenze di Candrakirti e delle sue Prasannapada nel pensiero madhyamaka", SOL 1, 1983, 55-66

321.4.12 Charles Crittenden, "Serenity", JIP 12, 1984, 201-214

321.4.13 Akira Saito, "Textcritical remarks on the Mulamadhyamakakarikas as cited in the Prasannapada", JIBSt 33.2, 1985, 24-28

321.4.14 I.W.Mabbott, "An annotated translation of Chapter XVI of Candrakirti's Prasannapada", JAIH 15, 1985-86, 47-84. Also JDPaliUC 4, 1987-88. 100-112

321.4.15 Helmut Tauscher, "On parabhava and paramartha", WZKSOA 33, 1989, 183-202

321.4.16 Bibhuti S. Yadav, "Methodic deconstruction", IntptR 129-168

321.4.20 Anne MacDonald, "The Prasannapada: more manuscripts from Nepal", WZKS 44, 2000, 165-182

321.4.21 Brian Galloway, "Toward a new edition and translaitn of Chapter 13 of the Prasanapada of Candrakirti", ZDMG 151, 2001, 321-350

321.4.24 Anne MacDonald, "Interpreting Prasannapada 19.3-7 in context. A response to Claus Oetke", WZKSOA 47, 2003, 143-196

321.4.25 Claus Oetke, "Prasannapada 19.3-7 and its context", WZKSOA 47, 2003, 111-142

321.4.26 Yoshiyasu Yonezawa, "*Laksanatika. Sanskrit notes on the Prasannapada", JNIBS 27, 2004, 114-154; 28, 2005, 159-179; 29, 2006, 135-163; 30, 2007, 203-235; 32, 2009, 157-228; 34, 2011, 125-158; 35, 2012, 69-102

321.4.27 Dan Arnold, "Materials for a Madhyamika critique of foundationalism: an annotated translation of Prasannapada 55.11 to 75.13", JIABS 28, 2005, 411-468

321.4.30 Ultrich Timme Kragh, Early Buddhist Theories of Action and Result: a Study of Karmaphalasambudha Candrakirti's Prasannapada verses 17.1-20. Wien 2006

321.4.33 G. C. Nayak, Nirvana in Candrakirti's Prasannapada. Shimla 2006

321.4.36 Kevin Vose, "Studies in Indian and Tibetan thought, part 2: Two prolegomena to Madhyamaka philosophy: Candrakirti's Prasannapada, Madhyamakavrtti on MK 1.1.1...", JAOS 128, 2008, 607-609

321.4.40 Eviatar Sulman, "The commitments of a Madhyamaka trickster: innovation in Candrakirti's Prasannapada", JIP 38, 2010, 379-417

321.4.45 Anne MacDonald, "Who is that masked man? Candrakirti's oppponent in Prasannapada I ss..11.58.13", JIP 39, 2011, 677-694


       5.Commentary on Aryadeva's Satasastra


       6.Vrtti on Nagarjuna's Sunyatasaptati

321.6.1 On sutras 1-14 edited by Felix Raymond Erb. Stuttgart 1997


       7.Trisaranasaptati

321.7.1 Edited and translated as The Septuagint on the Three Refuges by Peter K. Sorenson. Wien 1986.

321.7.2 Peter Skilling and Saerji, "Candrakirti and the Purvasailas: a note o n Trissaranasaptati”, ARIRSU 24, 2003, 267-272


       8.Vrtti on Nagarjuna's Yuktisastika

See e47.15:2, 12

321.8.1 Edited and translated into French by Cristina Anna Scherrer-Schaub. MCB 25, 1991

321.8.2 Cristina Anna Scherrer-Schaub, "Candrakirti sur les traces du jina im marge de le Yuktisastikavrtti", BSPF 59-63

321.8.3 Ye Shaoyong, "A Sanskrit folio of the Yktisastikavrtti from Tibe [16 figures’”, ARIRSU 24, 2013, 222-240


        9.General

See a47.16:38,80,113,125.0; 50.6:9,11. b50.6.10

321.9.1 Nathmal Tatia, "The avyakrtas or indeterminables", NNMRP II, 1960, 139-160

321.9.1.5 Heramba Chatterjee, "Candrakirti", EnBud 3.4, 1971, 649-655

321.9.2 Robert A.F.Thurman, "Philosophical nonegocentrism in Wittgenstein and Candrakirti in their treatment of the private language problem", PEW 30, 1980, 321-338

321.9.3 William L. Ames, "The notion of svabhava in the thought of Candrakirti", JIP 10, 1982, 161-177. Reprinted BCCRS 1-15

321.9.3.1 Artemus Bertine Engle, The Buddhist Theory of Self according to Acarya Candrakirti. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983

321.9.4 Peter G. Fenner, "Candrakirti's refutation of Buddhist idealism", PEW 33, 1983, 251-262

321.9.5 Cesare Rizzi, Candrakirti (in Italian). Bologna 1983. Translated into English, Delhi 1988

321.9.6 James Duerlinger, "Candrakirti's denial of the self", PEW 34, 1984, 261-272

321.9.7 Christine A. Scherrer-Schaub, "Tendance de la pensée de Candrakirti, Buddhajnana et Jinakriya", BF 3, 1994, 249-272

321.9.8 John D. Dunne, "Thoughtless Buddha, passionate Buddha", JAAR 64, 1996, 525-536

321.9.11 Kodo Yotsuya, The Critique of Svatantra Reasoning by Candrakirti and Tsong-kha-pa: a Study of Philosophical Proof according to Two Prasangika Madhyamaka Traditions of India and Tibet. Stuttgart 1999

321.9.14 Dan Arnold, "How to do things with Candrakirti: a comparative study in anti-skepticism", PEW 51, 2001, 247-279

321.9.16 Jay L. Garfield, "Taking conventional truth seriously: authority regarding deceptive reality", PEW 60, 2010, 341-354

321.9.18 C.W.Huntington, Jr., "Was Candrakirti a Prasangika?", SPD 67-92

321.9.19 Roger R. Jackson, "Candrakirti", EnB 1, 2001, 111

321.9.20 Joseph John Liozzo, Candrakirti and the Moon-Flower of Nalanda" Objectivity and Self-Correction in India's Central Therapeutic of Philosophy of Language. Summarized DAIA 62.2, 2001, 603

321.9.21 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "Tsong khapa's reevaluation of Candrakirti's criticism of autonomous inference", SPD 257-288

321.9.25 Dan Arnold, "Candrakirti against bare particulars", BBB 143-174

321.9.26 Dan Arnold, "Is it really true that everything is empty? Candrakirti on essencelessness as the essence of things", BBB 175-204

321.9.28Manoru Kobayashi, "The Madhyamaka thought of Ton ston Sakya rgyal mtshan and its impact", MRDTB 63, 20-05, 13-40

321.9.30 Richard P. Hayes, "Candrakirti", EnBuddhism 194-195

321.9.35 Kevin A. Vose, Resurrecting Candrakirti. Disputes in the Tibetan Creation of Prasangika. Somerville, Mass. 2008

321.9.39 Li Xuizhu, "Candrakirti on dharmanairatmya as held by both Mahayana and Hinayana”, BudMC

321.9.42 Karen C. Lang, "Candrakirti's critique of the Samkhya concept of purusa and prakrti", FVTC 53-60

321.9.45 Jay L. Garfield, "Taking conventional truth seriously: authority regarding deceptive reality”, Moonshadows 23-38

321.9.50 Sonam Thakchoe, "Prasangika epistemology: a reply to Stag tsang’s charge against Tongkhapa’s uses of pramana in Candrakirti’s philosophy”, JIP 41, 2013, 535-561

321.9.63 Sonam Thakchoe, "Prasangika epistemology in context” Moonshadows 39-56



322.Gaudapada (600)

       1.Bhasya on Isvarakrsna's Samkhyakarikas

See a423.1.4. e163.1:3,10,30,33,46,48,61. t163.1:55,60,92. et163.1.17,41,59. d163.1.24.

322.1.1 Selections translated in HTR 64-68

322.1.2 Summarized by G.J.Larson. Samkhya 219-224


       2.Dipika on the Uttaragita

322.2.1 Edited by Gangadhara Bhatta Sarma. Bombay 1968


       3.General

322.3.1 N.B.Chakraborty, "Gaudapada: his works and views", CR 145, 1957, 89-96


322A.Aryasura (600) (NCat II, 173)

       1.Paramitasara (NCat II, 173)

322A.1.1 Edited by Alfonso Ferrari. Vatican City, Rome 1946


       2.Bodhisattvakarmaphalasamksiptanirdesasutra (NCat II, 173)


       3.Paramitasamasa

322A.3.0 Carol Jean Meadows, Arya-sura's 'Compendium of the Perfections'. Translation and Analysis of the Paramitasamasa. Ph.D.Thesis, Columbia University 1976. Printed New York 1976, 1978

322A.3.1 Edited and translated by Carol Meadows. Bonn 1986

322A.3.3 Naoki Saito, Das Kompendium der imnoralischen Vollkommenheiten Vairocanaraksita: tibetische Ubertregung von Aryasuras Paramitasamasa samt Neuausgabe des Sanskrttextes. Marburg 2000

322A.3.4 Noriyuki Kudo, "A newly-identified manuscript of the Paramitasamasa in ther Gilgit Buddhist Manuscripts”m ARIRSU 24, 2013, 255-266


    322A.4.Pranidhanasaptati

322A.4.1 Edited in Tibetan and translated by Brian C. Beresford with L.T.Doboom Tulku, Gonsar Tulku, Sherpa Tulkuk. Dharamsala 1978, 1981


323.Author Unknown (610)

       1.Pancaparamitanirdesasutra

See a33.1.30


325.Author Unknown (610)

       1.Mandalastasutra (T.486)


326.Author Unknown (610)

       1.Aryatathagatanambuddhaksetragunoktadharmaparyayasutra (T.290)


327.Author Unkown (610)

       1.Buddhahrdayadharanisutra (T.918-919)


328.Author Unknown (610)

       1. Devatasutra (T. 592)

Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 599

328.1.1 Adelheid Mette, "Zwei kleine Fragmente aus Gilgit. I. Tathagata bimbakarapanasutra (Gilgit Ms. No. 18); II. Devatasutra und Alpadevatasutra (aus Gilgit-Ms. No. 13)", SII 7, 1981, 133-151


329.Author Unknown (610)

       1.(Arya)Nandimitravadanasutra (T.2030)


330.Author Unknown (610)

       1.Prasantaviniscayapratiharyasutra (T.648; Toh. 129)


331.Author Unknown (610)

       1.Sahasraprajnaparamitasutra (T.220(1))


332-333.(unassigned)


334.Uddyotakara (610) (NCat II, 337)

       1.Nyayavarttika on Vatsyayana's Nyayabhasya

See a220.1.13; 268.7:24.1, 27.1; 268.10.31; 304.12.3. e48.1:9,14,29,50,70. t48.1.25

334.1.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Uddyotakara, a contemporary of Dharmakirti", JRAS 1914, 601-606

334.1.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Zu den Fragmenten buddhistischer Logiker im Nyayavarttikam", WZKM 40, 1933, 281-304

334.1.3 A.Vostrikov, "Nyayavarttika of Uddyotakara and the Vadanyaya of Dharmakirti", IHQ 11, 1935, 1-31

334.1.4 Anantalal Thakur, "Uddyotakara as a Vaisesika", PAIOC 15, 1949, 327-334

334.1.5 Gerhard Oberhammer, "On the sources in Jayanta Bhatta and Uddyotakara", WZKSOA 6, 1962, 91-150

334.1.6 Anantalal Thakur, "Textual studies in the Nyayavarttika", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 379-388

334.1.7 Selections translated in HTR 111-112

334.1.8 Summarized by Karl H. Potter. EnIndPh2, 1977, 303-437

334.1.9 Curtis F. Oliver, "Perception in early Nyaya", JIP 6, 1978, 243-266

334.1.10 Arindam Chakravarti, 'The Nyaya proofs for the existence of the soul", JIP 10, 1982, 211-238

334.1.10.0 Richard P. Hayes, "Uddyotakara on the whole and its parts", Tetsugaku (The Journal of Hiroshima Philosophical Society) 38, 1986, 17-29

334.1.10.1 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "Apoha: Uddyotakara's critique of Dinnaga", IJBS 1.2, 1989, 4-12

334.1.10.2 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Uddyotakara in the Nyayavarttika", BPBS 13-46

334.1.11 Michael Torsten Much, "Uddyotakaras kritik des apoha-lehre (Nyayavarttika ad NS II.2.66)", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 351-366

334.1.12 Yosuhiro Okazaki, "Uddyotakara's vyatireki-hetu", JIBST 44.1, 1995, 1-4

334.1.13 Ernst Prets, "Dharmakirti's refutation of kevalanvayin and kevalavyatirekin reasons in the light of the Naiyayika's view", DTI 333-340

334.1.16 Yasuhiro Okazaki, "Asadharana-hetvabhasa and Uddyotakara's vyatirekin", Sambhasa 23, 2003, 39-52

334.1.18 Michiko Ishitohi, "The propositional logic of Uddyotakara", TMSR 393-406

334.1.20 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 373-380

334.1.25 Koji Ezake, "On the refutatin of the Buddhist theory of momentariness in the Nyayavatara", JIBSt 57.3, 2009, 35-40

335.Author Unknown (610)

       1.Avalokitesvaraikadasanukhadharanisutra


337.Author Unknown (625)

       1.Caturdharmanirdesasutra (T.772-773)

337.1.1 Translated into French in Feer 197-198

337.1.2 Ratna Handurukande, "Caturdharmanirdesasutra", EnBud 3.4, 1977, 718


338.-339.(unassigned)


340.Author Unknown (625)

       1.Ghanavyuhasutra (T.681-682)


342.Isvarasena (625) (NCat II, 279)

       1.General

342.1.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "Bemerkungen zu Isvarasena's Lehre vom Grund", WZKS 10, 1966, 73-85

342.1.2 Shri Nivas Shastri, "Acarya Isvarasena: a historical and philosophical study", Bh 12-14, 1968-71, 324-330

342.1.3 Ernst Steinkellner, "Kumarila, Isvarasena and Dharmakirti in dialogue: a new interpretation of Pramanavarttika I. 33", BVSK 625-646

342.1.4 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "Pre-Dharmakirti commentators on Dignaga's definition of a thesis", BF 3, 1994, 295-305


343.Author Unknown (635)

       1.Dirghanakhaparivrajakapariprcchasutra (T.584)

343.1.1 Edited and translated into French by Robert Gauthiot as Le sutra du religieux Ongles-Longes. Memoires de la Societe de lnguisticque, tom XVII, Paris 1912

343.1.5 Toshinori Ochai, "On ancient Japanese manuscript copies of the Dirghanakhapariprcchasutra”, PICPBS 16, 2012, 37-48



344.Dharmakirti (640) (NCat IX, 240-241)

       1.Hetubindu (NCat IX, 241)

344.1.1 Reconstructed into Sanskrit and edited, with Bhatta Arcata's Tika and Durveka Misra's Aloka, by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. GOS 113, 1949

344.1.2 Edited in Tibetan, reconstructed into Sanskrit, and translated into German by Ernst Steinkellner. OAWV 4-5, 1967. Two volumes

344.1.2.5 Rita Gupta, "The Buddhist doctrine of momentariness and its presuppositions: Dharmakirti's arguments in Hetubindu", JIP 8, 1980, 47-68. Reprinted ETB 525-546

344.1.3 Hisakuni Saito, "Anupalabdhi in Hetubindu", JIBSt 41.2, 1993, 37-39

344.1.4 Edited and translated by P. P. Gokhale. Delhi 1997

344.1.7 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "Augenblicklichkeit (ksanikatva) und Eigenwesen (svabhava): Dharmakitis Polemik im Hetubindu", WZKSOA 47, 2003, 197-216

344.1.10 Hideyo Ogawa, "On the term anupalabdhi”, RLBPA 395-405


       2.Laukikapramanapariksa

344.2.1 Christian Lindtner, "À propos Dharmakirti: two new works and a new date", ActOD 41, 1980, 27-38

344.2.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "À propos of Lindtner's two new works", Prajnajyoti 277-286


       3.Nyayabindu (Vijnanavada) (NCat IX, 240)

344.3.1 Edited by P. Peterson. BI 128, 1889. Reissued with Dharmottara's Tika, 1929

344.3.2 K.B.Pathak, "On the authorship of the Nyayabindu", JASBo 19, 1895-97, 47-57

344.3.3 Edited and translated into Russian, with Dharmottara's Tika, by Th. Stcherbatsky. BBudh 7-8, St. Petersburg 1903-1904, 1918. Reprinted Osnabruck 1970; Delhi 1992

344.3.4 G.A.Jacob, "Note on the authorship of Nyayabindu", JRAS 1905, 361-362

344.3.5 Edited in Tibetan, with Vinitadeva's Tika, by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. With a Tibetan-Sanskrit index prepared by Satischandra Vidyabhusana. BI 171, 1907-1913; 230, 1917. Reprinted Calcutta 1984

344.3.6 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in ILMS and HIL, 309-318

344.3.6.1 Translated, with Dharmottara's commentary, by Harisatya Bhattacharya. MB 31, 1923 - 33, 1925

344.3.8 Edited, with Dharmottara's Tika, by Candrasekhara Sastri. HSS 22, 1924. Reprinted 1954. Reprinted as KSS 22, 1982

344.3.9 Th. Stcherbatsky and E. Obermiller, Indices Verborum Sanscrit-Tibetan and Tibetan-Sanscrit to Nyayabindu of Dharmakirti and the Nyayabindutika of Dharmottara. BBudh 24-25, 1927-28; Delhi 1992

344.3.10 Rakesaranjan Sarma, "The Buddhistic theory of perception", PQ 5, 1929-30, 214-243

344.3.11 Translated, with Dharmottara's Tika, by Th. Stcherbatsky in BL II. Reprinted 'S-Gravenhage 1958; New York 1962; Osnabruck 1970; Tokyo 1977; Delhi 1992

344.3.12 D.Chatterji, "Collation of the editions of the Sanskrit text of the Nyayabindu and the Nyayabindutika, published in the Bibliotheca India and the Bibliotheca Buddhica", JASBe n.s. 28, 1932, 251-294

344.3.13 Satkari Mookerjee, "The grounds of inference as classified by Dharmakirti", SB 2, 63-67

344.3.13.1 Edited with Dharmottara's commentary by P.I.Tarkas. Akola, 1952

344.3.14 Edited, with Dharmottara's Tika and Durveka Misra's Dharmottarapradipa, by Dalsukh Malvania. TSWS 2, 1955, 1971

344.3.15 Edited in Bengali script by Bidhubhusan Nyaya-Tarkatirtha. OH 11.2, 1963, 1-20

344.3.16 Edited and translated, with Vinitadeva's Tika, by Mrinalkanti Gangopadhyaya. Calcutta 1971

344.3.17 Edited, with Dharmottara's Tika, by Srinivasa Sastri. Meerut 1975

344.3.18 Alex Wayman, "A reconsideration of Dharmakirti's 'deviation' from Dignaga on pratyaksabhasa", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 387-396

344.3.19 Edited with Dharmottara's Tika by Candra Sekhar Sastri. Varanasi 1982

344.3.20 Edited and summarized, with Dharmottara's Tika, Vinitadeva's Tippani, and an unknown author's Tippani, by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1985

344.3.20.1 Edited with Dharmottara's Tika by Nitina R. Desai. LDS 112, 1991

344.3.21 Edited and translated by G. C. Pande. Sarnath 1996

344.3.23 Translated by Alex Wayman in MBL

344.3.25 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Taxonomic approach to drstantabhasa in Nyayabindu and in Siddharsigani's Nyayavataravrtti--Dharmakirti's typology and the Jaina criticism thereof", DTI 1-15

344.3.28 Shodo Yamakami, "Dharmakirti vs. Bhasarvajna on perception", DTI 449-457

344.3.32 Neelima Sinha, "Nyayabindu on negation", NKGWG 45-107

344.3.34 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Implications of the Buddhist-Jaina dispute over the fallacious example in Nyayabindu and Nyayavatara-vrtti", SJH 117-153

344.3.35 Horst Lasic, "Placing the Taba tshad ma materials in the general development of tshad ma studies in Tibet. Part One: The study of the Nyayabindu", Pramanakirti 483-496

344.3.40 Rajan Raghunathan, "A critical look at Stcherbatskly's translation of Dharmakirti's Nyayabindu", FVTC 43-52


       4.Pramanavarttika and Bhasya (Vijnanavada) (NCat IX, 240)

See a268.7:27, 29, 40.5; 342.1.3. e174.6.11

344.4.1 Verses 42-187 of Chapter One edited in Tibetan and translated into German, with Dharmottara's Apohaprakarana, by Erich Frauwallner in "Beiträge zur Apohalehre", WZKM 37, 1930 - 44, 1936

344.4.2 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "The Pramanavarttika of Dharmakirti", IHQ 13, 1937, 153

344.4.3 Edited, with Manorathanandin's Vrtti, by Rahula Sankrtyayana. JBRS 24, 1938, Appendix

344.4.4 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Gunaratna's Tarkarahasyadipika and Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika", IHQ 16, 1940, 143-144

344.4.5 Chapters 2-4 edited (including karikas of Sambandhapariksa), with Prajnakaragupta's Bhasya by Rahula Sankrtyayana. Allahabad 1943. In to volumes, Patna 1953, 1955

344.4.6 Svarthanumana chapter edited, with Karnagomin's Tika, by Rahula Sankrtyayana. Patna 1938; Allahabad 1943. Reprinted Kyoto 1982

344.4.6.1 Pramanasiddhi chapter translated in Masatoshi Nagatomi, A Study of Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University, June 1957

344.4.7 Svarthanumana chapter edited with autocommentary by Dalsukh Malvania. Varanasi 1959

344.4.8 Masatoshi Nagatomi, "The framework of the Pramanavarttika, Book One", JAOS 79, 1959, 263-266

344.4.9 Chapter One edited with autocommentary by Raniero Gnoli. SerOR 23, 1960 

344.4.10 I. Yamada, "Pramanavarttika and Pramanaviniscaya", JIBSt 8, 1960, 42-45

344.4.10.2 Chapter one edited by Raniero Gnoli. Rome 1960

344.4.11 Tilmann Vetter, Erkenntnisprobleme bei Dharmakirti. OAWV 1, 1963

344.4.12 Karikas 1-51 edited and translated, with autocommentary, by Satkari Mookerjee and Hojun Nagasaki. Nalanda 1964

344.4.13 Edited, with Manorathanandin's Vrtti, by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1968

344.4.14.1 Edited in Tibetan, with Sakyamati's Tika. Three volumes. Dharamsala 1970

344.4.15 Karikas edited by Yusho Miyasaka. ActInd 2, 1971-72, 1-206. Index: ActInd 3, 1973-75, 1-157

344.4.16 Ernst Steinkellner, "Wirklichket und Begriff bei Dharmakirti", WZKSOA 15, 1971, 179-212

344.4.16.1 Leonard Zwilling, Dharmakirti on Apoha. The Ontology, Epistemology and Semantics of Negation in the Svarthanumana-pariccheda of the Pramanavarttikam. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1976

344.4.17 G.L.Chaturvedi, "The concept of self-luminosity of knowledge in Pramanavarttika", Rtam 10, 1978-79, 27-36

344.4.17.5 Yosho Mioyasaka, "An Index to the Pramanavarttikakarika. Part II (Tibetan-Sanskrit Section). ActInd 4, 1976-79, 1-179

344.4.18 L.W.J. van der Kuijp, "Introductory notes to the Pramanavarttika based on Tibetan sources", TJ 4.2, 1979, 6-28

344.4.18.1 S. Ota and P.R.Vora, "A translation of Pramanavarttika I and Svavrtti (2)", Saga Ryukoku Tankridaigaku Kiyo 26, 1980, 1-19

344.4.19 Leonard Zwilling, "Sa skya Pandita's version of Pramanavarttika III.3--a case study in the influence of exegesis upon translation in Tibet", StIndPh 304-314

344.4.20 N.J.Shah, "Essentials of Dharmakirti's theory of knowledge (based on the Pramanavarttika)", SzumJB 251-260

344.4.21 Tadashi Tatani, "Pramanavarttika IV (Pararthanumana) (1) - Vastubala pravrtanumana from the standpoint of 'Transzendental Pragmatik' (Hermeneutik)" (in Japanese with English translation). KKKSG 17, 1981, 11-24

344.4.22 Svarthanumana and Svavrtti thereon translated by Pradyumna R. Vora. Part 3, SRTDK 28, 1982, 1-22

344.4.23 Roger Reid Jackson, Is Enlightenment Possible? An Analysis of Some Arguments in the Buddhist Philosophical Tradition with special attention to the Pramanasiddhi Chapter of Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983.

344.4.24 Pramanasiddhi 1-6 translated in Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakirti's theory of truth", JIP 12, 1984, 215-235

344.4.25 Pramanasiddhi edited and translated into German by Tilmann Vetter in Der Buddha und Seine Lehre in Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika. Wiener Studien zur Tibetologie und Buddhismuskunde, Heft 12, Wien 1984

344.4.26 Roger Jackson, "Dharmakirti's refutation of theism", PEW 36, 1986, 315-348

344.4.27 M. Inami and T.J.F.Tillemans, "Another look at the framework of the Pramanasiddhi chapter of Pramanavarttika", WZKSOA 30, 1986, 123-142.

344.4.28 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Pramanavarttika IV", WZKSOA 30, 1986, 143-162; 31, 1987, 141-162.

344.4.29 Richard P. Hayes, "On the reinterpretation of Dharmakirti's svabhavahetu", JIP 15, 1987, 319-332

344.4.30 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Dharmakirti on the distinction between svarthanumana and pararthanumana", IndPQ 15, 1988, 177-188

344.4.31 K. Kunjunni Raja, "Pramanavarttika--textual problem of pratyaksa-I", ALB 52, 1988, 111-113

344.4.31.1 Georges Dreyfus, "Dharmakirti's definition of pramana and its interpreters", StBudEp 20-38

344.4.31.2 Eli Franco, "The disjunction in Pramanavarttika Pramanasiddhi Chapter Verse 5c", StBudEp 39-51

344.4.31.3 Brendan S. Gillon, "Dharmakirti and the problem of induction", StBudEp 53-58

344.4.31.4 Brendan S.Gillon, "Word order in the Svarthanumana chapter of Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika", StBudEp 59-68

344.4.31.5 Kyo Kano, "On the background of Pramanavarttika II, 12ab - the origin of Dharmakirti's idea of arthakriya", StBudEp 119-128

344.4.31.6 Toshihiko Kimura, "Dharmakirtis Sprachtheorie - eine synopse", StBudEp 147-153

344.4.31.7 Christian Lindtner, "The initial verses of the Pramanasiddhi chapter in the Pramanavarttika", StBudEp 155-159

344.4.31.8 Tabe E. Meindersma, "A brief reference to apoha theory in the section on paralokasiddhi in Pramanavarttika II", StBudEp 169-174

344.4.31.5 Eli Franco, "Der Buddha und seine Lehre in Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika", JIP 17, 1989, 81-99

344.4.32 Edited, with Svopajnavrtti and Manorathanandin's Vrtti, by Ram Chandra Pandeya. Delhi 1989

344.4.33 Chapter 2, verses 1-7 translated in Vittorio A. von Bijlert, Epistemology and Spiritual Authority (Vienna 1989).

344.4.33.1 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "Dharmakirti on some sophisms", StBudEp 403-418,

344.4.34 Chapter 2, edited and translated in T. Vetter, Der Buddha und seine Lehre in Dharmakirtis Pramanavarttika. Der Abschnitt über den Buddha und die vieren Wahrheiten im Pramanasiddhi-Kapitel 2, verbessente Auflage. Wien 1990

344.4.35 Richard P. Hayes and Brendan S. Gillon, "Introduction to Dharmakirti's theory of inference as presented in Pramanavarttika Svopajnavrtti 1-10", JIP 19, 1991, 1-74

344.4.36 C. S. Vyas, Buddhist Theory of Perception with special reference to Pramanavarttika of Dharmakirti. New Delhi 1991

344.4.36.1 Edited with Prajnakaragupta's Bhasya by Yogindrananda. Volume I. Varanasi 1991

344.4.38 Shoryu Katsura, "Pramanavarttika IV.202-206--towards the correct understanding of svabhavapratibandha", JIBSt 40.2, 1992, 35-40

344.4.38.1 Portions edited in Dwarika Das Shastri, Apohavada. A Basic Principle of Buddhist Philosophy (Varanasi 1992

344.4.39 Book Four, Section Three edited and translated in Tom J.F.Tillemans, "Pramanavarttika IB (3)", AS 46.1, 1992, 437-467

344.4.39.1 Chapter Two, Pramanasiddhi, edited and translated in Roger R. Jackson, Is Enlightenment Possible? Dharmakirti and rGyaltshab rje on Knowledge, Rebirth, No-self and Liberation. New York 1993

344.4.40 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Pramanavarttika IV.14", WZKSOA 37, 1993, 135-164

344.4.41 Edition and translation of IV.48-71 in Tom J.F.Tillemans, "Pramanavarttika IV (4)", WZKSOA 37, 1993, 135-164

344.4.41.1 Takashi Iwata, Prasanga und Prasangaparyaya bei Dharmakirti und seinem Kommentaren. Wien 1993

344.4.42 Eli Franco, "Alayavijnana and klistamanas in the Pramanavarttika", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 367-378

344.4.43 Eli Franco, "Vaisesika or Carvaka? The mysterious opponent in Pramanavarttika 2.63-72", AS 48, 1994, 683-698

344.4.44 Tom J.F.Tillemans, "Pramanavarttika IV (5)", WZKSOA 39, 1995, 103-150

344.4.45 Chapter Two, Pramanasiddhi, edited and translated in Eli Franco, Dharmakirti on Compassion and Rebirth. Wiener Studien zur Tibetologie und Buddhismuskunde. Heft 38. Wien 1997

344.4.46 Eli Franco, "Distortion as a price for comprehensibility? The rGyal tshab - Jackson interpretation of Dharmakirti", JIABS 20.1, 1997, 133-148

344.4.46.1 Eli Franco, "The Tibetan translation of the Pramanavarttika and the development of translation methods from Sanskrit to Tibetan", TibSt 277-288

344.4.47 Eli Franco, "A short response to Roger Jackson's reply", JIABS 20.1, 1997, 149-152

344.4.48 Motoi Ono, "A reconsideration of the controversy about the order of the chapters of the Pramanavarttika", TibSt 701-716

344.4.50 Eli Franco, "Two circles or parallel lines?", DTI 53-72

344.4.52 Jonardon Ganeri, "Dharmakirti's semantics for the particle eva", DTI 101-115

344.4.53 Brendan S. Gillon, "Another look at the Sanskrit particle eva", DTI 117-130

344.4.55 Roger R. Jackson, "Atheology and Buddhology in Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika", FPh 16, 1999, 472-505

344.4.55.5 Verses 1-11 of each chapter translated by Alex Wayman in MBL

344.4.56 Claus Oetke, "The disjunction in the Pramanasiddhi", DTI 243-251. Response by Eli Franco, 253-259, and Clarification by Oetke, 261-266.

344.4.57 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "How much of a proof is scripturally based inference (agamasritanumana)", DTI 395-404

344.4.58 John Dowling Dunne, Foundations of Dharmakirti's Philosophy: A Study of the Central Issues in His Ontology, Logic and Epistemology with Particular Attention to the Svopajnavrtti. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1999

344.4.60 Chapter Four traslated by Tom J. F. Tillemans. I: k.1-148, OAWV 675, Wien 2000

344.4.65 Birgit Kellner, "First logic; then the Buddha? The controversyabot the chapter sequence of Dharmakirti’s Pramanavarttika and the soteriological relevance of inference”, Hoin 11, 2004, 147-167

344.4.70 Toshikazu Watanabe, "Causality and the notion of bheda", JIBSt 53.2, 2005, 27-30

344.4.75 Vincent Eltschinger, Penser l'autorité des Ecritures: la polémique de Dharmakirti contra la notion brahmanique orthodoxe d'un Veda sans auteurs autor de Pramanavarttika 1.213-268 et Svavrti. Wien 2007

344.4.77 Claus Oetke, "Some aspects of textual exegesis with regard to Dharmakirti's sattvanumana", EMH 571-585

344.4.77 Parimal G. Patil, "Dharmakirti's white lie–philosophy, pedagogy, and truth in late Indian Buddhism", Pramanakirti 597-620

344.4.80 Koji Tanaka, "Dharmakirti and Priest on an inconsistent theory of change–a comment on Mortenson", PEW 57. 2007, 244-252. Responses by Moretnson (253-256) and by Tanaka (257-258)

344.4.85 B.S.Gillon and R.P.Hayes, "Dharmakirti on the role of causation in inference as presented in Pramanavarttika Svopajnavrtti 11-38", JIP 36.3, 2008, 335-404

344.4.90 Cristina Pecchia, "Is the Buddha like a man in the street?" Dharmakirti's answer", WZKSOA 51, 20-07-2008, 163-192

344.4.93 Ernst Steinkellner, "Further remarks on the compound avinabhavanihama in the early Dharmakirti", WZKSOA 51, 2007-2008, 193-206

344.4.98 Birgit Kellner, "Towards a critical edition of Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika", WZKSOA 52-53, 2009-2010, 161-212

344.4.104 Vincent Eltschinger, "Studies on Dharmaksirti's religious philosophy [3]: compassion and its value in the general structure of PV 2", RLBPA 43-72

344.4.104.1 Svavrtti on 164.24 - 175.16 edited and translated by Vincent Eltschinger, with articlers by Eltschinger, Helmut Krasser and John Taber, in Can the Veda DSpeak? Dharmakiti against Mimamsa exegetics and Vedic authority. Vienna 2012

344.4.105 Brendon S. Gillon, "Dharmakirti on inference from effect. A discussion of verse 12 and the Svavrtti on the Svarthanumana chapter of the Pramanavarttika", RLBPA 113-130

344.4.107 Birgit Kellner, "Dharmakirti’s crticism of external reaism and the slidling scale of aalysis”, RLBPA 292-298

344.4.110 TakashiIwata, "Compassion in Buddhist logic. Dharmakirti’s view of compassionas interpreted by Prajnakaragupta”, RLBPA 211-230

344.4.115 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "What makes all that is produced impermanent? The proof of impermanence and the theory of causality”, RLBPA 491-506

344.4.120 Ernst Steinkellner (ed.), Dharmakirti’s fruhe Logik” Annotierte Ubersetzung der logische Teile von Pramanavarttika I mit der Vrtti. Two volumes. Tokyo 2012



     5.Pramanaviniscaya (Vijnanavada) (NCat IX, 240)

See a268.4.10; 344.4.10. b419.6.1

344.5.1 Pratyaksa chapter edited by Tilmann Vetter. OAWV 3, 1966

344.5.2 Svarthanumana chapter edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan by Ernst Steinkellner. Two volumes. OAWV 12, 1973, 1978

344.5.3 Ernst Steinkellner, "New Sanskrit fragments of Pramanaviniscayah, first chapter", WZKSOA 16, 1973, 199-206

344.5.3.5 Chapter 2 (Svarthanumana) translated inot German by Ernst Steinkellner. Wien 1979

344.5.4 Shiro Matsumoto, "Svabhavapratibandha", JIBSt 30.1, 1981, 10-14

344.5.5 Christian Lindtner, "Marginalia to Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya I-II", WZKSOA 28, 1984, 149-176

344.5.5.1 Takashi Iwata, "On the classification of the three kinds of reason in Pramanaviniscaya III - reduction of reasons to svabhavahetu and karyahetu", StBudEp 85-96

344.5.7.1 Sanjit Kumar Sadhukan, "Pramana-Viniscaya--in India and Tibet", JASBe 33, 1991, 66-71

344.5.7.2 Kazunobu Matsuda and Ernst Steinkellner, "The Sanskrit manuscript of Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya (Report on a single folio fragment from the National Archives Collectioj, Kathmandu), WZKS 35, 1991, 139-150

344.5.7.3 Elliot Stern, "Additional fragments of Pramanaviniscayah I-II", WZKS 35, 1991, 151-168

344.5.7.4 Tilmann, Vetter, "Paramarthika-pramana in Dharmakirti's Pramana-viniscaya and in Gtsang-nag-pa's Tshad-ma rnam-pa nges-pa'i ti-ka legs-bshad bdus-pa", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 327-334

344.5.8 Takashi Iwata, "Pramanaviniscaya III. 64-67", WZKSOA 37, 1993, 165-200

344.5.8.5 Claus oetke, Bemerkungen zu buddhistischen Doktrin des Momenarheit des seienden Dharmakirtis sattvanumana. Wien 1993

344.5.9 Takashi Iwata, "Pramanaviniscaya III (1)", WZKSOA 39, 1995, 151-180; "(2)", WZKSOA 41, 1997, 207-232

344.5.10 Shodo Yamakami, "The Pramanaviniscaya I vv. 10-11ab as quoted in the Nyayabhusana", JIBSt 43.2, 1995, 10-16

344.5.11 Helmut Krasser, "rNgog lotsaba in the sahopalambhaniyama proof in Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya", StudiaInd4 63-88

344.5.13 Takashi Iwata, "Pramanaciniscaya III (3). Die bedeutung der worter artha und prakasana in der definition des pararthanumana", WZKSOA 43, 1999, 213-230

344.5.15 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "The development of sattvanumana for the refutation of a permanent existence in the Sautrantika tradition", WZKSOA 43, 1999, 231-254

344.5.18 Takashi Iwata, "An analysis of examples for the interpretation of the word istah in Dharmakirti's definition of a thesis", Pramanakirti 315-344

344.5.20 Chapters 1 and 2 edited by Ernst Steinkellner. Beijing 2007

344.5.21 Ernst Steinkellner, "Miszellen zufr erkenntnis-theoretischen-logischen Schule des Buddhismus X: corrigenda 2 et addenda to Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya, Chapters 1 and 2. Critically edited by Ernst Steinkellner, Beijing-Vienna 2007", WZKSOA 31, 2007-2008, 207-208

344.5.25 Vincent Eltschinger, "Studies on Dharmakirti's religious philosophy [3]: Compassionand its role in the general structure of PV 2", RLBPA 43-72

344,5.29 John Taber, "Did Dharmakirti think the Buddha had desires?”, RLBPA 437-448

344.5.30 Chapter 3 edited by Pascale Hudonand Toru Tombechi. VOAW, Vienna 2012; Beijing 2012


       6.Sambandhapariksa and Vrtti thereon (NCat IX, 241)

See e174.6.11

344.6.1 Edited in Tibetan and (in part) in Sanskrit and translated into German, with Samkarananda's Anusara, by Erich Frauwallner. WZKM 41, 1934, 261-300

344.6.2 Edited with Prabhacandra's Vyakhya, Dharmakirti's Vadanyaya and Santaraksita's Vipancitartha thereon, by Dwarikadas Shastri. Varanasi 1972

344.6.3 Edited and translated, with Prabhacandra's commentary, in V.N.Jha, The Philosophy of Relations. Delhi 1990

344.6.3.5 Edited in Madhumita Chattopadhyaya, Philosophical Studies on the Sambandhapariksa of Dharmakirti: embodyiong the text, commentary of Prabhacandra, Bengali translation, and expository critical notes. Calcutta 1993

344.6.4 Helmut Tauscher, "Tanjur fragments from the ms. collection at Ta pho monastery. Sambandhapariksa with its commentaries Vrtti and Tika", EAW 44, 1994, 173-184


       7.Samtanantarasiddhi (Vijnanavada) (NCat IX, 241)

344.7.1 Edited, with Vinitadeva's Tika, by Th. Stcherbatsky. BBudh 19, 1916. Reprinted Osnabruck 1970; Taipei 1984; Delhi 1992

344.7.2 Translated into Russian, with Vinitadeva's Tika, by Th.Stcherbatsky. St. Petersburg 1922. This translated by Harish C. Gupta, ISPP 10, 1969, 335-383

344.7.3 Translated by Hidenori Kitagawa, JGIS 14, 1955. Reprinted in H. Kitagawa, Dignaga no Taikei (Kyoto 1965)

344.7.4 Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakirti's Samtanantarasiddhi--Japanese translation and synopsis" (in Japanese with English summary). HDBK 43, 1983, 102-120

344.7.5 Ramesh Kumar Sharma, "Dharmakirti on the existence of other minds", JIP 13, 1985, 65-71

344.7.6 Noble Ross Reat, "A Buddhist proof for the existence of God", JIP 13, 1985, 265-272

344.7.7 Translated by Thomas E. Wood in Mind Only: A Philosophical and Doctrinal Analysis of the Vijnanavada. (Honolulu 1991), 207-218.

344.7.8 Restored and edited, with Vinitadeva's Tika, by M.R.Chinchore. Sarnath 1997

344.7.9 Edited with Vinitadeva's Tika by J. S. Nagi. Sarnath 1997

344.7.12 Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakirti's proof of the existence of other minds", Pramanakirti 407-422

344.7.15 Junje Chu, "Sanskrit fragments of Dharmakirti's Samtananatarasiddhi", RLBPA 33-42


       8.Vadanyaya

See a334.1.3. e344.6.2

344.8.1 Edited, with Santaraksita's commentary, by Rahula Sankrtyayana. JBRS 21.4, 1935 - 22.1, Appendix.

344.8.1.1 Edited with Santaraksita's Vipanictartha by Dwarikadas Shastri. Varanasi 1972

344.8.2 Mangala R. Chinchore, Vadanyaya: A Glimpse of Nyaya-Buddhist Controversy.  BIBS 36, 1988

344.8.2.0 Edited with Santaraksita's commentary by Ramchandra Pandeya, Raghavendra Pandey and Manju. Delhi 1988

344.8.2.1 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Post-Udayana Nyaya reactions to Dharmakirti's Vadanyaya -- an evaluation", StBudEp 3-17. Also IndPQ 17.1, 1990, 1-32

344.8.2.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "The logic of the svabhavahetu in Dharmakirti's Vadanyaya", StBudEp 311-324

344.8.4 Edited and translated by Michael Torsten Much. Two volumes. Wien 1991

344.8.5 Edited and translated by Pradeep P. Gokhale. Delhi 1993

344.8.6 Roland Steiner, "Standard works on Indian literature--a critique with special reference to A. K. Warder's treatment of Dharmakirti's Vadanyaya 19.9-17", BVSK 615-623


    9.General

See a47.16.31; 174.10.44; 268.1.190; 268.7:15, 60, 62; 268.10, 2007.1, 2008; 268.10:14, 23, 30, 268.20.205. 43.1, 31.1, 32, 34, 36, 39, 177; 294.2.18.7; 294.5.17; 294.10.216; 302.5.5; 334.1:1,13; 352.5.6; 417.1.3. b268.10.26; H3880

344.9.1 K.B.Pathak, "Dharmakirti and Samkaracharya", JASBo 18, 1890-94, 88-96

344.9.2 H.R.Diwakar, "Bhamaha, Bhatti and Dharmakirti", JRAS 1929, 825-842

344.9.3 K.B.Pathak, "Dharmakirti and Bhamaha", ABORI 12,1933, 372-395

344.9.4 K.B.Pathak, "Dharmakirti's trilaksanahetu attacked by Patrakesari and defended by Santaraksita", ABORI 12, 1930, 71-80

344.9.5 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "Samkaracarya and Dharmakirti", IHQ 9, 1933, 979-980

344.9.6 Two Latvian Budhist priests, "Sri Dharmakirti, the Indian Kant", MB 49, 1941, 279-286

344.9.7 Erich Frauwallner, "Die Reihenfolge und Entstehung der Werke Dharmakirti's", Asiatica 142-154

344.9.8 Sivaprasad Bhattacharya, "The neo-Buddhist nucleus in Alamkarasastra", JAS 22.1, 1956

344.9.9 Satkari Mookerjee, "The criterion of valid knowledge in Dharmakirti's epistemology", JUBihar 2, 1956, 87-105

344.9.10 Shoren Ihara, "Dharmakirti's critics on sphota-theory", NBKN 26, 1961, 175-194

344.9.11 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Mandana and Dharmakirti", EPM 249-251. Reprinted in Rajasudha 80-84

344.9.12 Mithileswar Prasad, "Classification of Dharmakirti's works", Herald of Library Science 3, 1964, 20-22

344.9.13 Someshwar Prasad, "Nature of knowledge according to Dharmakirti", NUJ 16, 1964, 68-75

344.9.14 Nagin J. Shah, Akalanka's Criticism of Dharmakirti's Philosophy. Ahmedabad 1967

344.9.15 Ernst Steinkellner, "Die Entwicklung des Ksanikatvanumanam bei Dharmakirti", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 361-378

344.9.16 Hemanta Kumar Ganguly, "Dharmakirti and his disciples on the notion of causality", Our Heritage Special Number. CalSktCol 150th Anniversary 1824-1974, Calcutta 1979, 313-328

344.9.16.1 Christine Mullikin Keyt, Dharmakirti's Concept of the Svalaksana. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Washington 1980

344.9.17 Ernst Steinkellner, "On the interpretation of the svabhavahetu", WZKSOA 18, 1984, 117-130

344.9.18 Karunesh Shukla, "Dharmakirti and Isvarasiddhi--a review", Rtam 2-6, 1975, 165-174

344.9.19 Friedrich V. Lustig, "The great guru Dharmakirti", MB 83, 1975, 368-370

344.9.20 Leonard Zwilling, "Some aspects of Dharmakirti's ontology reconsidered", Kailash 3, 1975, 303-313

344.9.21 Manoranjan Shastri, "Traditions about the birthplace of Kumarilabhatta and Dharmakirti", JUG 28-29, 1977-78, 65-76

344.9.22 Ernst Steinkellner, Verse-Index to Dharmakirti's Works (Tibetan Versions). Wien 1977

344.9.23 Charlene McDermott, "Yogic direct awareness as means of valid cognition in Dharmakirti and Rgyal-tshab", MBMTP 144-166

344.9.24 Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakirti's theory of truth", TICOJ 26, 1981, 98-99; also JIP 12, 1984, 215-235. Reprinted IPE 1, 99-120

344.9.25 Takashi Iwata, "Bemerkung zur Sahopalambhaniyama-Schlussfolgerung Dharmakirtis und seiner Kommentatoren", JIBSt 30.1, 1981, 486-493

344.9.26 Brendon S. Gillon and Richard P. Hayes, "The role of the particle eva in (logical) quantification in Sanskrit", WZKSOA 26, 1982, 195-204

344.9.27 V.N.Jha, "Dharmakirti on relations", PAIOC 31, 1984, 345-351. Reprinted SILLE 110-117

344.9.28 Lata Bapat, "Dharmakirti on trairupya and trirupalinga", IPQ 11.3, 1984, 9-18

344.9.29 Takashi Iwata, "One interpretation of the samvedana-inference of Dharmakirti", JIBSt 33.1, 1984, 19-22

344.9.30 Brendon S. Gillon, "Dharmakirti and his theory of inference", BLE 77-88

344.9.31 Michael Torsten Much, "Dharmakirti's definition of 'points of defeat' (nigrahasthana)", BLE 133-142

344.9.32 Shoryu Katsura, "Svabhavapratibandha revisited", JIBSt 35.1, 1986, 26-29

344.9.32.1 M. R. Chinchore, "Dharmakirti on the distinction between svarthanumana and pararthanumana", DM 3-4, 1986-87, 33-41

344.9.33 Eli Franco, "Once again on Dharmakirti's deviation from Dignaga on pratyaksabhasa", JIP 14, 1986,79-98 . Reprinted BCCRS 5, 1-16

344.9.34 Kisor Kumar Chakrabarti, "The svabhavahetu in Dharmakirti's logic", PEW 37, 1987, 392-401

344.9.34.5 M.P.Marathe, "Dharmakiti on drstanta", SramV 65-80

344.9.35 Stephen H. Phillips, "Dharmakirti on sensation and causal efficiency", JIP 15, 1987, 231-260

344.9.36 H.G.A.van Zeyst, "Dharmakirti (1)", EnBud 4.4, 1987, 531-533

344.9.37 Tadashi Tani, "Dharmakirti's interpretation of antinomic indicators (viruddhavyabhicarin)", JIBSt 36.1, 1987, 1-10

344.9.38 Kazuhiko Yamamoto, "'Nonerroneous' in Dharmakirti's definition of perception", JIBSt 36.1, 1987, 14-18

344.9.39 Toru Furayama, "Bhava and svabhava in Dharmakirti", JIBSt 36.2, 1988, 16-19

344.9.39.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "Remarks on niscitagrahana", OITMD 3, 1988, 1427-1444

344.9.40 Lata Bapat, Buddhist Logic: A Fresh Study of Dharmakirti's Philosophy. Delhi 1989

344.9.40.1 Kamaleswar Bhattacharya, "Marginal notes on antarvyapti", StBudEp 1-2

344.9.41 Lata Bapat, "Dharmakirti on kinds of anumana", ABORI 69, 1989, 51-61

344.9.42 Mangala R. Chinchore, Dharmakirti's Theory of Hetu-Centricity of Anumana. Delhi 1989

344.9.43 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Dharmakirti on criteria of knowledge", IndPQ16, 1989, 319-344. Also Tulku 72-74

344.9.43.0 Bimal Matilal, "Dharmakirti and the universally negative inference", StBudEp 161-168. (Same as BL73.2)

344.9.43.1 Seitetsu Moriyama, "The later Madhyamika and Dharmakirti", StBudEp 199- 210

344.9.43.2 Claus Oetke, "Svabhavapratibandha and the types of reasons in Dharmakirti's theory of inference", StBudEp 243-268

344.9.43.3 Tadashi Tani, "Logic and time-ness in Dharmakirti's philosophy -hypothetical; negative reasoning (prasanga) and momentary existence (ksanikatva)", StBudEp 325-401

344.9.43.4 Alex Wayman, "Dharmakirti and the Yogacara theory of bija", StBudEp 419-430

344.9.44 Jonardon Ganeri, "Dharmakirti on inference and properties", JIP 18, 1990, 237-248

344.9.45 Arindam Chakrabarti, "On the purported inseparability of blue and the awareness of blue: an examination of sahopalambhaniyama", Tulku 17-36

344.9.46 Rita Gupta, "Dharmakirti's theory of language", Tulku 79-103

344.9.47 Ernst Steinkellner, "Is Dharmakirti a Madhyamika?", 7WSC2 72-89

344.9.47.0 George Bernard Jacques Dreyfus, Ontology, Philosophy of Language, and Epistemology in Buddhist Tradition: A Study of Dharmakirti's Philosophy in the Light of its Reception in the Later Indo-Tibetan Tradition. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Virginia 1991

344.9.47.1 Chr. Lindtner, "On the date of Dharmakirti", ALB 56, 1992, 56-62

344.9.47.3 Karunedh Shukla, "Some remarks on the metaphysical approaches of DharmakIrti, Kumarila and Samkara", SPP 22-23, 1992-93, 65-71

344.9.48.M. Simakov, "Truth false asymmetry in the logic of Dharmakirti", IndPQ 19, 1992, 66-67

344.9.48.2 Richard P. Hayes, "Dharmakirti on punarbhava", in Egaku Maeda (ed.), Studies in Original Buddhism and Mahayana Buddhism (Kyoto 1993). Volume One, pp. 111-130

344.9.48.5 Takashi Iwata, Prasanga und prasangaviparyaya bei Dharmakirti und seine;m Kommentatoren. WZTB heft 31, Wien 1993. Reviewed by Tadashi Tani in IIJ 44, 2000, 361-364

344.9.49 Shoryu Katsura, "On perceptual judgment", SBWarder 66-75

344.9.50 Lata Bapat, "Theory of apoha and its significance in Dharmakirti's philosophy", ABORI 74, 1994, 191-202

344.9.50.1 Georges Dreyfus, "Is Dharmakirti a pragmatist?", AS 49, 1995, 671-692

344.9.51.Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Dharmakirti and Tibetans on adarsanupalabdhi-hetu", JIP 23, 1995, 129-149. Reprinted SLL 151-170

344.9.52 Georges Dreyfus, "Can the fool lead the blind? Perception and the given in Dharmakirti's thought", JIP 24, 1996, 209-229

344.9.52.5 V. N. Jha, "Dharmakirti's concept of pramana", BudIA 1996, 146-156. Also Srijnanamrtam 395-401

344.9.52.7 Ernst Steinkellner, "An explanation of Dharmakirti's svabhavahetu definitions", FDS 257-268

344.9.53 Georges B. Dreyfus, Recognizing Reality. Dharmakirti's Philosophy and its Tibetan Interpretations. Albany, N.Y. 1997

344.9.53.1 George Dreyfus, "Perception and apperception in Tibetan Buddhist epistemology", TibSt 237-252

344.9.55 Richard P. Hayes, "Whose experience validates what for Dharmakirti?", RSB 1997, 105-118

344.9.56 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Dharmakirti on prasiddha and yogyata", BonnOS 4 177-194

344.9.57 Wilhelm Halbfass, "Arthakriya und ksanikatva: einige  beobahtungen", BVSK 233-247

344.9.57.5 Manoranjan Sastri, "Traditions about the birthplace of Kumariulabhatta and Dharmakirti", JUG 39, 1997, 65-76

344.9.58 Masahiro Inami, "On the determination of causality", DTI 131-154

344.9.59 Toshihiko Kimura, "A new chronology of Dharmakirti", DTI 209-214

344.9.60 Helmut Krasser, "Dharmakirti's and Kumarila's refutations of the existence of God: a consideration of their chronological order", DTI 215-223

344.9.61 Horst Lasic, "Dharmakirti and his successors on the determination of causality", DTI 233-242

344.9.63 Futoshi Omae, "Dharmakirti as a varnavadin", DTI 295-300

344.9.64 Motoi Ono, "Dharmakirti on asadharananaikantika", DTI 301-315

344.9.66 Ernst Steinkellner, "Yogic cognition, tantric goal, and other methodological applications of Dharmakirti's karyanumana theory", DTI 349-362

344.9.68 Alex Wayman, "Does the Buddhist 'momentary' theory preclude anything permanent?", DTI 433-439

344.9.99 Rita Gupta, "Does Dharmakirti embrace a pragmatic theory of truth in his theory of knowledge?", JICPR 16.1, 1998, 93-108

344.9.101 Tom J. F. Tillemans, Scripture, Logic and Language: Essays in Dharmakirti with his Tibetan successors. Boston 1999

344.9.102 Karunesh Shukla, "Philosophical background of Dharmakirti's works", BudCompL 276-305

344.9.102.5 Fujinaga Sin, "Determining which Jaina philosopher was the object of Dharmakirti's criticism", PEW 50, 2000, 378-384

344.9.103 Vincent Eltschinger, Dharmakirti sur les mantra et la perception du supra-sensible. WSTB 51. Wien 2001

344.9.103.3 John Dunne, "Dharmakirti", EnB 1, 2001, 225

344.9.103.5 Vincent Eltschinber, Dharmakirti sur les mantra et le perception du supra-sensible. Vienna 2001

344.9.104 Eli Franco, "Dharmakirti's reductionism in religion and logic", LPEIM 285-308

344.9.105 Raghunath Ghose, Relation as Real: A Critique of Dharmakirti. Delhi 2001

344.9.105.5 Harjeet Singh Gill, "Dharmakirti and Abelard: Buddhist apohavada and Abelardian conceptualism", SBFT 287-59

349.9.106 Birgit Kellner, "Negation–failure or success? Remarks on an allegedly characteristic trait of Dharmakirti's anupalabdhi-theory", JIP 29, 2001, 495-517

344.9.107 Helmut Krasser, "On Dharmakirti's understanding of pramanabhuta and his definition of pramana", WZKSOA 45, 2001, 173-200

344.9.110 John Taber, "Much ado about nothing: Kumarila, Santaraksita and Dharmakirti on the cognition of non-being", JAOS 121, 2001, 72-88

344.9.111 Tadashi Tani, "Prasanga und prasangaviparyaya bei Dharmakirti und seinen Kommentatoren", IIJ 44, 2001, 361-364

344.9.115 Vincent Eltschinger, "Dharmakirtis critique de la theorie du sphota", AS 55, 2002, 243-290

344.9.116 H. S. Gill, "Conceptualism in Buddhst and French traditions", SLC 195-232

344.9.117 Rajendra Prasad, Dharmakiti's Theory of Inference: Revaluation and Reconstruction. Oxford; New Delhi 2002

344.9.120 Takashi Iwata, "An interpretation of Dharmakiti's svabhavahetu", JIP 31, 2003, 61-87

344.9.122 Birgit Kellner, "Integrating negative knowledge on to pramana theory: the development of the drsyanupalabdhi in Dharmakirti's earlier works", JIP 31, 2003, 121-159

344.9.123 Horst Lasic, "On the utilisation of causality as a basis of inference. Dharmakirti's statements and their interpretation", JIP 31, 2003, 185-197

344.9.123.3 John D. Dunne, Foundations of Dharmakirti's Philosophy. Boston 2004

344.9.123.7 Masamichi Sakai, "Dharmakirti on viruddhavyaptopalabadhi and ksaniktvanumana", JIBSt 53.1, 2004, 8-10

344.9.124 Karma Phuntsho, "Shifting boundaries: pramana and ontology in Dharmakirti's epistemology", JIP 33, 2005, 401-419

344.9.125 Amit Kumar Sen, "Inference: Dharmakirti and Hempel", IndPQ 30, 2003, 569-574

344.9.126 John Taber, "Dharmakirti against physicalism", JIP 31, 2003, 479-502

344.9.129 Jeson Woo, "Dharmakirti and his commentators on yogipratyaksa", JIP 31, 2003, 439-448

344.9.134 Chris Mortensen, "Dharmakirti and Priest on change", PEW 54, 2004, 20-28

349.9.137 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "Defining and redefining svalaksana: Dharmakirti's concept and its Tibetan modification", TMSR 117-134

349.9.139 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Some distinctive features of Dharmakirti's logic", IndPQ 32, 2005, 285-298

344.9.140 Vincent Eltschinger, "Recherches sur le philosophie relilgieuse de Dharmakirti. I.Le Bauddha comme sastr et comme sugata", AS 59, 2005, 395-442

344.9.141 Vincent Eltschinger, "Etude sur le philosophe de Dharmakirti (II). L'asrayaparivrtti", JA 293, 2005, 151-211

344.9.144 Taiken Kyuma, "On Dharmakirti's proof of the existence of external objects", JIBSt 53.2, 2005, 31-37

344.9.145 Sushma Singhvi, "Dharmakirti: the advocate of bahyartha-astitvavada", EnIW2 157-167

344.9.147 Karma Phuntsha, "Shifting boundaries: pramana and ontology in Dharmakirti's epistemology", JIP 33, 2005, 401-419

344.9.150 Johon D. Dunne, "Realizing the unreal–Dharmakirti's theory of yogic perception", JIP 34, 2006, 497-520

344.9.152 Richard P. Hayes, "Dharmakirti", EnBuddhism 283-284

344.9.152.5 Georges Dreyfus, "Is perception intentional? A preliminary exploration of intentionality in Dharmakirti", Pramanakirti 95-114

344.9.152.5 Takashi Iwata, "Dharmakirti's interpretation of the word ista in the definition of the thesis", IETMH 275-88

344.9.153 Koji Tanaka, "Dharmakirti and Priest on an inconsistent theory of change–a comment on Mortensen", PEW 57, 2007. Reply by Mortenson; reply by Tanaka

344.9.155 Dan Arnold, "Buddhist idealism, epistemic and otherwise: thoughts on the alternating perspectives of Dharmakirti", Sophia 47.1, 2008, 3-28

344.9.156 Noboru Ueda, "A minimal model of viruddhavyabhicara", JIBSt 56.3, 2008, 100-108

344.9.162 Dan Arnold, "On (non-semantically) remembering conventions: Dharmakirti and Dharmottara on sanketa-kala", LBIP 527-552

344.9.165 Vincent Eltschinger, "Studies in Dharmakirti's religious philosophy. 4. The Cintamayi Prajna". LBIP 553-592

344.9.166 Vincent Eltschinger, "Ignorance, epistemology and soteriology–Part 1", JIABS 32.1-2, 209 (2010), 39-84

344.9.168 Martin Straube, "Dharmakirti als Dichter”, Pasadikanam

344.9.170 Taiken Kyumo, "Salikanatha's criticism of Dharmakirti's svasamvedana theory", JIP 38, 2010, 248-259

344.9.175 Toshikazu Watanabe, "Dharmakirti on false rejoinders (jati)", JIBSt 58.3, 2010, 119-124

344.9.180 A Alex Watson, "Bhatta Ramakantha's elaboration of self-awareness (svasamvedana) and how it differs from Dharmakirti's exposition of the concept", JIP 38, 2010, 247-321

344.9.185 Vincent Eltschinger and Isabelle Ratié, "Dharmakirti against the pudgala", Indogaku Chibettogake Kenkyu (Journal of Indian and Tibetan Studies) 14, 185-215

344.9.186 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Dharmakirti's criticism of the Jaina doctrine of multiplexity of reality (aneikantavada), RLBPA 1-32

344.9.187 John D. Dunne, "Key features of Dharmakirti’s apoha theory”, Apoha 84-108

344.9.189 Yoshichiko Honda, "Bhoja and Dharmakirti", RLBPS 151-158

344.9.190 Pascale Hugan, "Is Dharmakirti grabbing the rabbit by the horns? A reassessment of the scope of prameya in Dharmakirti's epistemology", JIP 39, 2011, 367-389

344.9.191 Pascale Hugan, "Dharmakirti’s discussion of circularity”, Apoha 109-124

344.9.195 Kyo Kano, "Satmaka, dharmatreya and anairatmya: Dharmakirti's counter-argument against the proof of atman", JIP 39, 2011, 391-410

344.9.196 Kei Kataoka, "Manu and the Buddha for Kumarila and Dharmakirti”, RLBPA 254-269

344.9.197 Shoryu Katsura, "From Abhidharma to Dharmakirti, with a special reference to the concept of svabhava”, RLBPA 271-279

344.9.198 Taiken Kyuma, "On the (im)perceptibility of external objects in Dharmakirti’s epistemology”, RLBPA 309-318

344.9.200 Toshikazu Watanabe, "Dharmakirti's criticism of anityata in the Samkhya theory", JIP 39, 2011, 553-569

344.9.203 Zhihua Yao, "Non-cognition and the third pramana”, RLBPA 477-490

344.9.205 Laos L. Brans, "Dharmakirti, Davidson, and knowing reality", Comparative Philosophy 3.1, 2012, 30-57

344.9.210 Jeremy E. Henkel, "How to avoid solipsism while remaining an idealist: lessons from Berkeley and Dharmakirti", Comparative Philosophy 3.1, 2012, 58-73

344.9.215 Claus Oetke, "A brief appraisal of the sadvitiyaprayogta”, JIP 41.1, 2013, 43-55



345.Author Unknown (640)

       1.Jnanakadharanisutra (T.1397-1398)


346-348.(unassigned)


349.Author Unknown (645)

       1.Anityatasutra (T.758, 801)

349.1.1 Edited and translated in HS


350.Author Unknown (645)

       1.Bhadrakaratrisutra (T.1362)


351.Sakyayasas (645)

       1.Hastadandasastra


352.Samantabhadra (650)

       1.Jinasatalamkara (Jain)(NCat VII, 270-271)


       2.Jivasiddhi (Jain)(NCat VII, 296)


       3.Gandhahastimahabhasya on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra (NCat V, 309; VIII, 79-80)

352.3.1 Aptamimamsa (or Devagamastotra) section edited, with Vasunandin Siddhantika's Devagamavrtti, by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905

352.3.2 Aptamimamsa edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Astasati and Vidyananda's Aptapariksa, by Gajadharalal Jain. SJGM 7-8, 1914

352.3.3 Aptamimamsa edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Astasati, Vidyananda's Astasahasri and Laghusamantabhadra's Visamatatparya, by Vamsidhara. Bombay 1915

352.3.4 Aptamimamsa edited by Jayacandra. Bombay 1923

352.3.5 Aptamimamsa edited, with Samantabhadra's Yuktyanusasana, in SS

352.3.6 Aptamimamsa edited, with Bhatta Akalanka's Astasati, Vidyananda's Astasahasri, and Yasovijaya's Tatparyanirnaya. Ahmedabad 1937

352.3.6.1 Edited with editor's Tattvadipika by Udaya Chandraq Jain. Varanasi 1975

352.3.6.2 Edited by Acarya Vidyasagara. Varanasi 1985

352.3.7 Aptamimamsa edited by Jugal Kishore Mukhtar. Delhi 1967; Varanasi 1978; Sonagira Datiya 1989

352.3.8 Aptamimamsa edited and translated, with an edition of Akalanka's Astasati by Nagin J. Shah. Ahmedabad 1999

352.3.9 Edited with Vasunandin's commenaty by Kalappa Baramappa Nitava. Sholapur 1999

352.3.10 Aptamimamsa edited by Sarathchandra Ghoshal. New Delhi 2002

352.3.12 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2007, 140-154


       4.Yuktyanusasana (Jain)

See e352.3.5

352.4.1 Edited by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905

352.4.2 Edited, with Vidyananda's Tika, by Indralala and Srilala. MDJG 25, 1919

 
 

352.4.4 Edited by Jugala Kisor Muklhtar. Rajasthan 1989-1990

352.4.6 Summarized by Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh10, 2007, 154-158


       5.General

352.5.1 K.B.Pathak, "Santaraksita's reference to Kumarila's attacks on Samantabhadra and Akalankadeva", ABORI 11.2, 1929, 155-164

352.5.2 K.B.Pathak, "On the date of Samantabhadra", ABORI 11, 1929, 149-154

352.5.3 Jagalkishor Mukhtar, "Samantabhadra's date and Dr. Pathak", ABORI 15, 1933-34, 67-88

352.5.4 D.G.Mahajan, "Acharya Samantabhadra and Pataliputra", JainA 14, 1948, 36-43

352.5.5 Daya Krishna, "Advaita before Samkara: a discussion by Samantabhadra", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 144-146

352.5.6 Fujinage Sin, "Determining which Jaina philosopher was the object of Dharmakirti's criticisms", PEW 50, 2000, 378-384


353.Jayarasi (650)

       1.Tattvopaplavasimha (Carvaka) (NCat VIII, 83)

See a47.16.165; 494.2.7. a655.1.14

353.1.1 Edited by Sukhlal Sanghvi and R.C. Parikh. GOS 87, 1940. Reprinted Varanasi 1987. Introduction reprinted CL 492-504

353.1.2 Janakivallabha Bhattacharya, "Jayarasi's refutation of some indirect proofs of the soul as offered by the different systems of Indian philosophy", CR 120, 1951, 155-175

353.1.3 R.C.Parikh, "A neglected work of philosophy in Sanskrit", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 376-378

353.1.4 Partly translated by S.N.Shastri and S.K.Saksena and revised by Satischandra Chatterjee in Source Book 236-246

353.1.5 Walter Ruben, "Über den Tattvopaplavasimha des Jayarasi Bhatta, eine agnostizistische Erkenntniskritik", WZKSOA 2, 1958, 140-153

353.1.6 K.K.Dixit, "The ideological affiliation of Jayarasi, the author of the Tattvopaplavasimha", ISPP 4.1, 1962, 98-104. Reprinted CL 520-530

353.1.7 Walter Ruben, "On the Tattvopaplavasimha of Jayarasi Bhatta", ISPP 7, 1965, 53-64. Reprinted CL 505-519

353.1.8 Pradeep P. Gokhale, "The philosophical position of Jayarasibhatta", IndPQ 5, 1977-78, 489-498

353.1.9 Eli Franco, "Studies in the Tattvopaplavasimha", JIP 11, 1983, 147-166; 12, 1984, 105-137

353.1.10 First section translated in Eli Franco, Perception, Knowledge and Disbelief: a Study of Jayarasi's Skepticism. Stuttgart 1987 Second edition, with most of the remainder translated, Delhi 1994.

353.1.11 Dilip Mohanta, "A note on Jayarasibhatta's philosophical method", VJP 23.1, 1986, 133-138

353.1.11.1 J. M. Shukla, "Jayarasi's criticism of verbal testimony", AspJ 2, 57-69

353.1.12 Dilipkumara Mohanta, "Is Jayarasi a materialist?", IndPQ, Student's Supplement 16.3, 1989, 1-4

353.1.13 D. K. Mohanta, "A critique of Jayarasi's critique of perception", IndPQ 17, 1990, 285-312

353.1.18 See DKM 53-88

353.1.22 Dilipkumar Mohanta, "Reflections of Jayarasi Bhatta's philosophical positions", JIAP 41, 2002, 18-48

353.1.25 Dilip Kumar Mohanta (tr.), Jayarasi's Critique of Knowing from Words. Tattvopaplavasimha" Sabdapramanyasya nirasah. Kolkata 2009

353.1.27 Edited and translated by Esther Solomn, with Suchita Mehta. Delhi 2010

 
 

353A.Campantar (650?)

          1.Tirujnanasambandhar

353A.1.0 P. Soundra, A Study of St. Ignatius Campentar. Ph. D. Thesis, Annamalai University 1980

353A.1.1 V. K. S.N.Raghavan, "The Tiruvelukurrirukkai. A comparative study of the Tiruvelukarokkai of Tirumangai Alvar and the of Tirujnanasambandhar", IPQ 18, 1985-86, 265-298

353A.1.2 P. S. Somasundaran, Tirujnanasambandhar: Philosophy and Religion. Madras 1986


354.Avalokitavrata (650)

       1.Tika on Bhavaviveka's Prajnapradipa


355.(Hari)Vrsabhadeva (650)

See EIP 5, 179

       1.Paddhati on Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya

See e221.1:12,60.1,67, 345

355.1.1 Selections translated in HTR 237-238


357.Author Unknown (650)

       1.Aksayamatipariprcchasutra (T.310(45))

357.1.1 Translated in Treasury 415-424


359.Author Unknown (650)

       1.Gangottarapariprcchasutra (T.310(31); Toh. 75)

359.1.1 Translated Treasury 37-40


361.Author Unknown (650)

       1.Vairocanabhisambodhisutra

361.1.1 Alex Wayman, The Enlightenment of Vairocana. Book One. Delhi 1992

361.1.3 Translated by Rolf W. Giebel. Berkeley Calif. 2005


362.Brahmadatta (660)

       1.General

362.1.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Brahmadatta: an old Vedantin", JOR 2, 1928, 1-9. Also PAIOC 4, 1926, 787-798. Reprinted IPS 2, 17-25

362.1.2 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Two old Vedantins", IPS 2, 101-111


363.Kumarila (660)

       1.Slokavarttika on Sabara's Mimamsasutrabhasya

See a342.1.3. e22.1:6,15,37,54,81.1; 174.6.11; 344.9.47.3; e198.1.18. t22.1:16,25

363.1.0 Edited by Rama Sastri Tailanga (Manavalli). Chowkhamba. Varanasi 1891.

363.1.1 N. Aiyasvami (Sastri), "The mangalasloka of the Slokavarttika", IHQ 1, 1925, 759-760

363.1.2 Edited from akrti section to the end, with Bhattaputra Jayamisra's Sarkarika, by C.Kunhan Raja. MUSS 17, 1946

363.1.3 Shoren Ihara, "Brahmasiddhi and Slokavarttika", JIBSt 22, 1963, 829-833

363.1.4 Tsugihiko Yamasaki, "The conception of svatah-pramanya in the Mimamsaslokavarttika", JIBSt 11.1, 1963, 32-37

363.1.5 Franis Xavier D'Sa, Kumarila's Theorie der Worterkenntnis Sabdapramanyam. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Vienna, 1973

363.1.6 Francis X. D'Sa, "Offenbarung ohne eine Gott, Kumarila's Theorie der Worterkenntnis", Offenbarung 93-106

363.1.7 Vijaya Rani, "Nature of cognition according to the Buddhist, with special reference to Mimamsa-Slokavarttika", KUJ 9, 1975, 230-233

363.1.8 Selections translated in HTR 89-94

363.1.9 Tomoyasu Takenaka, "Samanya, sarupya and sadrsya. Kumarila's criticism of the similarity theory (Slokavarttika Akrtivada, kk. 65 cd. ff)", JIBSt 26.1, 1977, 7-12

363.1.10 Edited, with Parthasarathi Misra's Nyayaratnakara, by Dvarikadasa Sastri. PBS 10, 1978

363.1.11 Selections edited, with selections from Tantravarttika, in Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, Anthology of Kumarila Bhatta's Works. Delhi 1980

363.1.12 Vijaya Rani, The Buddhist Philosophy as presented in Mimamsa-Sloka-Varttika. Delhi 1982

363.1.13 K.K.Dixit, Slokavarttika. A Study. LDS 92, 1983

363.1.14 Govardhan P. Bhatt, The Basic Ways of Knowing: An In-Depth Study of Kumarila's Contribution to Indian Epistemology. Delhi 1989

363.1.14.1 Citrarekha V.Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Kumarila in the Slokavarttika", BPBS 357-454

363.1.15 Michiya Kawajiri, "Slokavarttika-Sphotavada vv. 5-9 and Sphotasiddhi v. 3", JIBSt 42.2, 1994, 14-16

363.1.16 John A. Taber, "Kumarila's refutation of the dreaming argument in the niralambanavada-adhikarana", StudinM 27-52

363.1.16.5 Lars Gohler, Wort und Text bei Kumarila Bhatta: Studie zur mittelalterlichen indischen Sprachphilosophie und Hermeneutik. Frankfurt-am-Main 1995

363.1.17 Amita Chatterjee, "Kumarila's refutation of the argument from illusion", EssInP 279-296

363.1.18 Ujjwala Panse Jha, "Kumarila Bhatta on 'yogic perception'", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 69-78

363.1.20 Edited b Syamasundara Sarma and Vijaya Sarma. Varanasi 2002

363.1.22 Chapter on pratyaksa edited and translated by John Taber, A Hindu Critique of Buddhist Epistemology. Kumarila on Perception. London 2005

363.1.25 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Reconsidering the fragment of the Brhattika on inseparable connection (avinabhava)", Pramanakirti 1079-1103

363.1.30 Larry McCrea, "'Just like us, just like now': the tactical implicatinos of the Mimamsa rejectio of yogic perception", YPMASC 55-70

363.1.35 Kei Kataoka, Kumarila on Truth, Omniscience, and Killing. Edition and translations of the Codanasutra section. OAWV (Wien) 2011. (also on line)


      2.Tantravarttika on Sabara's Mimamsasutrabhasya I.2 through III

          (NCat VIII, 93-94)

See e22.1:6,8,41,48,74,87,89.1. e363.1.11. t22.1.20

363.2.1 A.C.Burnell, "An interesting passage in Kumarila Bhatta's Tantravarttika", IA 1, 1872, 309-311

363.2.2 P.V.Kane, "The Tantravarttika and the Dharmasastra literature", JASBo n.s. 1, 1925, 95-102

363.2.3 Edited with Somesvara's Nyasudha and Mahaprabhulal Gosvami's Bhavaprakasika. Varanasi 1984

363.2.4 Kausalya Valli, APeep into the Tantravarttika and our Cultural Heritage. New Delhi 1998

363.2.5 Chapter Five translated by Kunio Harikai. SACS 1, 2006, 21-46

363.2.6 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "The theorem of the singleness of a goblet (graha-ekatva-nyaya)-a Mimamsa analysis of meaning and context", Acta Asiatica 90, 2006, 15-38

363.2.8 Harikai Kunio, Sanskrit Text of the Tantravarttika Adhyaya 1, Pada 1 (Chapters of Arthavada and Mantra); Collated in Four Manuscripts. Habeshima 2007


       3.Tuptika on Sabara's Mimamsasutrabhasya IV-XII (NCat VIII, 2)

See e22.1:21,41,44,74


       4.Brhattika on Sabara's Mimamsasastrabhasya

363.4.1 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri and K.A.Sankaran, "Kumarila and the Brhattika", PAIOC 3, 1924, 523-530

363.4.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Kumarila's Brhattika", WZKSOA 6, 1962, 78-98

363.4.3 John A. Taber, "Further observations on Kumarila's Brhattika", JOR 41-42, 1986-92, 179-189

363.4.5 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Reconsidering the fragment of the Brhattika on restriction”, RLBPA 507-521


    5.General

See a221.1:5,167.2; 268.10.1; 344.9.21, 57.5, 60, 110, 196; 294.10.216352.5.1; H3633

363.5.1 K.B.Pathak, "The position of Kumarila in Digambara Jaina literature", CIDO 9.1, 1893, 186-214

363.5.2 P.T.Srinivas Iyengar, "Kumarila's acquaintance with Tamil", IA 42, 1913, 200-201

363.5.3 Emil Abegg, "Die Lehre der Ewigkeit des Wortes bei Kumarila", Festschrift Wackneragel (1923), 255-264

363.5.5 A.Chinnasvami Sastri, "Kumarila and Prabhakara", PAIOC 4.1, Summaries 1926, 64-65

363.5.6 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "Forgotten karikas of Kumarila", JOR 1, 1927, 101-144.   Summarized in PAIOC 4.1, 1926, 81-84

363.5.7 A.Chinnasvami Sastri, "Kumarila and Prabhakara Misra", JOR 1, 1927, 203-210

363.5.8 K.B.Pathak, "Kumarila's verses attacking the Jain (and?) Buddhist notions of an omniscient being", ABORI 12, 1930, 123-131

363.5.9 Ganganatha Jha, "Kumarila and Vedanta", JASBo n.s. 6, 1930, 228-230

363.5.10 J.Samkhyatirtha, "Kumarila's conception of soul", PQ 6, 1930, 30-56

363.5.11 K.B.Pathak, "Milestones of Indian chronology: 2.Bhavabhuti and Kumarila", COJ 1, 1933-34, 327-343

363.5.12 S.K.Saksena, "Svapramanatva and svaprakasatva: an inconsistency in Kumarila's philosophy", RPR 9.11, 1940, 27-32. Also PQ 16, 1940-41, 192-198. Reprinted in SSEIP 77-81

363.5.13 G.P.Bhatt, "Kumarila's theory of intrinsic validity (a justification)", PB 62, 1957, 388-392

363.5.15 Rajagopala Sastri, "Kumarila Bhatta", VK 49, 1962-63, 65-69

363.5.16 Fritz Zangenberg, "Once more--Prabhakara and Kumarilah", CIDO 26, 1969, 504-508

363.5.17 K.V.Subbaratnam, "Where did Kumarila and Samkara meet?", Srngeri Souvenir 1970, 61-63

363.5.18 C.D.Bijelwan, "Critique of Kumarila's theory of srutarthapatti", JGJRI 29, 1973, 159-172

363.5.18.0 John Taber, "The significance of Kumarila's philosophy", BOr 373-394. Reprinted IPR 5, 113-134

363.5.18.1 Shiv Kumar, "Kumarilabhatta's critique of the Samkhya-concept of the test of the validity of knowledge", CASSt 4, 1978, 103-107

363.5.19 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Kumarilabhatta on the Dravidian language", AOR 28, 1978. Reprinted in Rajasudha 209-218

363.5.20 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "Kumarila Bhatta", VRPRL 79-83

363.5.21 Vachaspati Upadhyaya, "Kumarila Bhatta--his date, place and works", CIS 177-184

363.5.22 Wilhelm Rau, Anthology of Kumarila Bhatta's Works. Delhi 1980

363.5.23 Wilhelm Halbfass, Studies in Kumarila and Samkara. Studien zur Indologie und Iranistik, Monographie 9, Reinbek 1983

363.5.24 Masaaki Hattori, "Kumarila's theory on the meaning of the sentence (vakyartha): preliminary notes (in Japanese with English summary). TK 67.8, 1984, 200-206

363.5.25 K.L.Sharma, "Kumarila and Prabhakara's understanding of actions", IPQ 11, 1984-85, 119-130

363.5.26 Vachaspati Upadhyaya, "Kumarila's critique of the theory of apoha", SIRVJ 231-234

363.5.27 Roque Mesquita, "Der idee der erlösung bei Kumarilabhatta", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 451-484

363.5.28 R. Thiagarajan, "Samkara and Kumarila", TL 17.1, 1994, 32-35

363.5.29 P. Sri Rachandrudu, "Kumarila Bhatta on the prayojana of vyakarana", StudInM 243-256

363.5.30 Lars Gøhler, "The concept of truth in Kumarila Bhatta and K.R.Popper: a comparison", StudinM 79-86

363.5.31 Peri Sarveswar Sharma, "Kumarila Bhatta's denial of creation and dissolution of the world", StudinM 57-78

363.5.32 John Taber, "What did Kumarila Bhatta mean by svatah pramanya?", JAOS 112, 1992, 204-221

363.5.32.0 Biswanarayan Shastri, Mimamsa Theory and Kumarila Bhatta. New Delhi 1995

363.5.32.1 S.N.Roy, "Historical analysis of purana passages quoted by Kumarila and Samkara", JGJRI 52-53, 1996-97, 17-20

363.5.32.3 Lars Godler, "Vedische Weisung: Was Verstand Kumaila Bhatta unter einer Vedisches Weisung (codana)", IndBeyond 162-169

363.5.32.5 Kunio Harikai, "Kumarila's acceptance and modification of categories of the Vaisesika school", BOr 395-416

363.5.32.7 John Taber, "The significance of Kumarila's philosophy", BOr 373-394

363.5.33 Tomoyuki Uno, "The soul (atman) and agency (kartrtva) according to Kumarila Bhatta and his followers", JIBSt 46.1, 1997, 8-12

363.5.35 Tomoyuki Uno, "Ontological affinity between the Jainas and the Mimamsakas by Buddhist Logicians", DTI 419-431

363.5.38 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Mimamsa versus Vaisesika: Parthasarathi and Kumarila on the creation and dissolution of the world", LPEIM 171-182

363.5.40 Kei Kataoka, "Scripture, man and heaven: causal structure in Kumarila's action theory of bhavana", JIBSt 49.2 2001, 10-13

363.5.42 Mohini Mullick, "Kumarila against relativism", JICPR 18.2, 2001, 206-210

363.5.45 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Notes on Kumarila's approach to the ritual scripture", TMSR 735-751

363.5.50 Parimal G. Patil, "Consuming scripture: philosophical hermeneutics in classical India", CTCIP 47-60

363.5.52 A. Ramulu, "Kumarila and his concept of mukti", JGJRI 62, 2006, 267-270

363.5.55 John Taber, "Kumarila the Vedantin?", MVIC 159-184

363.5.60 Kiyaoka Yoshimizu, "Kumarila's reevaluation of the sacrifice and the Veda from the Vedanta perspective", MVIC 201-254

363.5.61 Sugura Ishimura, "Kumarila's theory of the intrinsic validity of knowledge (svatah-parinama), JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 136-187

363.5.62 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Kumarila's propositional derivation (arthapatti) without pervasion (vyapti)", EMH 315-336

363.5.63 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Verbal denotation and context of the Vedic prohibition of untruth", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 237-238

363.5.65 Elisa Freschi, "Abhavapramana and error in Kumarila's commentators", Sambhasa 27, 2008, 1-30

363.5.67 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "The intention of expression (vivaksa), the expoundiong (vyakhya) of a text, and the authorlessness of the Veda", ZDMG 58.1, 2008, 57-72

363.5.68 Vachaspati Upadhyaya, "Kumarila Bhatta–his date, place and works", ESLJ 289-296

363.5.70 John Taber, "Kumarila's Buddhist", JIP 38, 2010, 279-285

363.5.75 Kiyotaka Yoshmizu, "Traditionand reflectionin Kumariila’s last stand against theGrammarians”, SHANA 552-586

363.5. Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Kumarila and Medhatirtha on the authorityof codified sources of dharma”, JSFV 643-681


364.Prthvibandhu (670) (NCat XII, 193)

       1.Bhasya on Vasubandhu's Pancaskandha (Cordier III, 388)


       2.Commentary on the Saddharmapundarikasutra (Cordier III, 372)


365.Devendrabuddhi (670)

       1.Panjika on Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika (NCat IX, 159)

365.1.1 Erich Frauwallner, "Devendrabuddhi", WZKSOA 4, 1960, 119-123


366.Author Unknown (675)

       1.Yuktidipika on Isvarakrsna's Samkhyakarikas

See a175.1.81; 235.1.28. e163.1:46.1, 67, 77. t163.1.99

366.1.2 F.M.Nowotny-Pedain, Die Samkhya-Philosophie auf Grund der Yuktidipika und der Fragmente der Werke alter Samkhya-Lehrer. Dissertation, Wien 1941

366.1.3 V. Raghavan, "The Yuktidipika on Samkhyakarika: Corrections and emendations in the text", AOR 12, 1954-55 - 15. II, 1958-59

366.1.4 Gerhard Oberhammer, "On the sastra quotations of the Yuktidipika", JIBSt 26, 1955, 51-57

366.1.5 George Chemparathy, "The testimony of the Yuktidipika concerning the Isvara doctrine of the Pasupatas and Vaisesikas", WZKSOA 9, 1965, 119-146

366.1.5.5 Raj Chandra Pandeya, Yuktidipika: an Ancient Commentary on the Samkhya-karika. Delhi 1967

366.1.6 Naomichi Nakada, "Word and inference in the Yuktidipika", JIBSt 36, 1970 - 21.1, 1972. Also ZDMG Supplement 9, 1992, 485-486

366.1.7 A. Wezler, "Some observations on the Yuktidipika", ZDMG Supplement 18, 1974, 434-455

366.1.7.5 Johannes Bronkhorst, "A possible quotation fromo the Niruktavarttika known to Durga in the Yuktidipika", Procrddings of the World Sanskrit Conference 1981, 90-100

366.1.8 English summary of translation into Japanese by Shinkan Murakami, TDBKH 33, 1984, 37-69

366.1.9 Gerald James Larson, "The pratyaya-sarga or intellectual creation in classical Samkhya as interpreted by Yuktidipika", RSAI 60-71

366.1.9.1 Edeltraud Harzer, Samkhya Epistemology according to the Yuktidipika. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Washington 1986

366.1.10 Summarized by Raghunatha Sharma, Dayanand Bhargava and Shiv Kumar Sharma. Samkhya 227-270

366.1.11 Edited by Shiv Kumar and D.N.Bhargava. Two volumes. Delhi 1990, 1991

366.1.11.5 Albrecht Wezler, "Two medical verses in the Yuktidipika", JEAS 1, 1990, 127-148

366.1.12 Eli Franco, "Whatever happened to the Yuktidipika", WZKSOA 25, 1991, 123-138

366.1.12.1 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented in the Yuktidipika", BJBS 543-556

366.1.12.5 Albrecht Wezler, "On a prose passage in the Yuktidipikof some significance for the history of Indian medicine", JEAS 3, 1993, 282-304

366.1.13.Shujun Motegi, "Some Vaisesika thoughts referred to in the Yuktidipika", AS 48, 1994, 807-818

366.1.14 Balraj Kumar Joshi, "L'isolement libérateur (kaivalya) selon le Samkhya et le lumiére de la Yuktidipika", L'Herme 131-137

366.1.15 Edited by Kedaranatha Tripati. Varanasi 1996

366.1.16 Mitali Chatterjee, "On the title of Yuktidipika", JASBe 39, 1997, 53-70

366.1.16.5 Ashok Aklujkar, "Vacaspati Misra's Tattvasamiksa and the last two verses in Yuktidipika manuscripts", ALB 62, 1998, 125-166

366.1.17 Albrecht Wezler and Shujan Motagi (eds.), Yuktidipika: The Most Significant Commentary on the Samkhyakarikas. Volume One. Alt- und Neu-Indische Studien (Hamburg) 44. Stuttgart 1998

366.1.18 Marek Mejor, "Some observations on the date of the Yuktidipika (a propos of a new edition)", StudiaInd 7, 2000, 255-290. Also EIPRL 399-434

366.1.19 Edeltraud Harzer, The Yuktidipika: a Reconstruction of Samkhya Methods of Knowing. Indologica Halensis 8. Aachen 2006

366.1.20 Shujun Motagi, "Sabda in the Yuktidipika", Acta Asiatica 90-, 2006, 39-54

366.1.22 Thomas Oberlies, "Von 'stuff' der Koper der Gotter", WZKSOA 50, 2006, 177-198


368.Santideva (690)

       1.Bodhi(sattva)caryavatara (Madhyamika)

See e174.6.11; tEFNW2. d21.1.63

368.1.1 Edited by I. Minayeff in Sap 4, 1890, 153-228

368.1.2 Chapters 1-4 and 10 translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. LM 11, 1892, 87-115

368.1.3 Edited by Haraprasad Sastri. JBTSI 2.1, 1894, 1-16; 2.2, 1894, 17-32

368.1.4 Chapter 5 translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. LM 11, 1896, 207 ff.

368.1.5 Edited, with Prajnakaragupta's Panjika, by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. BI 150, 1901, 1914

368.1.6 Translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. Revue d'histoire et de literature de religion 11, 1907, 430-458; 12, 1907: 59, 97, 389. Reprinted Ann arbor 1986; Paris 1993

368.1.7 Partially translated by L.D.Barnett as The Path of Light. London 1909

368.1.8 Chapter 9 edited, with Prajnakaragupta's Panjika, by Louis de la Vallee Poussin, in BEM

368.1.9 Translated into French by Louis Finot as La Marche à la Lumière. Paris 1920

368.1.10 Translated into German by R. Schmidt as Der Eintritt in der Wandel in Erleuchtung. Paderborn 1923

368.1.11 Translated into Italian by Giuseppe Tucci as In commino verso la luce. Torino 1925

368.1.12 Edited by Hariharananda. Calcutta 1927

368.1.12.1 Edited in Mongolian by Boris Akovlevich Vladimitsov. Leningrad 1929; Osnabruck 1970; Taipei 1984; Delhi 1992

368.1.13 F. Weller, Index zum Bodhicaryavatara. Two volumes. Berlin 1952, 1955

368.1.14 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Epitome of the Bodhicaryavatara with its Panjika", ALB 17, 1953, 36-44

368.1.15 Nicholas Poppe, "A fragment of the Bodhicaryavatara from Olon Sume", HJAS 17, 1954, 411-418

368.1.16 Edited by Santibhiksu Sastri. Lucknow 1955

368.1.16.1 Friedrich Weller, Zum Blockdruckfragmente des mongolischen Bodhicaryavatara der Berlin Turefnsammlung. Berlin 1955

368.1.17 K. Oedingen, "La conception de la realité dans L'Entrèe dans la voie de l'illumination de Santideva", translated from German into French by J. Carrere. Revue de l'histoire de philosophies et religion 38, 1958, 360-369

368.1.18 Edited, with Prajnakaragupta's Panjika, by P.L.Vaidya. Darbhanga 1960

368.1.19 Marion L. Matics, Bodhicitta and Bodhisattva. A Study of the Bodhicaryavatara of Santideva. Ph.D.Thesis, Columbia University 1960

368.1.20 Edited in Tibetan and Sanskrit by Vidhusekha Bhattacharya. BI 280, 1960

368.1.21 Ajitkumar Mukhopadhyaya, "An appendix to the new edition of the Bodhicaryavatara", IHQ 37, 1961, 287-292

368.1.22 Shuyu Kanaoka, "Regional characteristics of Mongolian Buddhism--a study on the basis of the Bodhicaryavatara", Bukkyo Shigaku 10.4, 1963, 15-24

368.1.23 Shuyu Kanaoka, "On the duplicated chapter of Mongolian Bodhicaryavatara", JIBSt 28, 1966, 825-833

368.1.24 Amalia Pezzali, "Santideva's statement about confession", IAHRC 1968, II 134-135

368.1.25 Translated by Marion L. Matics as Entering the Path of Enlightenment.  New York 1970

368.1.26 Amarasiri Weeratne, "Bodhicaryavatara", MB 79, 1971, 406-409

368.1.27 D.J.Kalupahana, "Bodhicaryavatara", EnBud 3.2, 1972, 181-183

368.1.28 Luis O. Gomez, "Emptiness and moral perfection", PEW 23, 1973, 361-374

368.1.29 Edited in Mongolian with Tibetan commentary by Lokesh Chandra. New Delhi 1976

368.1.29.0 Chapter Ten edited in Mongolian by A. Luvsanbalden Luvsandendeva. Ulan Bator 1976

368.1.29.1 Michael Jay Sweet, Santideva and the Madhyamika: The Prajnaparamita-pariccheda of the Bodhicaryavatara. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin 1977

368.1.29.2 Sangharakshita, The Endless Fascinating Cry: An Exploration of the Bodhicaryavatara. Berkeley, Cal. 1977, 1978

368.1.30 Michael Sweet, "Bodhicaryavatara 9.2 as a focus for Tibetan interpretation of the two truths in the Prasangika Madhyamika", JIABS 2.2, 1979, 79-92

368.1.31 Translated by Steven Batchelor as The Guide to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life.   Dharamsala 1979, 1987, 1992

368.1.32 Geshe Kelsan Gyatso, Meaningful to Behold View, Meditation and Action in Mahayana Buddhism. An Oral Commentary on Shantideva's A Guide to the Bodhisattva Way of Life (Bodhisattvacaryavatara). Translated by Tenzin Norbu. Cumbia, England 1980. Edited by Jonathan Landau with Jon Marshall, London 1986

368.1.33 Translated into German by Ernst Steinkellner as Eintritt in das Leben zur Erlauchtung. Dusseldorf 1981

368.1.34 Helmut Eimer, "Suvarnadipa's 'commentaries' on the Bodhicaryavatara", SzumJB 73-78

368.1.35 Heramba Chatterjee (Sastri), "A note on Mahayana Buddhism and the Bodhicaryavatara", JDPUYC 1, 1982-83, 112-118

368.1.36 Translated into Italian by Amalia Pezzali as Santideva e il bodhicaryavatara. Bologna 1982. Contains translation of the karikas of the Siksasamuccaya.

368.1.37 Translated into Italian by Raniero Gnoli in TBIS 427-526

368.1.37.1 Edited, with Prajnakaramati's Panjika, by Divyaraja Vajracarya. Lalitapur, Nepal 1986

368.1.38 Chiko Ishida, "Some new remarks on the Bodhicaryavatara", JIBSt 37.1, 1988, 34-37

368.1.39 Chapter 9 translated as Transcendent Wisdom by H.H. the Dalai Lama Tensin Gyatso. Edited by B. Alan Wallace. Ithaca 1988

368.1.40 Edited, with Prajnakaramati's Panjika, by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1988, 2001

368.1.40.1 Edited by Ram Shankar Tripathi. Leh 1989

368.1.41 Edited and translated by Parmananda Sharma. Two volumes. New Delhi 1990

368.1.42 T.R.Sharma, "Santideva's criticism of Vijnanavada and bodhicitta", Glory of Knowledge 202-206

368.1.43 Mieko Kajihara, "On the parinamana chapter of the Bodhicaryavatara", JIBSt 40.2, 1991, 25-28

368.1.43.1 H. S. Prasad, "Santideva on roots and resolutions of violence", PGI 233-240

368.1.44 Paul Williams, "On prakrtinirvana and prakrtinirvrta in the Bodhicaryavatara: a study in the Indo-Tibetan commentarial tradition", AS 46.1, 1992, 516-550

368.1.44.1 Wisdom: Two Buddhist Commentaries on the Ninth Chapter of Shantideva's Bodhicaryavatara. Peyzac-de-Moustier, France 1992, 1993

368.1.44.3 Translated into French by Georges Driessens, Vivre en héros pour l'éveil: Bodhisattvacaryavatara. Paris 1993

368.1.44.5 Edited by Paramanand Singh. Varanasi 1993

368.1.44.7 Lobzang Teng'ye Geshe, Sur l'ocean du mahayana: commentaire du Bodhisattvacharyavatara de Shantideva. Marzens 1993

368.1.45 Paul Williams, "On altruism and rebirth: philosophical comments on Bodhicaryavatara 8:97-8", BF 3, 1994, 307-332

368.1.45.5 Bstan-dzin-rgya-mtsho (Dalai Lama XIV), A Flash of Lightnin in the Dark of Night: A Guide to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life. Boston 1994

368.1.46 Akira Saito, "On the textual problem of Santideva's Bodhi(sattva)caryavatara: with special reference to Chapter 9 entitled "Reflection of Wisdom (Prajnaparamita)" (summary). ToG 87, 1994, 11-12

368.1.47 Translated by Kate Crosby and Andrew Skilton. Oxford 1995, 1996, 1998

368.1.47.0 Selections from the first four chapters translated by Luis O. Gomez as "A Mahayana liturgy", BudinP 183-196

368.1.47.1 Paul Williams, "Identifying the object of negation: on Bodhicaryavatara 9:140 (Tib. 139)", AS 49, 1995, 969-985

368.1.48 Chiko Isida, "Action and its result in the Bodhicaryavacara", JIBSt 44.2, 1996, 23-28

368.1.48.5 Translated into French in Bstan-dzin-rgyu-mtsho (Dalai Lama XIV), Tant que durera l/espace. Paris 1996

368.1.49 Igor de Rachewiltz (ed.), The Mongolian Tanjur Version of the Bodhicaryavatara. Wiesbaden 1996

368.1.49.5 John Pettit, "A guide to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life: Bodhicaryavatara", Tricycle 6, 1997, 94-99

368.1.50 Vesna A. and B. Alan Wallace, A Guide to the Bodhisattva Way of Life. Ithaca, N.Y. 1997

368.1.50.3 Bstan-dzin-rgya-mtsho, Healing Anger: The Power of Patience from a Buddhist Perspective. Ithaca, N.Y. 1997

368.1.50.5 Edited by R.S.Tripathi. Avalokitesvara Series 6, 1998

368.1.51 Paul Williams, Altruism and Reality: Studies in the Philosophy of the Bodhicaryavatara. Richmond, Surrey 1998

368.1.51.3 P. Williams, "The selfless removal of pain--a critical glance at Santideva's argument in Bodhicaryavatara 8:101-103", ITaur 23-24, 1998-99, 321-350

368.1.51.4 Kate Crosby, "Blasphemie und Sakrileg in Buddhismus in Geschichte und Gegenwart mis besdonerer Berucksichtigung des Verses Bodhicaryavatara 6.64", BGG 207-221

368.1.51.5 Siglinde Dietz, "Santideva's Bodhicaryavatara--das Werter wirken des Werkes dargestellt an hand der Uberlieferungsgeschichte des Textes und seiner Kommentare", BGG 25-42

368.1.51.6 Tudolf Kaschewsky, "Die 'Vollkommenheiten' im BCA und seinem tibetichen Kommentariem", BGG 43-60

368.1.51.6.5 Anne MacDonald, "Zum Konzept dr Leeheit in BCa", bgg 61-80

368.1.51.7 Oliver Peterson (Gelan Dschampa Tardsin), "Das 7. Kapitel uber das Tatkraft in Santideva's Bodhicaryavatara", BGG 145-170

368.1.51.8 David Seyfort Ruegg, "Bodhi(sattva)caryavatara als Lehrschrift und Vorhaben. Zum Theme Ritual, Religion, Philosophie und Mystik im Buddhismus", BGG 111-128

368.1.51.9 Lambert Schmithausen, "Nichtsiebst, Leerheis und altruistische Ethik im Bodhicaryavatara", BGG 129-144

368.1.51.9.1 Jan-Ulrich Sotisch, "Das ritual der Entschlussfassung im Bodhicaryavatara (Kap. II und III)", BGG 11-24

368.1.52 Francis Brassard, The Concept of Altruism in Santideva's Bodhicaryavatara . Albany, N.Y. 2000. Reviewed and discussed by Ludovic Viévard in Studia Asiatica III, 1-2, Bucarest, 2002

368.1.52.3 Narain Chad Parasher, A Critical Study of Arya Santideva's Bodhicaryavatara. 2000. Summarized in RBS 201.

368.1.52.5 Akira Saito, A Study of the Dun-huan Recension of the Bodhisattvacaryavatara. Mio University 2000

368.1.53 Mark Siderits, "The reality of altruism: reconstruction of Santideva. A review of Altruism and Reality: Studies in the Philosophy of the Bodhicaryayavatara by Paul Williams, with discussion", PEW 50, 2000, 412-459

368.1.55 Akira Saito, "Remarks on the Tabo manuscript of the Bodhisattvacaryavatara", Tabo2 175-190

368.1.58 Paul Williams, "Bodhicaryavatara", EnB 1, 2001, 53-54

368.1.59 Translated by Neil Elliott under the guidance of Gesha Kelson Gyatso in Guide to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life: How to Enjoy a Life of Great Meaning and Altruism. Ulverston, England; Glen Spay, N.Y, 2002

368.1.59.5 Translated into French by Stéphane Arguillére, L'opalescent joyau:=Nor-bu Ke-ta-ka: commentaire du neuvieme chapitre du Bodhicaryavatara du Santideva. Paris 2004

368.1.60 Chiko Ishida, "On philosophical views of the Bodhisattvacaryavatara", JIBSt 52.2, 2004, 32-37

368.1.61 Karl Brunnhölzl, The Center of the Sunlit Sky: Madhyamaka in the Kagyu tradition including a translation of Pawa Rinpoche's commentary on the knowledge section of Santideva's The Entrance to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life (Bodhicaryavatara). Ithaca, N.Y. 2004

368.1.62 Akira Saito, "Notes on the interpretation of Bodhi(sattva)caryavatara V. 104-106", GJWDJ 135-148

368.1.62.5 Translated into Berman by Diego Hangartner, Anweitungen auf dem Weg zur Gluckseligkei: Bodhicaryavatara. Frankfurt am Main 2005

368.1.63 Paul Willliams, "Santideva", EnB 2, 2004, 749

368.1.65 Geshe Yeshe Tobden, The Way of Awakening: a commentary on Santideva's Bodhicaryavatara. Boston 2005

368.1.68 M. G. Chitkar, A World Faith: Bodhicaryavatara: Governing the Bodhisattva's Way of Life. Encyclopedia of Buddhism Vol. 18, 2007

368.1.69 Lambert Schmithausen, "Nichtselbst, Leerheit und altruistische Ethik im Bodhicaryavatara", EMV 551-570

368.1.70 Geri Larkin, Plant Seed, Pull Weed: Nurturing the Garden of Your Life. San Francisco 2008

368.1.75 Kaoru Onishi, "The Bodhicaryavatara and its monistic aspects: on the problem of representation", LBIP 615-642

368.1.80 Jay L.Garfield, "What is it like to be a bodhisattva? Moral phenomenology oin Santideva's Bodhicaryavatara", JIABS 33.1-2, 2010 (2011), 333-358

368.1.85 Pabita Kumatr Ray, Mapping the Boodhicaryavatara. Eassays in Mahayana Ethics. Shimla 2011


       2.Saptamaithunasamyuktasutra

368.2.1 Michael Hahn, "Das Saptamaithunasamyuktasutra: ein Sutra des Ekottarikagama", BIEW 205-244


       3.Sutrasamuccaya (Madhyamika)

368.3.1 Moriz Winternitz, "Beitrag zur Buddhistischen Sanskrit-literatur: Ist Santideva der Verfasser eines Sutrasamuccaya?", WZKM 26, 1912, 246-248

368.3.2 Anukula Chandra Banerjee, "The Sutrasamuccaya", IHQ 17, 1941, 121-126

368.3.2.5 Jean Filliozat, "Siksasamuccaya et Sutrasamuccaya", JA 252, 1964, 473-478

368.3.3 Shoshin Ichishima, "The rareness of great compassion in the Sutrasamuccaya", JIBSt 48.2, 1997, 19-23

368.3.4 Bhkkhu Pasadika, "Tib J 380, a Dunhuang manuscript fragment of the Sutrasamuccaya", BVSK 483-494


       4.Bhasya on Vasubandhu's Trimsika

368.4.1 Shuyu Kanaoka, "Santideva's attitude toward vijnana theory", JIBSt 20, 1962, 345-350


    4A.Siksasamuccaya

See a47.10:2,8; 174.3.23; 368.1.36; 368.3.2.5

368.4A.0 U. Wogihara, "Contributions to the study of the Siksasamuccaya derived from Chinese sources", LM n.s. 5, 1904: 98-103, 309-215; 7, 1906, 255-261

368.4A.0.5 Karikas eidted and translateed by Lal Mani Joshi. Sarnath 1965

368.4A.1 Edited by Cecil Bendall. BBudh 1, 1890, 1899, 1902; Osnabruck 1970; Delhi 1971, 1992

368.4A.2 Translated by Cecil Bendall and William Henry Denham Rouse. London 1922; Delhi 1981

368.4A.2.5 Edited by P.L.Vaidya. Buddhis Sanskrt Texts 11 (Darbhanga 1961)

368.4A.2.8 Leigh Ann Bastien, The Bodhisattva and the Ideal of Moral Wisdom in Santideva's Siksasamuccaya. M.A.Thesis, McMaster University 1982

368.4A.3 Jurg Hedinger, Aspekte der Schulung in der Laufbahn eines Bodhisattva: dargestellt nach dem Siksasamuccaya des Santideva. Wiesbaden 1984

368.4A.4 Konrad Klaus, "Einige textkritische und exegetischeBemerkungen zu Santideva's Siksasamuccaya (Kapitel XII und XIII)", BVSK 397-406

368.4A.5 Sections translated by Cecil Bendall in TMW 50-54

368.4A.6 Suzanne Petra Mrozik, The Relationship between Morality and the Body in Monastic Training according to the Siksasamuccaya. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1998

368.4A.6.5 Barbra R. Clayton, Ethics in the Siksasamuccaya: a study in Mahayana morality. Ph.D.Thesis, Faculty of Religious Studies (London?), 2001

368.4A.7 Barbra Clayton, "Compassion as a matter of fact: the argument for no-self in Santideva's Siksasamuccaya", ContB 2, 2001, 83-98

368.4A.8 Richard Mahoney, Of the Progress of the Bodhisattva: the Bodhisattva image in the Siksasamuccaya. M.A.Thesis, U. of Canterbury, 2002

368.4A.9 Keikyo Nakanukudo, "Bharacaryavidhi in the Siksasamuccaya", JIBSt 53.1, 2004, 4-7

368.4A.10 Kazunri Sasaki, "A precursory phrase of Tantra: definition of bodhicitta in Santideva's Siksasamuccaya", JIBSt 53.2, 2005, 38-40

368.4A.12 Barbra R. Clayton, Moral Theory in Santideva's Siksasamuccaya: Cultivating the Fruits of Virtue. London 2006

368.4A.13 Paul Harrison, "The case of the vanishing poet. New light on Santideva and the Santideva and the Siksa-samuccaya", IETMH 215-248

368.4A.14 Kazunori Sasaki, "On the Sanskrit manuscript of the Siksasamuccaya: Vibhuticandra as the scribe and transporter", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 251


     5.General

See a309.2.1

368.5.1 Haraprasad Sastri, "Santideva", IA 42, 1913, 49-52

368.5.2 Amalia Pezzali, "Santideva, a mystic of Buddhism", Proceedings of the 9th International Congress for the History of Religions 1958 (published Tokyo 1960), 398-402

368.5.3 Amalia Pezzali, Santideva, Mystique Bouddhiste des VIIe et VIIIe Siècles. Firenze 1968

368.5.4 J.W.de Jong, "La legende de Santideva", IIJ 16, 1974, 161-183

368.5.5 Hammalava Saddhatissa, "Santideva and the Bodhisattva ideal", BudPhilCult 93-100

368.5.6 Angraj Chaudhury, "Acarya Santideva's humanism", EBPL 47-54

368.5.7 T.R.Sharma, "The philosophical basis of worship in the works of Santideva", AIBP 126-135

368.5.8 Akira Saito, "Santideva in the history of Madhyamika philosophy", BudIA 1996, 257-263

368.5.12 Richard P. Hayes, "Santideva", EBuddhsm 667-668

368.5.15 Tom J. F. Tiullemans, "Reason, ilrrationality, and akrasia (weakness of the will): Reflections on Santideva's arguments with himself", Argumentation 22, 2008, 149-163

368.5.18 S. A. Shapiro, "Why war? why not peace? Santideva's answer to Einstein's famous question to Freud", Studies in Gender and soexuality 10, 2009, 200-212

368.5.25 Kevin Vose, "Making and remaking the ultimate in early Tibetan readings of Santideva", JIABS 32.1-2, 2009 (2010), 285-318


369.Mandana Misra (690)

       1.Bhavanaviveka (Purvamimamsa)

369.1.1 Edited, with Umbeka's commentary, by Ganganatha Jha. Two parts. POWSBT 6, 1922-23

369.1.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Bhavana und vidhi bei Mandanamisra", WZKM 45, 1938, 212-232

369.1.3 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri and K.A.Subrahmanya Sastri, "Mandanamisra's Bhavanaviveka--a study", PVKF 408-410

369.1.4 Edited, with Narayana Bhatta's Visamagranthibhedika, by V.A.Ramaswami Sastri and K.A.Subrahmania Sastri. AnUSS 16, 1952

369.1.5 Edited and translated by V.P.Bhatta, Mandana Misra's Distinction of the Activity (Bhavanaviveka). Delhi 1994


       2.Brahmasiddhi (Advaita)

See a48.1.138.3; 221.1.315; 363.1.3

369.2.1 Summarized in Dasgupta II, 87-98

369.2.2 Edited and translated by P.P.S.Sastri and S.Suryanarayana Sastri. Two volumes. Unpublished, handwritten ms. Madras University 1936

369.2.3 Edited, with Sankhapani's Vyakhya, by S.Kuppuswami Sastri. MGOS 4, 1937. Introduction reprinted in KSBC 23-65. Reprinted Delhi 1984

369.2.4 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Mandana and bhavadvaita", PQ 12, 1936. Also JIH 15, 1936, 320-329. Reprinted CPSSS 272-281

369.2.5 S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Brahmadvaita of Mandana Misra", KK 3, 1936, 504-507

369.2.6 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Can difference be perceived?", PQ 14, 1938, 142-151

369.2.7 S.S.Hasurkar, "The concept of transcendental reality as developed by Mandanamisra", PB 63, 1958: 275, 324, 359, 413

369.2.8 R.Balasubrahmanian, A Study of Mandanamisra's Brahmasiddhi. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Madras 1960. Contains partial translation. Selection in SBAV 229-241

369.2.9 Shoren Ihara, "A pratibha theory found in Mandanamisra's Brahmasiddhi" (in Japanese with English summary). HHKKR 97-l09

369.2.10 R.Balasubramanian, "Jivanmukti: a new interpretation", JOI 12, 1962, 119-129

369.2.11 R.Balasubrahanian, "The concept of avidya", IPA 2, 1966, 233-237

369.2.12 Ramaprasad Bhattachasrya, "A note on Mandana's Advaitavada", JDHUB 1, 1968, 140-143

369.2.13 Siegfried Lienhard, "Einige Bemerkungen über Sabdabrahman und Vivarta bei Bhavabhuti", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 53-64

369.2.14 Brahmakanda edited and translated into German by Tilmann Vetter in Mandanamisra's Brahmasiddhih--Brahmakanda Übersetzung, Einleitung und Anmerkungen. OAWV 7, 1969

369.2.15 Partly translated into French by Madeleine Biardeau, La Philosophie de Mandana Misra vue à partir de la Brahmasiddhi. Paris 1969

369.2.16 Allen Wright Thrasher, The Advaita of Mandana Misra's Brahmasiddhi. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1972

369.2.17 R. Balasubramanian, Advaita Vedanta. MUSS 23, 1976

369.2.18 Allen Wright Thrasher, "Mandana Misra on the indescribability of avidya", WZKSOA 21, 1977, 219-238

369.2.19 Allen Wright Thrasher, "Mandana Misra's theory of vikalpa", WZKSOA 22, 1978, 133-158

369.2.20 Summarized by Allen Thrasher, EnIndPh3, 1981, 346-419

369.2.21 Allen W. Thrasher, "Vivarta according to Mandana Misra", WZKSOA 25, 1981, 217-230

369.2.22 S.S.Sastry, "Mandana Misra and Brahma Siddhi", TL 5.4, 1982, 4-7

369.2.22.1 R. Balasubramanian, A Study of the Brahmasiddhi of Mandana Misra. Varanasi 1983

369.2.23 Allen Wright Thrasher, The Advaita Vedanta of Brahma-siddhi. Delhi 1993

369.2.24 G. Sundara Ramaiah, "The post-Samkara thought: the three prasthanas and Brahmasiddhi", JPS 2.1, 1994, 29-38

369.2.27 Edited by Kedaranatha Tripathi. New Delhi 1999

369.2.29 Hugh Nicholson, "Apologetics and philosophy in Mandana Misra's Brahmasiddhi", JIP 30, 2002, 575-596

369.2.30 Pavel Sajdek, "Mandana Misra's conception of bliss", CracowIS 3-4, 2002-2003, 227-234


       3.Mimamsanukramanika (Purvamimamsa)

369.3.1 Edited, wiith Ganganatha Jha's Mimamsamandana, by Dundhiraja Sastri. ChSS 68, 1928, 1930, 1986

369.3.2 Edited by Pattabhirama Sastri. New Delhi 1983


       4.Sphotasiddhi (Grammarian)

See a363.1.15

369.4.0 Edited by K. Sambasiva Sastri. TSS 89, Trivandrum 1927

369.4.1 Edited, with Rsiputra Paramesvara's Gopalika, by S.K.Ramanatha Sastri. MUSS 6, 1931

369.4.2 Edited and translated into French by Madeleine Biardeau as La Demonstration du Sphota. PIFI 13. Pondichery 1958

369.4.3 Edited and translated by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Poona 1966

369.4.4 Summarized by G.B.Palsule, Harold G. Coward, and Karl H. Potter, EnIndPh 5, 1990, 181-192

369.4.5 Kengo Harimoto, "Patanjalisastravivarana 3.17, Sphotasididhi k. 27 and Brahmasutrabhasya 1.3.28", JIBSt 41.2, 1993, 25-27

369.4.6 Michiya Kawajiri, "The meaning of the term abheda in Sphotasiddhi", JIBSt 45.2, 1997, 5-8

369.4.7 Usha Rajhore, Sphotasiddhi of Mandana Misra, a Critical Study. Delhi 2000


    5.Vibhramaviveka

369.5.1 Edited by S.Kuppuswami Sastri and T.R.V.Dikshitar. MOS 1, 1927, 1932. Kuppuswami Sastri's introduction reprinted in KSBC 66-73

369.5.2 Edited and translated into German by Lambert Schmithausen, Mandanamisra's Vibhramavivekah. Mit einer Studie Zur Entwicklung der indischen Irrtumslehre. OAWV 2, 1965

369.5.5 Edited by K. T. Pandurangi. Bangalore 2008


     6.Vidhiviveka (Purvamimamsa)

369.6.1 Edited, with Vacaspati Misra's Nyayakanika, by Rama Sastri Tailanga. Pan n.s. 25, 1903 - 28, 1906. Reprinted Banaras 1907

369.6.2 Edited, with Vacaspati Misra's Nyayakanika, by Mahaprabhu Lal Gosvami.  PBS 8, 1978, 1986

369.6.3 D.V.Garge, "On the meaning of vidhi with reference to Mandanamisra", PWIAI 149-154

369.6.4 Edited, with Vacaspati Misra's Nyayakanika, by Srimohan Bhattacharya. CalSktColRS 93, 1980; 120, 1981

369.6.5.Kanchana Natarajan, Vidhi Viveka of Mandana Misra: Understanding Vedic Injunctions. Delhi 1995

369.6.6 Edited with Vacaspati Misra's Nyayakanika and Paramesvara's Jusadhvankarani and Svaditankarani, by Elliot M. Stern. Four volumes. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Pennsylvania 1988; Ann Arbor 1989


       7.General

See a221.1.245; 79.67:444,470,510

369.7.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Suresvara and Mandanamisra", JRAS 1923, 259-263 - 1924, 96-97

369.7.2 V.N .Sastri, "Mandana and Bhavabhuti", JOR 54, 1925, 55 ff.

369.7.3 P.V.Kane, "The chronological postion of Mandana, Umbeka, Bhavabhuti, Suresvara", JASBo n.s. 3, 1928, 289-293

369.7.4 D.C.Bhattacharya, "Mandana, Suresvara and Bhavabhuti: the problem of their identity", IHQ 7, 1931, 301-308

369.7.5 A.Rai Bahadur Amarnath Ray, "A note on Suresvara and Mandana Misra", IHQ 7, 1931, 632

369.7.6 Ganganatha Jha, "Is the equation Mandana Misra = Suresvara correct?", MimP 1.1, 1936, 7

369.7.7 S.Kuppuswami Sastri, "Mandana-Suresvara equation in the history of Advaita", ABORI 18, 1936-37, 121-157

369.7.8 S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Mandana and Suresvara", JMU 11, 1939, 30-40. Also CPSSS 281-292

369.7.9 P.P.S.Sastri, "Problems of identity--Mandana Misra--Suresvara", JSS 2.6, 1940-41, 5 pp. Also Bhaktakusumanjali 3-5

369.7.10 David Seyfort Ruegg, "On the term buddhiviparinama and the...of illusory change", IIJ 2, 1958, 271-283

369.7.11 S.S.Hasurkar, "Mandana Misra's views on error", ALB 23, 1959, 19-38

369.7.12 R.Balasubramanian, "Identity of Mandanamisra", JAOS 82, 1962,

369.7.13 Shoren Ihara, "The date of Mandanamisra" (summary). SKenk 179, 1964, 62

369.7.14 K.Kunjunni Raja, "A so-called view of Mandana on word-meaning discussed by the Navyanyaya school", KAG 180-181. Also CIDO 26, 444-448

369.7.15 R.Balasubramanian, "Mandanamisra", PA 90-99

369.7.16 K.Kunjunni Raja, "The date of Mandanamisra", Pratibhanam 85-86

369.7.17 V.Swaminathan, "On ahamkara -- Mandana Misra and Samkaracarya", JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 105-116

369.7.18 Allen Wright Thrasher, "The dates of Mandana Misra and Samkara", WZKSOA 23, 1979, 117-140

369.7.19 K.Kunjunni Raja, "The date of Mandanamisra", Rajasudha 76-79

369.7.20 Jnanananda Bharati, "Samkara's confrontation with Mandana Misra", Dilip 9.1, 1983, 6-8

369.7.21 E.R.Sreekrsna Sarma, "Bhartrhari and Mandana", ALB 49, 1985, 66-78

369.7.21.1 Fernando Tola, "On the date of Mandana Misra and Samkara and their doctrinal relation", ABORI 70, 1990, 37-46

369.7.22 Ramaprasad Bhattacharya, "Mandana the monist", Prajnajyoti 349-354

369.7.22.1 Rabindra Kumar Pande, "Mandana on avidyanivrtti", JOI 40, 1991, 229-234. Reprinted RKBSSS 114-121

369.7.23 K.Kunjunni Raja, "On the dates of Samkara and Mandana", ALB 55, 1991, 104-118

369.7.24 R.T.Vyas, "Mandana on avidyavrtti", JOI 40, 1991, 229-234

369.7.25 Ramaprasad Bhattacharya, "Mandana Misra--an advocate of sadadvaitavada", Corpus 106-110

369.7.26 P. Gopalakrishnan, "Mandana Misra and Samkara", TL 17.1, 1994, 36-38

369.7.30 R. Balasubramanian, "Mandana and Suresvara: two complementary poles", AdV 175-241

369.7.33 Jonardon Ganeri, "Can error lead to truth? The procedural epistemology of Mandana Misra", Parampara 167-177

369.7.36 Ramaprasad Bhattacharya, "Samkara, Mandana and Ramanuja on mantra XI, Isopanisad", ESLI 249-254

369.7.40 Satyavrat Vatrma, Mandana and His Works: an Appraisal. Delhi 2009

369.7.45 Diwakara Acharya, "Main points of Vacaspati's disagreement with Mandana", LBIP 421-434

369.7.46 R. Balasubramanian, "Identity of Mandanamisra”, TVOS 35.2, 2010, 25-51



370.(Bhattaputra) Jayamisra (690) (NCat IV, 223)

       1.Sarkarika on Kumarila's Slokavarttika (NCat VII, l86)

See e363.1.2


371.Srigupta (690)

       1.Tattvavataravrtti (NCat VIII, 80)


372.Aviddhakarna *(700)* (NCat I, 426-427)

       1.General

372.1.1 Esther A. Solomon, "Aviddhakarna--a forgotten Naiyayika", PAIOC 25, 1969, 337-352

372.1.2 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 338-340


373.Prabhakara (700)

       1.Brhati on Sabara's Mimamsasutrabhasya

See e22.1.42. s22.1.27

373.1.1 Ganganatha Jha, "Prabhakara's theory of error", CERB 167-178

373.1.2 S. Kuppuswami Sastri, "The Prabhakara school of Karma Mimamsa (I-II)", PAIOC 2, 1922, 407-412. Reprinted in KSBC 95-103

373.1.3 Edited, with Salikanatha Misra's Rjuvimalapancika and Bhasyaparisista, by S. K. Ramanatha Sastri. Three parts in MUSS 3 (renumbered 24-25), 1934. Part 4 edited by S.Subrahmanya Sastri, MUSS 24, 1962

373.1.4 J. C. Mookerjee, "Prabhakara's theory of error", IHQ 26, 1950, 193-200. Also FRSD 279-286

373.1.5 Shri Nivas Shastri, "Cognition (jnana) according to Prabhakara Misra", VIJ 5, 1967, 71-76

373.1.6 N. Veezhinathan, "On the significance of a sentence according to the Prabhakara school", TVOS 2, 1977, 332-341

373.1.7 Tara Chatterjee, "Did Prabhakara hold the view that knowledge is self-manifesting?", JIP 7, 1979, 267-276. Reprinted KFIP 1-9

373.1.7.5 K. T. Pandurangi, "Concept of svarupabheda in Prabhakara and Dvaita", Surabhi 170-175

373.1.8 Mark Siderits, "The Prabhakara Mimamsa theory of related designation", APCP 253-298

373.1.9 M. Srimannarayana Murti, "Import of the negative sentence according to Prabhakara", Prajnajyoti 217-225

373.1.10 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Prabhakara in the Brhati", BPBS 465-474

373.1.10.5 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, Der 'Organismus' des geheiligten Veda. Eine Studie des Niyoga-Lehre Prabhakaras mit ausgewohlten Uberstzungen des Brhati. Dissertation Wien 1994

373.1.11 Edited and translated into German in Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, Der "Organismus" des urhaberlosen Veda: ein studie der Niyoga-Lehre Prabhakaras mit ausgewahlten Ubersetzungen der Brhati. Wien 1997


       2.Laghvi on Sabara's Mimamsasutrabhasya


       3.General

See a158.1.2; 363.5:5,16,17,25.

373.3.1 T.R.Chintamani, "The works of Prabhakara", JOR 3, 1929, 231-291. Summary in PAIOC 5, 1930, 119-120

373.3.2 K.R.Pisharoti, "Three great philosophers of Kerala", IHQ 5, 1929, 676-692

373.3.3 Rajendra Nath Sharma, "Prabhakara's concept of relation", RelationsIP 169-178

373.3.4 Kalyan Sengupta, "Some reflections on the theory of anvitabhidhana", EssInP 451-460

373.3.5 Jean-Marie Verpoorten, "Some aspects of atman according toPrabhakara and Salikanatha”, MVTIP 277-297


374. Siddhasena Divakara (700)

     1.(Astadasani)Dvatrimsika (Jain) (NCat I, 465; IX, 190)

374.1.1 Edited, Siddhasena Divakara's Nyayavatara and Sanmatitarka, by Anandasagara. Bhavnagar 1908

374.1.2 Edited by Sukhlal Sanghvi. Bharatavidya Granthavali Granthaloka 7, Bombay 1945

374.1.3 Edited, with editor's Kiranavali, by Lavanyasuri. Botad (Sau rashtra) 1951-1955, 1977

374.1.4 A. N. Upadhye (ed.)l, Siddhasena's Nyayavatara and Other Works (Bmbay 1971). Includes edition of Dvatrimsika by M. Desai, edition and t ranslatio of Vinaya Vijay a's Nayakarnika by Desai, edition and translatin of Nyayavatara by Satischandra Bidyabhusana and introducgory essay "Siddhasena and his works" by Upadhye.


     3.Nyayavatara (Jain)

See a268: 5.6.5, 10.40. e374.1.1. et374.1.4

374.3.1 Edited, with extracts from Candraprabha Suri's Vivrti and translated by Satischandra Vidyabhusana. RAR 1.2, 1908, 1-14. Reprinted Calcutta 1909, 1981; Arrah 1915; also in 374.1.4 above

374.3.2 Edited, with Santyacarya's Jainatarkavarttika, by Vitthal Sastri. Pan n.s. 36, 1914 - 39, 1917. Reprinted Banaras 1917

374.3.3 Edited and translated, with Sidharsigani's Vivrti, by Satischandra Vidyabhusana. LJL 2, 1915

374.3.4 Edited, with Siddharsigani's Vivrti and Devabhadra's Tippana, by Bhagavandas Harakchand. Ahmedabad, Patan 1917

374.3.5 Edited, with Rajasekhara Suri's Tippani, by Nemacanda Devacanda and Bhagavan Das. Patan 1917

374.3.6 Edited by Anandasagara Suri. Ahmedabad 1919

374.3.7 Edited by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. Ahmedabad 1926

374.3.8 Edited, with Siddharsigani's Vivrti and Devabhadra's Tippani, by P. L. Vaidya. Bombay 1928

374.3.9 Edited, with Santisuri's Jainatarkavarttika, by Dalsukh Malvania. SJS 20, 1949

374.3.10 Edited, with Siddharsigani's Vivrti, by V.M.S.Acharya. Bombay 1950

374.3.11 Edited and translated in Satkari Mookerjee, "A critical and comparative study of Jaina logic and epistemology on the basis of the Nyayavatara of Siddhasena Divakara", VIRB I, 1-144

374.3.12 Edited, with Devabhadra's Tippani and Siddharsigani's Tika. VIRB I, 95 pp.

374.3.13 M.A. Dhaky, "The date and authorship of Nyayavatara", Nirgrantha 1, 1995, 39-49

374.3.15 Satya Ranjan Banerjee, "Siddhasena Divakara and his Nyavatara", JainJ 32, 1998, 93-114

374.3.17 Piotr Balcerowicz, "On the date of the Nyayavatara", Studia Indologiczny 7, 2000, 17-58; also EIPRL 313-352

374.3.18 Bansidhar Bhatt, "A study in the Nyayavatara of Siddhasena", Vividha 65-82

374.3.21 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Two Siddhasenas and the authorship of the Nyayavatara and the Sanmatitarkaprakarana", JIP 29, 2001, 351-378

374.3.21.3 Edited, with Candraprabha's Vivrti and Devabhadra's Tippani, by Piotr Balcerowicz. Two volumes. Stuttgart 2001

374.3.21.5 Piotr Balcerowicz, "On the relationship of the Nyayavatara and the Sanmatitarkaprakarana", ITaur 29, 2003, 29-80

374.3.22 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2007, 234-238

 
 

374A.Author Unknown (700?)

        1.Vijnanabhairava (Kashmir Saiva)

374A.1.1 Edited with the commentary of Ksemaraja and Sivopadhyaya by Madhusudana S. Kaul and Mukunda Rama Sastri. KSTS 8-9, 1918

379A.1.2 Edited with Anandabhatta's Kaumudi by Mukunda Rama Sastri. Srinagar 1918

374A.1.3 Edited and translated into French by Lilian Silburn. Paris 1961

379A.1.3.5 Translated into German by Wilhelmina Keyseroling as Das Tantra der Befreiung: Vijnana-bhairava-tantra. Sudeigellersen 1994; reprinted Wien 197168

374A.1.4 Edited by Vrajavallabha Dvivedi. Delhi 1978, 1984, 2004

374A.1.5 Edited and translated by Jaideva Singh. Delhi 1979, 1981

374A.1.5.2 Edited ion Bengali script by Ramacandra Adhikarin. Bardhamana 1980

374A.1.5.5 Translated French as Jesus cela: le science de Hamsadu Vijnana Bhairava (24), Lyon 1981. This translated into English in Muktananda, I am That: the Science of Hamsa from the Vijnana Bhairava, South Fallsburg, N.Y. 1992

374A.1.5.8 K. S. Avasthi, Best Techniques of Yoga (as in Vigyan Bhairav Tantra and Upanishads. Hardoi 1981

374A.1.6 Edited with Sivopadhyaya's Vrtti by Bapulal Ajnana. ChaukhambaSurbharati Granthamala 1984, Varanasi 1991

374A.1.6.2 Edited, with Ksemaraja's Vivrti and Sivopadhyaya;s Vivrti , by Krsnananda Sagara. Varanasi 1987

374A.1.6.7 Translated into Italian in Attilial Sironi, Vijanabhairava: le cognoscenza del tremendo. Mila 1989

374A.1.7 Edited and translated by Jaidev Singh as The Yoga of Delight, Wonder and Astonishment. Albany, N.Y. 1991

374A.1.8 Edited and translated into German by Wilhelmine Keyserling, Das Tantra der Befreiung.. Sudergellersen 1994

374A.1.9 Muktananda, Nothing Exists That Is Not Siva. Commentaries on the Siva-sutra, Vijnanabhairava, Gurugita and other sacred texts. South Fallsburg, N.Y. 1997

374A.1.10 Edited and translated into French by Daniel Odier as Tantra de la connaissance supreme. Paris 1998, 2004. In Italian, translated b Titti Faller, Vicenza 1999, 2003

374A.1.11 Edited and translated by Lakshman Joo as The Practice of Centring Awareness. Varanasi 2002

374A.1.12 Edited and translated by Satyasangananda Saraswati as Sri Vijnana Bhairava Tantra: the Ascent.Munger, Bihar 2003

374A.1.13 Bettina Bäumer, "Attaining the form of the void: sunya in Vijnanabhairava", VFHBC 159-170

374A.1.14 Edited and translated into German by Bettina Baumer. Grafing 2004

374A.1.17 Translated b Ranjit Chaudhuri. New Delhi 2008


375.Jayaraksita (700)

       1.Sphutartha Srighanacavasamgrahatika

375.1.1 Sanghasen Singh, A Study of the Sphutartha Srighanacavasamgraha-tika.  TSWS 24, 1968, 1983

375.1.3 J. Duncan M. Derrett, "Maithuna-vivrti: the Buddhist-novice's dilemma", Surabhi 45-53

375.1.4 Translated (?) in J. Duncan M. Derrett, A Textbook for Novices: Jayaraksita's 'Perspicuous Commentary on the Compendium of Conduct by Srighana'. Publications di indologica taurinensia 15. Torino 1983

375.1.8 Giulio Agostino, "On the nikaya affiliation of the Srighanacaryasamgraha and the Sphutartha Srighanacaryasamgrahatika", JIABS 26, 2003, 97-114


377.(Bhatta) Umbeka (710) (NCat II, 397)

       1.Commentary on Mandana Misra's Bhavanaviveka

See e369.1.1

       

       2.Tatparyatika on Kumarila's Slokavarttika

See e22.1.54


       3.General

See a369.7.3

377.3.1 V.V.Mirashi, "Bhavabhuti and Umbeka", PAIOC 19.2, 1957, 45-51

377.3.2 V.V.Mirashi, "Dr. Kane on Bhavabhuti and Umbeka", SKBCV 91-94

377.3.3 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Umbeka Bhatta", JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 93-96

373.3.5 Shuguru Ishimura, "Umveka's interpretation of intrinsic validity", SACS 1, 2006, 73-94


378.Sakyamati or Sakyamati (710)

       1.Tika on Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika

See e344.4.14.1; 404.4.3.5

378.1.1 E.Steinkellner, "Philological remarks on Sakyamati's Pramanavarttikatika", SzumJB 283-296

378.1.1.1 Edited by M. Inami, K. Matsuda and T. Tani. Tokyo 1992

378.1.1.2 Masahiro Inami, A Study on Pramanavarttikatika by Sakyabuddhi. Studia Tibetica 23. Tokyo 1992

378.1.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "Sakyabuddi's commentary on Pramanavarttika I. 3 and its Vrtti", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 379-387

378.1.5 Kensho Okada, "An aspect of Sakyabuddhi's interpretation of apoha theory", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 224-225

 
 

378.1. 8 Masamichi Sakai, "Sakyabuddhi and Dharmottara on the inference of momentariness based on the absence of external causes of destruction”, RLBPI 407-421


379.Samkara (Acarya) (710)

       1.Adhyatmapatala

379.1.0 Edited by T. Ganapati ?Sastri. TSS 41, 1915

379.1.1 Trevor Leggett, The Chapter of the Self. London 1978

379.1.2 Translated by R.S.Narasimha as Yoga of Right Living for Self-Realization. Ootacamund 1982


       2.Advaitanubhuti (Advaita)

379.2.1 Edited by Ananda Kumara Roy Chaudhuri. Calcutta 1873

379.2.2 Edited by Jaganmohana Tarkalamkara. Calcutta 1875-76

379.2.3 Edited in WSS

379.2.4 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 1921

379.2.5 Edited in MWS

379.2.6 Edited in SSG 11, 353-364

379.2.7 Edited and translated, Oslo 1995

379.2.12 P. R. Kannan, "Samkara's Advaitanubhuti", Dilip 34.3, 2008, 26-30


       3.Advaitapancaratna or (Anubhava)Pancaratna (two texts by this name, not distinguished here) (NCat I, 127; II, 49)

379.3.1 Listed in PSK

379.3.2 Edited, with Samkara's Atmabodha and Nirvanasatka and Advaitananda's Dipika on Atmabodha. Bombay 1881

379.3.3 Edited in BSR

379.3.4 Edited in VSS

379.3.5 Translated by S. Venkataramana Iyer. BV 7, 1902: 181 ff.

379.3.6 Edited version, by Vinayaka Lakshama Bhave in Maharastrakavi (Poona) 7, 1903-04, 115 pp.

379.3.7 Edited in Vidyavati (Madras) 2.1-3, 1907, 16 pp.

379.3.8 Edited, with Samkara's Dhanyastaka and Manisapancaka, by Udasi Paramananda. Lucknow 1912

379.3.9 Edited in WSS

379.3.10 Edited in BN

379.3.11 Edited in Telugu characters, with Balakrsna Sarasvati's Kiranavali. Madras 1914

379.3.12 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 1923

379.3.13 Edited in MWS

379.3.14 Translated by K.R.Pisharoti. VK 36, 1949-50, 241-242. Same, plus text, PB 56, 1951, 301-305

379.3.15 Edited, with Balakrsna Sarasvati's Kiranavali, by Surnath Kanjan Pillai. JKUOML 9, 1957, 3: 69-84; 4: 37-48. Reprinted as TSS 190, 1958

379.3.16 Edited in SSG 11, 351-352

379.3.17 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 343-344


       4.Bhasya on Aitareya Upanisad (NCat III, 86)

See e317.1:8,13,15

379.4.1 Edited, with Samkara's Taittiriyopanisadbhasya and Anandagiri's Tika and Samkara's Svetasvataropanisadbhasya, by E. Roer. BI 6, 1850, 1874

379.4.2 Edited in Telugu characters, with Narayana Sarasvati's Tika. Madras 1870

379.4.3 Edited, with Samkara's Taittiriyopanisadbhasya and Narayana Sarasvati's Tippanas on both, by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1874

379.4.4 Edited with Samkara's Isopanisadbhasya by Pitambara. 1879

379.4.5 Edited Calcutta 1881

379.4.6 Edited Banaras 1884

379.4.7 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana and Vidyaranya's Dipika, by the Anandasrama pandits. ASS 11, 1889, 1898, 1911, 1921, 1931. Reprinted without Vidyaranya, Punyapattana 1980

379.4.8 Edited Lucknow 1891

379.4.9 Translated by H.M.Bhadramkar. Bombay 1893, 1899; Poona 1922; Delhi 2005

379.4.10 Edited Poona 1892

379.4.11 Introductory section translated in BV 3, 1898, 430-488

379.4.12 Edited by D.Sundararaja Sarma in Vedantabodhini (Madras 1908-1910)

379.4.13 Edited in WSS

379.4.13.1 Edited by Chintamani Gangadhara Bhanu. Two volumes. Bombay 1914

379.4.14 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1920

379.4.15 Edited, with Samkara's Taittiriyopanisadbhasya, by S.Sitarama Sastri. Madras 1923

379.4.16 Translated, with Samkara's Taittiriyopanisadbhasya, by S.C.Vidyarnava and M.L.Sandal. SBH 30, 1925

379.4.17 S.K.Belvalkar, "An authentic but unpublished work of Samkaracarya", JASBo n.s. 6, 1930, 241-246

379.4.18 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Bhasyas on Isa, Katha, Kena, Mandukya, Mundaka, Prasna, Svetasvatara, and Taittiriya Upanishads, Narayana Sarasvati's Tika on Aitareya-Bhasya and Anandagiri's Tippana on the rest, by E.Roer. Second edition. Adyar 1931

379.4.19 Edited and translated by D.Venkataramiah. Bangalore 1934; Mysore 1935

379.4.20 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1936, 1965

379.4.20.5 Edited Gorkahpur 1952-53

379.4.21 Edited and translated, with Samkara's commentaries on Mandukya, Mundaka and Prasna Upanisads, by Gambhirananda in Eight Upanisads, Volume II, Calcutta 1958, 1966. Translation only, Calcutta 1978

379.4.22 M.D.Paradkar, "Similes in Samkara's Bhasya on Aitareyopanisad", BhV 19, 1959, 71-76

379.4.23 Edited, with Samkara's commentaries on Isa, Katha, Kena, Chandogya, Brhadaranyaka, Mandukya, Mundaka, Prasna and Taittiriya Upanisads, Bhagavadgita and Brahmasutras. Varanasi 1964

379.4.24 Edited in SSG 4, 185-230

379.4.25 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 270-277

379.4.28 Edited with Samkara's Taittiriyopanisadbhasya by Som Raj Gupta. Delhi 1999


       5.Ajnanabodhini or Atmajnanaprakarana or Adhyatmavidopadesavidhi or Samksiptavedantasarvasvaprakriya (Advaita)(NCat I, 152; II, 54)

379.5.1 Edited Calcutta 1874

379.5.2 Edited in MWS

379.5.3 Edited, with Svayamprakasamuni's commentary, by Pandurang Sastri Odlamana. Bombay 1936


       6.Anatmasrivigarhanaprakarana (Advaita) (NCat I, 194)

379.6.1 Edited in WSS

379.6.2 Edited in MWS

379.6.3 Edited in SG

379.6.4 Edited in SSG 11, 364-367

379.6.8 T.P.Ramachandran, "The Anatmasrivigarhana of Samkara (some reflections)", TVOS 27.1, 2002, 114-129


       7.Aparoksanubhuti (Advaita) (NCat I, 251-252)

379.7.1 Edited Bombay 1849

379.7.2 Edited Bombay 1856

379.7.3 Edited with Vidyaranya's Dipika. Bombay 1878

379.7.4 Edited Lucknow 1881

379.7.5 Edited in VR

379.7.6 Edited, with Vidyaranya's Anubhutiprakasika. 1884

379.7.7 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 1885

379.7.8 Edited and translated by M.N.Dwivedi in CRYP. Reprinted Delhi 1982. Published with editions of Samkara's Vakyasudha and Bharatitirtha's Tikas on both as Raja Yoga or The Practical Metaphysics of the Vedanta. Bombay 1885, 1982

379.7.9 Edited with Samkara's Manisapancaka by A.V.Sarma. Poona 1889

379.7.10 Edited by Vaman Ekanath Sastri Kemkar. Poona 1889

379.7.11 Edited, with Samkara's Atmabodha, Svatmanirupana, Vakyavrtti and Vivekacudamani, by Jayarama Raghunatha as Samkaracaryapancaratna. 1892

379.7.12 Edited, with Vidyaranya's Dipika and Samkara's Atmabodha, by R. S. V. Sarma.  Poona 1895, 1916

379.7.12.1 Edited with Madhava's commentary by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1897

379.7.13 Edited, with Samkara's Dasasloki and Satasloki and Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu, by A. Mahadeva Sastri and K. Rangacarya. MOLP 20, 1899

379.7.14 Partially translated in BV 6, 1901, 303-309

379.7.15 Edited by V. V. Bapat. Bombay 1903, 1928

379.7.16 Edited by Vinaya Lakshmana Bhava in Maharastrakavi (Poona) 1906, 94 pp.

379.7.17 Edited in WSS

379.7.18 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Dasasloki, Daksinamurtistotra, Satasloki, Atmabodha, Vakyavrtti and Svatmanirupana, by S. Venkataramanan in Select Works of Sri Samkaracarya. Madras 1911, 1921

379.7.19 Edited in ADR

379.7.20 Edited in Telugu characters by Chedaluvada Sundararama Sastri. Madras 1914, 1916

379.7.21 Edited in VS

379.7.22 Edited by Hamsa Svami. Poona 1918

379.7.23 Edited by Sivarama Maharaj. Bombay 1923-24

379.7.24 Edited in MWS

379.7.25 Edited in Tamil and Nagari characters by Paramananda Svami. Tanjore 1927

379.7.26 Edited, with Vidyaranya's Anubhutiprakasika, by Durgacarana Chattopadhyaya. Banaras 1934

379.7.27 Edited with Vidyaranya's Anubhutiprakasika. Bombay 1935, 1939

379.7.28 Edited and translated by Vimuktananda. PB 38, 1933 - 39, 1934. Reprinted Almore 1938, 1955; Calcutta 1966, 1977

379.7.29 Edited, with Vidyaranya's Anubhutiprakasika. Banaras 1941

379.7.30 M.K.Vankatarama Iyer, "Aparoksanubhuti of Sri Samkaracarya", KK 23, 1959, 113-121

379.7.31 Edited in SSG 10, 383-401

379.7.32 Edited with Madhava's Dipika by Akhandananda Sarasvati. 1970

379.7.32.1 Edited with Samkara's Atmabodha, Vakyavrtti, and Laghuvakyavrtti by Harshananda. Mysore 1972

379.7.32.1.5 Donald James Foster, The Phenomenology of Self-Realization: The Phgilosophy of Sankaracarya: a Study of Vivekacudamani and Aparoksanubhut. M. A. Thesis, McMaster U., 1973

379.7.32.2 Edited, with Samkara's Upadesasahasri, Dasasloki (with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu), Satasloki, Pancikarana, Atmabodha, Tripuri, Upadesapancaratna, Manisapancika, Atmajnanopadesavidhi, Svatmanirupana and Vakyavrtti, with Anandagiri's commentaries, by S.Subrahmanya Sastri. Mt. Abu 1981

379.7.33 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 320-323

379.7.34 Translated, with Vidyaranya's Anubhutiprakasika, by Ram Swarup Dwivedi. Bombay 1986

379.7.35 Edited in Bengali script and translated into Bengali, together with Ramagita section of Brahmapruana with Mahidhara's commentary, by Ramapada Chattopadhyaya. Calcutta 1987

379.7.36 Translated by Douglas A. Fox in Direct Awareness of the Self. Lewiston 1995

379.7.37 Edited and translated by Chinmayananda as Aparoksanubhuti: Intimate Experience of the Reality by Sri Shankaracharya. Mumbai 2001

379.7.38 Edited and translated by J. L. Gupta. Delhi 2004

379.7.40 Edited, with Samkara's Atmabodha, Tattvabodha,and Manoratnamala, by Swarupananda Saraswati Maharaj. Jamnagar 2005

379.7.42 Partly edited and translated in Vimalananda, Fifteen Portals to the Supreme: Meditation Techniques from Aparoksanubhuti Mumbai 2006

379.7.45 Edited, with Samkara's Atmabodha, Praudhanubodha and Laghuvakyavrtti, by Krsna Panta Sastri. Delhi 2007

379.7.47 Translated by S. E. Saila Tamranan. Kucci 2007


       8.Atmabodha (Advaita) (NCat II, 5l-53)

See e379.3.2; 379.7:11, 12, 32.1-2, 40, 45. et379.7.18. t163.1.2; 317.1.73.0

379.8.1 Translated by J. Taylor. London12; Bombay 1886, 1893

379.8.2 Edited by Puranam Venkata Narayana Krishna Sastri. Madras 1840

379.8.3 Edited by J. Haeberlin in KavS (Calcutta 1847, 1873-74)

379.8.4 Edited, with Samkara's Tattvabodha, by Fitzedward Hall. Mirzapore 1852

379.8.5 Edited and translated into German by K. F. L. Graul. Bibliotheca Tamulica 1, 1854, 174-203. Reprinted Osnabruck 1969

379.8.6 Translated into French by F. Neve. JA (6th series) 7, 1866, 5-96. Reprinted Paris 1866

379.8.7 Edited and translated by I. F. Kearns. Madras 1867. Also IA 5, 1876, 125-133

379.8.8 Edited, with Samkara's Atmanatmaviveka, by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1867-1876

379.8.9 Edited by G. S. Mudaliyar. Madras 1869

379.8.10 Edited, with Samkara's Nirvanasatka, by Kesavacandra Raya Karmakara. Calcutta 1869, 1878, 1884

379.8.11 Edited by Jivananda Vidyasagara in KavS (Calcutta 1872, 1886)

379.8.12 Portions translated by M.Monier-Williams in Indian Wisdom (London 1876)

379.8.13 Edited by Muktananda. Ahmedabad 1879

379.8.14 Edited in Telugu characters by Venkataramana Sastri. Madras 1881

379.8.15 Edited with Brahmananda's Dipika. Bombay 1881

379.8.16 Edited by Jvalaprasad and Govindaprasada. Moradabad 1884

379.8.17 Edited in VR

379.8.18 Translated, with Samkara's Paramarthasara and Hastamalakiyabhasya, by Amritalal Basu. Calcutta 1885

379.8.19 Translated by B.P.Narasimhiah in CRYP

379.8.20 Edited in Telugu characters by Prajnanaghanendra. Madras 1887, 1894, 1918

379.8.21 Edited in BSR

379.8.22 Edited in grantha characters with an anonymous Tika. Madras 1894

379.8.23 Translated into German by F.Hartmann. Leipzig 1895

379.8.24 Translated by Charles Johnston as The Awakening of the Self. New York 1897; Felinfach 1994

379.8.25 Translated by Sitanath Datta in Sankaracarya .Calcutta 1889, 1897, 1911

379.8.26 Edited, with Samkara's Sarvavedantasiddhantasara, Svatmanirupana, Vakyavrtti and Vivekacudamani, by A.Mahadeva Sastri and K.Rangacarya. MOLP 22, 1899

379.8.27 Translated by N. Dhole in The Oriental (Calcutta) 1.9-10, 1899

379.8.27.5 Translated, with Samkara's Atmanatmaviveka, by M.M.Chatterjee. Bombay 1900, 1904

379.8.28 Translated by Chanilal C. Bohra. BV 6, 1901: 451, 527

379.8.29 Edited by Vedanta Venkata Subbaiya. Bangalore 1902

379.8.30 Edited and translated, wiith Samkara's commentary on Gaudapada's Mandukyakarikas, by M.L.Dvivedi. Chittur 1903

379.8.32 Edited in Malayalam characters, with Visvesvara's Prakasika, by P.Subrahmanya Sastri. 1904

379.8.33 Edited, with Samkara's Tattvabodha, by V.K.Raju. Tanjore 1910, 1921

379.8.34 Edited in WSS

379.8.34.5 Translated in Sita Nath Datta, Samkaracarya, His Life and Teachings. Third edition, Calcutta 1911

379.8.35 Edited in ADR

379.8.36 Edited, with Samkara's Tattvabodha and Vakyavrtti, in Gitapancaratra (Poona 1914)

379.8.37 Edited in BN

379.8.38 Edited in PS

379.8.39 Edited in VS

379.8.40 Edited by Sivananda Bharati. Belgaum 1915

379.8.40.1 Edited and translated into Polish by Stanislaw FranciszekMichaelski. Warsaw 1923

379.8.40.2 Edited by Srikrsna Pant. AG, Banaras 1933

379.8.41 Edited in MWS

379.8.41.5 Translated by Sivananda Sarasvati. Rishikesh 1936

379.8.42 Edited and translated by Siddhatmananda. PB 41, 1936: 41, 320, 352, 374, 421, 581, 632, 684, 732, 790

379.8.42.1 Edited by Mannilalal Abhimanyu. Banaras 1937

379.8.43 Edited and translated, with Krsnanandasrama Svami's  Pradipika and editor's English notes, by P.N.Menon. Palghat 1942, 1964

379.8.44 Edited and translated by Nikhilananda. New York 1946, 1970, 1980, 1989; Madras 1947, 1962

379.8.45 V.A.Thiagarajan, "Samkaracarya's Atmabodha", Triveni 20, 1948-49, 226-229

379.8.46 Edited in SSG 10, 402-411

379.8.47 Edited with editor's Tika by D.C.Sastri. OH 7, 1959, 1-20

379.8.48 M.K.Venkatarama, "Atmabodha of Sri Samkaracarya", KK 23, 1959, 26-30

379.8.49 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Tika, by D.C. Bhattacharya. Calcutta 1961

379.8.50 Edited and translated by T.M.P.Mahadevan. Madras 1964

379.8.51 Translated by Deb Kumar Das as A Discourse on the Real Nature of Self. Calcutta 1970

379.8.52 Edited and translated by A.Parthasarathy. Bombay 1971

379.8.53 Translated by Chinmayananda. Madras 1972

379.8.53.1 Edited in Telugu Script by Hanuman Janakirama Sarma. Mysore 1972; Tiruvannamalai 1980

379.8.54 Edited, with Samkara's Atmanatmaviveka and editor's Vimala, by Jagadisa Candra Misra. KSS 218, 1973

379.8.54.1 Translated by Roy Eugene Davis as The Path of Soul-Liberation. Lakemont, Georgia 1975

379.8.54.1.5 Translated by Sulman Samuel Cohen in Advaita Sadhana, or The Yoga of Direct Liberation. Delhi 1975

379.8.54.2 Rammurti S. Mishra, Self Analysis and Self knowledge; basedon Atmabodha of Shankaracharya. Lakemont, Georgia 1977

379.8.55 Harinamananda, "Samkara's Atmabodha", STM 91-93

379.8.55.3 Translated by Camille Svensson as Atmabodha (Knowledge of the Soul). Tustin, Calif. 1978

379.8.55.7 Edited and translated by Chinmayananda. Bombay 1981

379.8.56 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 323-324

379.8.56.1Edited, with Samkara's Vakyavrtti, Daksinamurtistotra, Sivapancaksam, Jivanmuktanandalahari, with Raphael's commentaries, edited and translated into Spanish by Eleaonora Berlaj. Barcelona 1997, 2003

379.8.56.2 Sebastian Painadath, "Amabodh: the challenge of Indian spiritual heritage to Christian theological reflection", Religious Pluralism 45-63

379.8.56.5 Edited b Vijay Kaskhelkar. Nagpur 1999

379.8.57 Edited with editor's commentary by Harsanandapuri. Bangalore 1996

379.8.59 Edited and translated by Kaluri Suryanarayana. Hyderabad 1999

379.8.60 Edited and translated by K.V.Apte. PTG 34.3, 2000, 14; 35.4, 2000, 16; 35.1, 200, 14-26; 35.2, 2000, 14-25; 35.3, 2001, 12-24, 35.4, 2000, 11-17; 37.1, 2001, 10-18; 37.2, 2002, 10-21; 37.3, 2002, 13-24; 37.4, 2002, 15-18

379.8.61 R. Balasubramanian, "The Atmabodha of Samkara - I", TVOS 25.1-2, 230-265

379.8.64 N. Veezhinathan, "The Atmabodha of Samkara - II", TVOS 25.1-2, 2000, 266-277

379.8.70 Sung in Sanskrit. CD1011 of the American Sanskrit Institute. Warwick 2007

379.8.75 Self-Knowledge. Adi-Sankaracarya’s 68 Verse Treatis on the Philosophhyof the non-dualists. Tr. Roy Eugene Davis. New Delhi 2012


       9.Atmajnanopadesa (Advaita) (NCat II, 45)

See e379.7.32.2

379.9.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tika, by S.Samasramin. THC I, 1967-68: II, 19, 27, 35, 45

379.9.2 Edited with Anandagiri's Tika. 1884

379.9.3 Translated, with Anandagiri's Tika, by Yogesa Chandra Sastri. Calcutta 1900

379.9.4 Edited in WSS

379.9.5 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Vakyavrttti, by Jagadisvarananda. Deoghar 1941; Madras 1959

379.9.6 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tika, by S.Subrahmanya Sastri. AOR 10.2, 1953, 24 pp.

379.9.7 Translated into French by R.Allar. ET 58, 1957: 231, 263

379.9.8 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 326-328


       10.Atmanatmaviveka (Advaita) (various versions; cf. NCat II, 60-61)

See e379.8:8,54. t379.8.27.5

379.10.1 Edited, with Samkara's Vivekacudamani and Kaupinapancaka, by Nilakamala Vandhopadhyaya in Pancamrta (Calcutta 1861)

379.10.2 Translated by M. M. Chatterjee in CRYP

379.10.3 Edited by Kalicandra Lahidi. Calcutta 1887

379.10.4 Translated Bombay 1901

379.10.5 Edited by Ram Mohan Roy in Raja Rammohana Rayera Samskrta-Vangala-granthavali (Calcutta 1905)

379.10.6 Edited by Prasannakumara Sastri Bhattacharya. Calcuta 1908

379.10.7 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 1908, 1920

379.10.8 Edited in MWS

379.10.9 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 328-331

379.10.9.1 Edited by Sivaprasada Dvivedi. Varanasi 1991

379.10.10 Edited and translated by K. V. Apte. PTG 30.2, 1996, 38; 30.3, 1996, 39; 30.4, 1996, 49; 31.1, 1996, 52; 31.2, 1997, 43; 31.3, 1997, 54, 31.4, 1997, 44; 33.1, 1998, 61-64; 33.2, 1999, 39-43

379.10.12 Edited, with A. Vasudeva Potti's Vyakhya, by K. Govinda and S. Sudarsana Sarma. Tirupati 2005


        11.Balabodha(samgraha) or Balabodhini (Advaita)

379.11.1 Edited and translated into Latin by F.H.Windischmann. Bonn 1832

379.11.2 Edited by Jaganmohana Tarkalamkara. 1875

379.11.2.1 Edited with Samkara's Mundakopanisadbhasya by Sridhara Sastri Pathak. Poona 1925

379.11.3 Edited in ASDJ

379.11.4 Malati Gokhale, "Authorship of the Balabodhini ascribed to Samkaracarya", BDCRI 18, 1957, 186-191


       12.Bhasya on the Bhagavadgita (Advaita)

See e23.1.272; 379.4.23

379.12.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini, by Jagannatha Sukla. Calcutta 1853, 1859, 1870, 1879, 1884

379.12.2 Edited by S. Kuppuswami Sastri. Madras 1865

379.12.3 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini, by Hiralala Misra. Calcutta 1873, 1882

379.12.4 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini, by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1879

379.12.4.1 Translated by Ramavatara Ojhe. Patna 1880

379.12.5 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Sridhara Svamin'sSubodhini, by Kailasacandra Simha. Calcutta 1884

379.12.6 Edited in grantha characters by Tirumalaivilangupam Tatacharya. Madras 1884

379.12.7 Edited with Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini by MadhavacandraTarkacudamani. Dacca 1885

379.12.8 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Surya Pandita'sParamarthaprapa, by S.J.Gondhalekar. Poona 1886

379.12.9 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Gudharthadipika, byPrasannakumara Sastri. Calcutta 1886, 1908

379.12.10 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini, by Umadatta Tripathi. Lucknow 1888

379.12.11 Edited in Telugu characters. Bangalore 1889

379.12.12 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, by K.S.Agase. ASS 34, 1896, 1908, 1909 1936, 1967, 1968

379.12.13 Edited, with Ramanuja's Gitabhasya, Baladeva Vidyabhusana's Bhagavadgitabhasya, Anandagiri's Vivarana, Madhusudana Sarasvati''s Gudharthadipika, Nilakantha's Bhagavadgitabhasya, Yamuna's Gitarthasamgraha, Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini and Visvanatha Cakravartin's Tika by DamodaraMukhopadhyaya Vidyananda. Calcutta 1897-1905

379.12.14 Translated by A.Mahadeva Sastri. Madras 1897, 1918, 1947, 1972, 1977, 1985; Mysore 1901

379.12.15 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini and Ramanuja's Gitabhasya, by Adya Prasada Misra. Banaras 1905-09

379.12.16 Edited by Sundararaja Sarma. Madras 1906

379.12.17 Translated into Dutch by Barend Faddegon. Amsterdam 1906

379.12.18 Edited in grantha and Tamil characters. Madras 1907

379.12.19 Edited, with Samkarananda's Gitabhasya, Ramanuja's Gitabhasya, Vedanta Desika's Tatparyacandrika, Madhva's Gitabhasya and Jayatirtha's Prameyadipika on it, by A.V.Narasimhacarya and T.C.Narasimhacarya. Three volumes. Madras 1909-1910

379.12.20 Edited by Gangadhara Bhanu. Poona 1909-1910

379.12.21 Edited in WSS

379.12.22 Edited in Telugu characters, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Samkarananda's Gitabhasya, Madhusudana Sarasvati's Gudharthadipika, Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini, Surya Pandita's Gitabhasya, Ramanuja's Gitabhasya, and Madhva's Gitabhasya, by Caduluvada Sundararama. Madras 1911-1916

379.12.23 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Nilakantha's Nilakanthi, Dhanapati's Utkarsini, Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini, Abhinavagupta's Gitarthasamgraha, Madhusudana Sarasvati's Gudharthadipika and Dharmadatta (Baccha) Jha's Gudharthatattvaloka, by V.L.S.Pansikar. Bombay 1912, 1936. Delhi 1978

379.12.24 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, by Pramathanatha Tarkabhusana. Second edition. Calcutta 1913

379.12.25 Edited, with Bellamkonda Rama Rau's Arthaprakasa, by Pratibanda Venkataramayya. Bezwada 1917

379.12.26 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Ramanuja's Gitabhasya, Madhva's Gitabhasya, Jayatirtha's Prameyadipika, Vallabha's Tattvadipika and Nilakantha's Nilakanthi, by Dundhiraja Sastri. Bombay 1918

379.12.27 Edited by Krsnanada Mahodaya. Calcutta 1918-19

379.12.28 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 192l, 1922

379.12.29 Edited by Manahsukharana Suryarama Tripathi. Bombay 1926

379.12.30 Book XI edited, with Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini, by Sisirkumar Maitra and translated by Annie Besant. Calcuta 1929

379.12.31 Edited by D.V.Gokhale. POS 1, 1931, 1950

379.12.32 B.N.Krishnamurti Sarma, "Samkara's authorship of the Gitabhasya", ABORI 14, 1932, 39-60

379.12.33 R.B.A.Ray, Yogaksema. BSOAS 7, 1933-35, 133-136

379.12.34 Edited, with Ramanuja's Gitabhasya and Sridhara Svamin's Subodhini. Bombay 1936

379.12.35 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Ramanuja's Gitabhasya, Vedanta Desika's Tatparyacandra, Madhva's Gitabhasya, Jayatirtha's Prameyadipika, Vedanta Desika's Brahmanandagiri, Vallabha's Tattvadipika, Nilakantha's Nilakanthi and Yamuna's Gitarthasamgraha with Vedanta Desika's Raksa thereon, by Dundhiraja Sastri. Bombay 1938

379.12.36 T.G.Mainkar, "Samkara and the moksa passages in the Bhagavadgita", PKCV 101-105

379.12.37 P.M.Modi, "Philosophical ideas of the Gita, with special reference to Samkara's interpretation", GRSJ 12, 1950, 123-140

379.12.38 P.M.Modi, "Verses of the Gita in which Samkaracarya finds samnyasa, but which do not mention it", PAIOC 16, Summaries 1951, 229-230

379.12.39 S.S.Bhawe, "How far is Samkara right in holding that the Bhagavadgita teaches jnana as the means to release?", JIB 1.1, 1952, 73-92

379.12.40 Edited in SSG 8

379.12.41 Edited by P.M.Modi in The Bhagavadgita: A Fresh Approach. Baroda 1955

379.12.42 T.G.Mainkar, The Gita Bhasya Prakasa. 1955

379.12.43 R.Karmarkar, "Did Samkaracharya write a bhasya on the Bhagavadgita?", ABORI 39, 1958, 365-371

379.12.44 W.R.Antarkar, "Sri Samkaracarya's authorship of the Gita Bhasya", OT 6.2, 1962, 1-26

379.12.45 M.D.Paradkar, "Similes in Samkara's Bhasya on the Gita", HDVCV 91-107

379.12.46 Edited and translated with commentary by Chinmayananda, Madras 1967

379.12.47 Churamani Datta, "Brahman and isvara in Samkara's Gita Bhasya", Bh 12-14, 1968-71, 117-133

379.12.48 Edited by Harikrishnadas Goenka. Gorakhpur 1969

379.12.49 T.G.Mainkar, A Comparative Study of the Commentaries on the Bhagavadgita. Second edition. Delhi 1969

379.12.50 Anam Charan Swami, "Authenticity of the Bhagavadgitabhasya attributed to Samkaracarya", MO 2.1, 1969, 32-38

379.12.51 A.G.Krishna Warrier, "Sri Samkara on the Bhagavad-Gita", Gitasamiksa 1-11

379.12.52 Arvind Sharma, "A comment on Samkara's commentary on Bhagavadgita 18.1", JBRS 58, 1972, 171-182. Also PURB 5.1, 1974, 53-64. Also IIJ 17, 1975, 183-194. Reprinted in his Textual Studies in Hinduism (New Delhi 1980), 103-120

379.12.53 V.Panoly, Gita in Sankara's Own Words. Chapters 1-3, Calicut 1975

379.12.54 S.S.Deshpande, "A comparative and critical study of Samkaracharya's and Ramanujacharya's interpretations of karmayoga in the Bhagavadgita", JUB 25-26, 1976-77, 77-82

379.12.55 Selections translated in HTR 196-199

379.12.55.1 Shirley Anne McMurtry, Doctrines and Methods Used by Samkara and Ramanuja to Elucidate the Relation between Self-Knowledge and Dharma with special reference to their Commentaries on the Bhagavadgita. Ph.D.Thesis, McMaster University 1977

379.12.56 C. Kuppuswamy, Samkara and Aurobindo on the Bhagavadgita: a Critical Examination. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Madras 1980

379.12.57 Anon., "Acarya Samkara through his Gita-commentary", PB 83, 1978: 283, 322

379.12.58 Arvind Sharma, "A note on the use of the word amsa for Krsna's incarnation in Samkara's Gitabhasya", TVOS 6, 1981, 172-175

379.12.59 A.G.Krishna Warrier, "Sri Samkara's introduction to his commentary on the Gita", VK 68, 1981, 375-377

379.12.60 A.G.Krishna Warrier, "On Samkara's commentary on theBhagavadgita", VK 70, 1983, 154-158

379.12.61 Edited and translated by A.G.Krishna Warrier. Madras 1983

379.12.62 G.V.Saroja, Tilak and Samkara on the Gita. New Delhi 1985

379.12.63 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 294-308

379.12.64 Anima Sen Gupta, "Devotion as expounded by Samkara in his commentary on the Bhagavad Gita", VK 71, 1984, 180-183

379.12.64.0 Edited and translated by Gambhirananda. Calcutta 1984, 1991

379.12.64.1 Roger Marcaurella, "Samkara's hermeneutics of renunciationin the Gita", NEB 127-137

379.12.64.2 Edited by Gajanana Sambhu Sadhale. Three volumes. Parimal Sanskrit Series 17, Delhi 1985

379.12.65 Francis X. D'Sa, Word-Index to Samkara's Gitabhasya. Pune 1985; Chambersburg, Pa. 1989

379.12.66 Phani Mahanthi, The Concept of Purusa and Purusottama in the Commentary of Samkara on the Prasthanatrayi. Delhi 1986

379.12.66.1 Tryambakeswarananda, "Bhagavatpada's commentary on the Gita--some unique features", TL 10.1, 1987, 43-46

379.12.67 Translated by C.V.Ramachandra Aiyar. Bombay 1988

379.12.68 Chapters 1-8 edited and translated in V. Panoli, Gita in Samkara's Own Words. Calicut 1989

379.12.68.1 Translated into German by Jurgen Dunnabier and Gerhard Riemann. Munich 1989

379.12.68.2 Translated by Svarupananda. Calcutta 1989

379.12.69 Iwao Shima, "Samkara's interpretation of the Bhagavadgita, JIBSt 39.1, 1990, 5-10

379.12.70 M.V.B.S.Sarma, "Samkara on Gita". TL 15.4, 1993, 33-35

379.12.70.1 Trevor Leggett, Realization of the Supreme Self. The Bhagavad Gita Yoga-s. London 1995

379.12.70.2 Trevor Leggett, A Trainiong Manual for Spiritual Practice: a New Revelation of the Bhagavad Gita Yogas: Based on Samkara's Commentary. New York 1995, 1999

379.12.71 R. Naga Swamy, "The sixty-four yoginis and bhuta worship as mentioned by Samkara in his commentary on the Bhagavadgita", BIS 9-10, 1996, 237-246

379.12.73 Edited with Vidyananda Giri's Lalita by Svarnalala Tuli and Umesananda Sastri. Hrsikesh 1998

379.12.75 Viswanath Prasad Varma, "Samkaracarya and the Gita, FacIC 152-176

379.12.78 Nancy Ann Nayar, "Sraddha in the Bhagavadgita: the divergent perspective of two classical and two modern commentaries", JVaisS 9.2, 2001, 195-208

379.12.85 T.S.Rukmani, "The problematic of karma and karmajnanasamuccaya in the Bhagavadgitabhasya of Samkaracarya", Parampara 191-211

379.12.88 Peter Stephen, Erlosung in Spannungsfeld von aktivem Leben und Entsagung: Ein Studie zu Samkara;s Exegese der Bhagavadgita. Aachen 2002

379.12.92 S. Sankaranarayanan, "Chronology of the Prasthanatrayi–light from the Bhagavadgitabhasya of Samkara", TVOS 29, 2004, 78-93


       13.Bhajagovinda

379.13.1 Edited by A. V. Suryanarayana. Hyderabad 1975

379.13.1.1 Edited by Purusottamatirtha. Palikatta 1964

379.13.1.2 Translated by R. N. Westbrook Aingar and Jessie Duncan as A Lyric of Life and a Psalm of the Soul.. Bombay 1965

379.13.1.3 Edited by Chinmayananda and translated by Saradapriyananda. Madras 1967; Bombay 1979

379.13.1.4 Edited by Ravindra Kelekara. Gaya 1973

379.13.1.5 Edited and translated by Gurudasananda. Tanjore 1974

379.13.2 Saradapriyananda, "Bhaja Govindam", STM 94-99

379.13.3 Edited and translated in TVOS, 39-88

379.13.3.1 Edited and translated by Kasturilala Kharabande. New Delhi 1990

379.13.3.2 Edited by Maharapuram Nataranjan Krishnamani. New Delhi 1996

379.13.4 Edited with commentary by S. Geethamuni Amma and S. Sobhanna, and translated by R. Bindu. Delhi 1998

379.13.6 Edited and translated by Suresh Parashottamdas Dalal. Mumbai 2000

379.13.9 Peter Stephen, Erlösung im Spannungsfeld von aktiven Leben und Entsagung. Eine Studie zu Samkaras Exegesis des Bhagavadgita. Aachen 2002

379.13.12 Edited and translatdd by Bhimasena Rao Murty. Berhampur 2004

379.13.15 Edited and translated by Chandaka as Follow Your Heart. Mimbai 2008


       14.Brahmajnanavalimala (Advaita)

379.14.1 Edited in WSS

379.14.2 Edited in MWS

379.14.3 Edited in SG

379.14.4 Edited and translated by N. Gangadharan. TVOS 21.1, 1996, 60-66

379.14.6 Kermit Fisher Rozen, The Garland Which Consists of a Series of Brahman-Knowledges:a translation of the Brahmajinmavimala with a commentary based on Samkara' Advaita Vedanta. B. A. Thesis, Reed College, Portland, Oregon 1990

379.14.8 Edited by Niscalalanda Sarasvati. Puri 2009


       15.Brahmanucintana or Atmacintana (Advaita) (NCat II, 45)

379.15.1 Edited in WSS

379.15.2 Edited Poona 1917

379.15.3 Edited in MWS

379.15.4 Edited in SG

379.15.5 Edited in SSG 11, 412-415

379.15.6 Edited by Narayananda Tirtha. Varanasi 1976


       16.Bhasya on Badarayana's Brahmasutras

See a23.1:106,182,192,226,295; 369.4.5; 379.65.13. b23.1:103-104,229.1, 272, 273.2, 288. e23.1:1-3,5,7,9,13,17,20,21,23,25,31,33,34, 46,47,55,56,66,69,75,78,87,88,92,93,98,105,114,115,119,120,126, 130,141,144,149,150,152,152.1, 161,163,164,168,171,172,179,202, 206,210,212,214,215,224,236,239,240,255,263,266,267,280. e174.6.11; 379.4.23. et23.1:138,143,176,180,211. t23.1:12,24,139,183,190,191,207,233. CIPAR

379.16.1 A.Bruining, "Samkaracarya's commenta of de opohorismen van den Vedanten", Bijdragen totode taal-, land- en volken-kunde van Nederlandisch-Indie 3 reeks 8, 1873; 10, 1875; 4 reeks 2, 1878

379.16.2 K.T.Telang, "Gleanings from the Sariraka Bhasya of Samkaracarya", JASBo 18, 1894, 1 ff.

379.16.3 T.R.Amalnerkar, "Dr. G. Thibaut on the Sankarabhasya", JASBo 20, 1897-1900, 49-77

379.16.4 Paul Deussen, Das System des Vedanta. Second edition Leipzig 1906. Translated into English by Charles Johnston as The System of the Vedanta, Chicago 1912; New York 1973

379.16.5 Introductory section edited in Telugu characters and translated by Susurla Gopalasastry. Amalapuram 1918

379.16.6 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Samkara's reference to a Buddhist passage", IHQ 9, 1933, 981

379.16.6.5 K. S. Ramaswami Sastri, The Science of the Soul. 1935

379.16.7 N. Aiyasvami Sastri, "Sarvastivada in Samkara's Bhasya", JOR 11, 1937, 27-36

379.16.8 Introductory section translated into French by Olivier Lacombe. RT 43.1, 116-123

379.16.9 W.T.Saskurikar, Samkara on Brahmasutra 1.1 Only--A Critical Study. Poona 1946

379.16.10 Srinivas Dixit, "Argumentative faults in Samkara's commentary on the Brahma-Sutras", JUP 1, 1953, 71-73

379.16.11 Sri Samkaracarya (Dr. Kurtakoti), "Samkara's interpretation of the Brahmasutras", OT 2, 1956, 1-60

379.16.12 P.M.Modi, "Sri Samkaracarya's Catuh-sutribhasya on the Brahmasutras", GRSJ 19, 1957, 15-25

379.16.13 Selections translated in SIT

379.16.14 M. D. Paradkar, "Nyayas in Samkarabhasya on the Brahmasutras", JUBo 27, 1958, 155-167

379.16.15 T. K. Gopalaswamy Ayyangar, "Buddhism as interpreted in the Brahmasutras by Samkaracharya", SVUOJ 4.1-2, 1961, 75-86

379.16.16 Hajime Nakamura, "Conflict between traditionalism and rationalism: a problem with Samkara", PEW 12, 1962, 153-161

379.16.17 Daniel H.H. Ingalls, "Atmanatman", Jnanamuktavali 101-110

379.16.18 V. Anjaneya Sarma, "The concept of adhyasa in Samkara's commentary on the Brahmasutra", SVUOJ 6, 1963, 34-40. Summarized in CIDO 26, Summaries 1964, 215

379.16.19 P. K. Sundaram, "The conception of soul in Samkara's Sutrabhasya", VK 52, 1965-66, 46-50

379.16.20 A. S. Narayana Pillai, "The theory of maya as a theory of reality", IPA 2, 1966, 215-219

379.16.20.5 Edited and translated by Balkoba Bhave. three volumes. Paranara 1965

379.16.21 Rasvihary Das, Introduction to Samkara. Calcutta 1968

379.16.22 Narasimha Bhatta, "The Brahma-Sutra-Sankara-Bhasya--its uniqueness", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 63-74

379.16.22.5 Luigi Heilmann, "Una pagine di filosofia del Brahmasutrabhasya di Samkara", in Linguistic Studies presented to Andre Martinet on the occasion ofo his 60th Birthday. Part Two New York 1970, 233-241

379.16.23 Shoren Ihara, "A revised index to the Brahmasutra-Sankarabhasya (1 Adhyaya, 1 Pada)", ActInd 1, 1970, 9-54

379.16.23.5 V. Venkatachalam, "Two untraced citations in the Brahmasutrabhasya of Samkara", JOR 40-41, 1980-72, 101-104

379.16.24 Arthur L. Herman, "Indian theodicy: Samkara and Ramanuja on Brahmasutra II.1.32-36", PEW 21, 1971, 265-282

379.16.25 P. K. Sundaram et al., comp., Word Index to the Brahmasutrabhasya of Sankara. MUPS 17. Two volumes, 1971, 1973

379.16.26 M.P.Maratha, Critical Examination of the Philosophy of Samkara, with special reference to the Brahmasutrabhasya. Ph.D.Thesis, Poona University 1974

379.16.27 Mario Piantelli, "Kramamukti. A few notes", ITaur 2, 1974, 259-278

379.16.28 S.R.Mukherji, "A note on Samkara's Adhyasa Bhasya", PAOPA 5, 1975, 56-62

379.16.29 Louis Thomas O'Neil, Maya in Samkara with reference to Samkara's Bhasya on the Brahmasutra from a Phenomenological Viewpoint. Ph.D.Thesis, McMaster University 1975

379.16.30 Frank Podgorski, "Samkara's critique of Samkhyan causality in the Brahmasutrabhasya", PEW 25, 1975, 49-58

379.16.31 Selections translated in HTR 199-200

379.16.32 Gerhard Oberhammer, "An unknown source in Samkara's refutation of the Pancaratra", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 221-233

379.16.33 Bensidhar Bhatt, "Interpretation of some crucial problems of Samkara's Adhyasa-Bhasya", JIP 5, 1978, 337-354

379.16.34 Mario Piantelli, "Samkara's treatment of sabdaprabhavatva in Brahmasutrabhasya l.3.28 and the problem of a nexus between the so-called sabdabrahman and sphota. Some considerations", ITaur 6,1978, 241-250

379.16.35 Vireswarananda, "Sri Bhagavatpada's Adhyasa Bhasya (superimposition)", Dilip 6.3, 1980, 23-29

379.16.36 Shlomo Biderman, "A constitutive God--an Indian suggestion", PEW 32, 1982, 425-438

379.16.37 Arvind Sharma, "Samkara's attitude to scriptural authority as revealed by his gloss on Brahmasutra I.1.3", JIP 10, 1982, 179-186

379.16.38 S.S.Raghavachar, "Samkara on the Brahmasutra", PB 87, 1982, 506-511

379.16.39 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 119-180

379.16.40 K. Krishna Josi, "Mulavidya according to Bhasya and Varttika", TL 6.2, 1983, 20-28

379.16.40.1 Edited, with Vacaspati Misra's Bhamati and Allalasuri's Tika, by V.S.V.Guruswamy Sastri. Madrapuri 1984

379.16.41 Prabhakar Apte, "Interpretation of Pancaratradhikarana of Brahmasutra by Samkara vis-a-vis temple-oriented religion of the Agamas", POSankara 340-345

379.16.42 Mukund Lalji Wedekar, "Identification of some smrti citations from the Brahmasutra-Samkarabhasya", ABORI 69, 1989, 276-267. Also AsIS 215-219

379.16.42.1 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Samkara in the Brahmasutrabhasya", BPBS 479-514

379.16.43 T.S.Rukmani, "Samkara's views on yoga in the Brahmasutrabhasya in the light of the authorship of the Yogasutrabhasya-Vivarana", JIP 21, 1993, 395-404

379.16.44 B. Vimalabhai, "An account of the texts quoted by Sri Samkara in his Brahmasutrabhasya", VIJ 31, 1993-94, 149-158

379.16.45 Natalia Isayeva, "Samkara's commentary on the Brahmasutras", HIndPh 107-118

379.16.46 Vijay Pandya, "Refutation of the Jaina Darsana by Samkaracarya with special reference to syadvada in the Brahmasutra Samkarabhasya 2.2", Nirgrantha 2, 1996, 9-13

379.16.47 K. Jayanmal, A Glossary of Technical Terms in the Commentaries of Samkara, Ramanuja and Madhva on the Brahma-Sutras. Part One. New Delhi 1997

379.16.48 Chapter 16 translated by Klaus K. Klostermaier. ALB 61, 1997, 149-253

379.16.49 S. M. Srinivasa Chari, The Philosophy of the Vedantasutra: a Study Based on the Evaluation of the Commentaries of Samkara, Ramanuja and Madhva. New Delhi 1998

379.16.51 Francis X. Clooney, "Samkara's theological realislm: the meaning and usefulness of gods (devata) in Uttaramimamsasutrabhasya", NPAV 30-50

379.16.53 Kumudini, Doctrines of Samkarabhasya and Bhaskarabhasya on Brahmasutras. Delhi 2001

379.16.55 Lalita Sengupta, "Acceptance of mundan world in Samkarabhasya",Anviksa 24, 2003, 46-53

379.16.56 Viktoria Lysenko, "Samkara, critique du Vaisesika: une lecture de Brahmasutrabhasya (II.2.11-17)", AS 59, 2005, 533-580


        17.Bhasya on the Brhadaranyaka Upanisad (Advaita)

See e317.1:8,13. e379.4.23

379.17.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, and translated by E.Roer. BI 2, 1849-56, 1908. Reprinted Osnabruck 1980

379.17.2 Edited in Telugu characters, with Samkara's Bhasyas on Chandogya and Taitiriya Upanisads, Anandagiri's Tikas on all three Upanisads, and Rangaramanuja's commentaries on Brhadaranyaka, Chandogya, Isa, Katha, Kena, Mandukya, Mundaka, Prasna, Svetasvatara and Taittiriya Upanisads. Madras 1869

379.17.3 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1875

379.17.4 Edited Banaras 1884

379.17.5 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, by K. S. Agase. ASS 15, 1891, 1902, 1915, 1927, 1982

379.17.5.1 Edited by Sivasamkara Sarma. Rohtak 1911, 1983

379.17.6 Translated by Mysore Hiriyanna. Srirangam 1919

379.17.7 Edited by Hari Raghunath Bhagavat.WSS 2, 1928

379.17.7.5 Translated by Madhavananda. Almora 1931, 1941, 1950, 1951. Sections reprinted in SBAV 204-213; also Calcutta 1965

379.17.8 Kathe Marschner, Zur Verfasserfrage des dem Samkaracarya zugeschriebenen Brhadaranyakopanisad-Bhasya. Berlin Inaugural Dissertation, Breslau 1933

379.17.9 II.1.20 commented on by Madhavananda. PB 38, 1933: 285,333

379.17.10 S. Kuppuswami Sastri, "Samkara and the Brhadaranyakopanisad", PB 39, 1934, 374-378

379.17.10.1 Edited with Anandagiri's Tika by Ramacandra Sastri Pansikar. Kasi 1942

379.17.12 N. K. Brahma, "Studies in the Brhadaranyaka Upanisad", PB 56, 1951: 141, 174, 221, 261, 296, 342, 377

379.17.13 Edited in SSG 6

379.17.14 Edited Gorakhpur 1955

379.17.15 Introduction to Book II edited and translated, with the Sambandhavarttika section of Suresvara's Varttika, by T.M.P.Mahadevan. Madras 1958

379.17.16 Wilhelm Rau, "Bemerkungen zu Sankaras Brhadaranyakopanisad-bhasya", Paideua 7, 1960, 293-299

379.17.17 Edited by S. Kuppuswami Sastri. Fourth edition. Calcutta 1965

379.17.18 Edited Gorakhpur 1968

379.17.19 Heidrun Bruckner, Zum Beweisfehren Samkaras. Eine Untersüchung der Form und Funktion von Drstantas im Brhadaranyakopanisadbhasya und im Chandogyopanisadbhasya des Samkara Bhagavatpada. Berlin 1979

379.17.20 Mario Piantelli, "The conception of the two drstis in Samkara's Brhadaranyakopanisadbhasya 1.4.10", ITaur 8-9, 1980-81, 313-332

379.17.20.0 Heidrun Bruckner, "Samkara's use of the term akhyayika in his Brhadaranyakopanisadbhasya", Pwsc (?) 5, 1989, 100-109

379.17.20.1 Mario Piantelli, "Some observations concerning the two drstis in Sri Samkara's Brhadaranyakopanisadbhasya I.4.10 and the role of atman in human experience as a criterion of individuation", BhV 41.1-2, 1981, 16-39

379.17.20.2 Edited by S.Venkataramana Aiyar and translated by K.N.Chatterjee. Varanasi 1981

379.17.21 Heidrun Bruckner, "Revelation and argumentation--some references to the relation of sruti and tarka in Samkara's Brhadaranyakopanisad-bhasya", IATW 209-220

379.17.22 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 190-204

379.17.23 Mahesananda Giri, Introduction to Brhadaranyaka Bhasya. Advaita-Grantha Ratna Manjusa 29. Varanasi 1986

379.17.24 Edited by S.Subrahmanya Sastri. Two volumes. Mt. Abu, 1982-1990

379.17.25 Jacqueline Suthren Hirst, "Strategies of interpretation: Samkara's commentary on Brhadaranyakopanisad", JAOS 116, 1996, 58-76


       18.Bhasya on Chandogya Upanisad (NCat VII, 117-118)

See b379.17.2. e317.1:8,13,15. e379.4.23

379.18.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, by E.Roer. BI 3, 1850, 1873

379.18.2 Edited and translated by Rajendralal Mitra. Two volumes. Calcutta 186l-62. Extracts from this published in BI 24, 1862

379.18.3 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1873

379.18.4 Edited by Mahesacandra Pala. Calcutta 1885

379.18.5 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, by K.S.Agase. ASS 14, 1890, 1983

379.18.6 Edited and translated by S.Sitarama Sastri. BV 1897-98. Sections reprinted in BV 9, 1974, 100-118

379.18.7 Translated by Ganganatha Jha. Madras 1899, 1923; POS 78, 1942

379.18.8 Extracts from commentaries on the Chandogya by Samkara, Madhva, Raghavendra, Rangaramanuja, and Vedesatirtha, edited by Haligeri Krishna Rau. Mangalore 1909

379.18.9 Edited in WSS

379.18.10 Edited with Anandagiri's Tippana. Banaras 1914

379.18.11 Edited with Anandagiri's Tippana by Durgacarana Sastri. Calcutta 1914-15

379.18.12 Edited. Bombay 1915

379.18.13 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1918

379.18.14 Edited in Sastrapracaragranthamala (Calcutta 1924-25)

379.18.15 Edited in WS

379.18.16 Edited in SSG 5

379.18.17 Edited in Works of Samkara (Delhi 1964) I, 113-334

379.18.18 Edited Gorakhpur 1966

379.18.19 Edited by T.N.N.Bhattatirippata. Trivandrum 1981

379.18.20 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 254-269

379.18.22 Translated by Som Raj Gupta in The Word Speaks to the Faustian Man Volume 4, 2001

379.18.25 Madhavi Kolhatkar, "A note on Samkara's commentary on Chandogya Upanisad 2.13.1:, JOI 54, 2004-2005, 17-18

379.18.30 D. Rauch, "Aham aham asmiti: self-consciousness and identity in the

eighth chapter of the Chandogya Upanisad vs. Samkara's Bhasya", JIP 36.1, 2008, 319-333


       19.Daksinamurtistotra or -astaka (Advaita) (NCat VIII, 298-300)

See et379.7.18

379.19.1 Edited in PSK

379.19.2 Edited in Telugu characters, with Svamisastri's Vyakhya, by Colavendan Svami. Madras 1873

379.19.3 Edited in Tamil characters, with Samkara's Manisapancaka, Sadasiva Brahmendra's Advaitarasamanjari and Rama Kavi's Advaitanubhava, by A.R.Svami. Madras 1888

379.19.4 Edited in BSR

379.19.5 Edited in VSS

379.19.6 Edited, with Suresvara's Manasollasa, Svayamprakasa's Tattvasudha, Ramatirtha's Vrttantavilasa, by A.Mahadeva Sastri and K.Rangacharya. MOLP 6, 1895

379.19.7 Edited and translated, with Suresvara's Manasollasa and Pranavavarttika, by A.Mahadeva Sastri in The Vedanta Doctrine of Sri Samkaracarya. Madras 1899, 1920, 1978

379.19.7.1 Malur Srinivasa Rau, The Outlines of Vedanta, based on Sri Samkara's Dakshinamurthy Stotra. Bangalore 1900, 1975

379.19.8 Edited in Malayalam characters, with Svayamprakasa's Tattvasudha, by Samkarananda. Palamkotta 1904

379.19.9 Edited, with Suresvara's Manasollasa, by T.Sundararaja Sarma in Vedantabodhini (Madras) 4, 1908-10

379.19.10 Edited by Govinda Ratha. Cuttack 1911

379.19.11 Edited in BSM

379.19.12 Edited in WSS

379.19.13 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 1916

379.19.14 Edited in MWS

379.19.15 Edited in Telugu characters by Malladi Nagabhusana in his Gurulila (Tenali 1924)

379.19.16 Edited, with Svayamprakasa's Tattvasudha in Vedantasara (1924)

379.19.17 Edited in Altar Flowers

379.19.18 Translated by Ernest Wood, The Glorious Presence. London 1952

379.19.18.5 Edited with Suresvara's Manasollasa by T. Cuntararaja Carma. Madras 1965

379.19.19 Edited and translated, with a portion of Suresvara's Manasollasa, by T. M. P. Mahadevan. Madras 1956. Portions of translation reprinted MP 5, 1968, 53-56

379.19.20 Edited in SSG 11, 85-94, 257-262

379.19.21 Edited with Suresvara's Manasollasa by Mahesananda Giri. Agra 1963

379.19.21.5 C. Ramaswami Aiyar and Sundararaja Sarma, Report of the proceedings of the release function of Sri Daksinamurti Stotra of Sri Samkara and Manasollasa of Sri Suresvarananda with rendering of Tamil commentary by Sri Sundararaja Sarma. Madras 1965

379.19.22 R.Satyanarayana, "Sri Daksinamurti: symbolic synthesis of Advaita", BV 4, 1969, 82-95

379.19.23 Edited in HS

379.19.24 Edited in Kannada script with Suresvara's Manasollasa by Saccidanandendra Sarasvati. Holenarsipur 1972

379.19.25 Edited, with Svayamprakasa's Tattvasudha and Suresvara's Manasollasa with Ramatirtha's commentary, and Samkara's Pancikarana with Suresvara's Varttika, by E. E. Venkatanathacarya. Two volumes. Mysore 1972

379.19.26 Mukhyananda, "Acharya Shamkara and the concept of Dakshinamurti", PB 83, 1978, 406-4l0

379.19.26.5 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Dasasloki, by Gambhirananda. Madras 1980

379.19.27 Edited and translated by P. Thirugnanasambandham. TVOS 6, 1981, 59-76

379.19.28 Edited in Telugu script, with editor's commentary, by Mutya Venkataramana Murti. Visakhapatnam 1982

379.19.29 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 317-318

379.19.30 D. S. Subbaramaiya,. "Sri Dakshinamurti Stotram: a study based on the commentaries Manasollasa and Tattvasudha", TL 5.6, 1983, 25-32; 6.1; 1983, 39-46; 6.2, 1983, 45-52; 6.4, 1983, 41-48; 6.5, 1983, 41-48; 7.4-6, 1984-85, 21-44. Reprinted Srngeri 1988, 1990

379.19.31 Edited and translated by S. Venkataramana in Siddhanta Dipika (Madras) 4.10, 217-218

379.19.32 M. Srinivasa Rau, The Outlines of Vedanta based on Sri Samkara's Daksinamurti Stotra. Bangalore n.d.

379.19.32.5 Carlos Perez Coffie, Das Sankara zugeschreibenen Daksinamurtistotra und des Problem seiner echtitheit. Dissertation Hamburg 1987

379.19.33 Translated into German in Ralph M. Steinmann, "Das Daksinamurtistotram", AS 42, 1988, 175-210

379.19.34 Edited and translated with Suresvara's Manasollasa by Harshananda. Bangalore 1992

379.19.35 Translated, with a translation of Samkara's Manisapancaka, in P. Sankaranarayana, What is Advaita?. Third edition, Mumbai 1999

379.19.38 Edited and translated with Svayamprakasa Yati's Haritattvamuktavali by N. Veezhinathan as In Adoration of the Self. Chennai 2001

379.19.40 Edited with Tattvaprakasika by Tattvavidanananda Sarasvati. New Delhi 2002


       20.Dasasloki (Advaita) (NCat VIII, 357)

See e379.7:13, 32.2. et379.7:18; 379.19.26.5.

379.20.1 Edited, with editor's Sara, by Taranatha Tarkavacaspati. Calcutta 1865

379.20.2 Edited with editor's Sarvasudhakara by Sadananda Svamin. 1865

379.20.3 Edited in PSK

379.20.4 Edited in Upadesavidhi (1878)

379.20.5 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu, by Amaresvarananda.  Bombay 1883

379.20.6 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu, by Dvivedi Harinatha Manisini. Banaras 1887-1888

379.20.7 Edited in BSR

379.20.8 Edited in VSS

379.20.9 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu and Brahmananda Sarasvati's Nyayaratnavali, by Harihara Sastri. AManjS 3, 1893

379.20.9.5 Edited by A. M. Sastri and K. Rangacarya. MOLP 20, 1899

379.20.10 Edited in Tamil characters, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu, by V.S.R.Sastri, G.V.Chetti and M.S.Mudaliyar. Madras 1906

379.20.11 Edited in WSS

379.20.12 Edited by Sivananda Subrahmanya. Mysore 1910

379.20.13 Edited in BSM

379.20.14 Edited in ADR

379.20.15 Edited in MWS

379.20.16 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu and Brahmananda Sarasvati's Nyayaratnavali, by Aksayakumar Sastri in SG

379.20.17 Edited, with Brahmananda Sarasvati's Nyayaratnavali, Narayana Tirtha's Laghuvyakhya and Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu, by T.S.Vedantacharya. KSS 65, 1928, 1989

379.20.18 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu and editor's commentary, by V.S.Abhyankar. GOSBORI A2, 1928, 1962

379.20.19 Translated, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu, by P.M.Modi. Baroda 1929; Allahabad 1985

379.20.20 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu, Narayana Tirtha's Laghuvyakhya and Purusottama Sarasvati's Sandipana, by M.S. Bakre. Bombay 1929; Varanasi 1986

379.20.20.1 Edited by Srikrsna Panta. AG 3, Banaras 1932; Delhi 1986

379.20.21 Edited and translated, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu and edition of Purusottama Sarasvati 's Sandipa, by P.C.Divanji. GOS 64, 1933

379.20.22 Edited in SSG 11, 82-84, 386

379.20.23 Edited and translated by T.M.P.Mahadevan and N.Veezhinathan. Madras 1965. Reprinted TVOS 1, 1976,48-74. Portions reprintedTVOS 29, 2004, 111-118; 30.1, 2005, 93-101; 30.2, 2005, 103-109

379.20.24 Edited, with Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu and Brahmananda Sarasvati's Nyayaratnavali, by S.Subrahmanya Sastri. Mt. Abu 1978

379.20.25 Translated by Gambhirananda. VK 66, 1979, 122-124

379.20.26 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 333-334

379.20.27 Edited with an edition and translation of Madhusudana Sarasvati's Siddhantabindu by K.N.Subramanian. Varanasi 1989


       21.Dhanyastaka (Advaita)

See e379.3.8

379.21.1 Edited in BSR

379.21.2 Edited in BSM

379.21.3 Edited by Hiralala Jadavaraya in Samkaracarya-dvadasaratna (1912)

379.21.4 Edited in WSS

379.21.5 Edited in BN

379.21.6 Edited by Aksayakumar Sastri in SG

379.21.7 Edited and translated by K.Pisharoti. PB 57, 1952, 425-428

379.21.8 Edited in SSG 11, 370

379.21.9 Edited and translated by T.V.Savithri, TVOS 6, 1981, 37-44


       22.Ekasloki (Advaita)(NCat III, 54)

379.22.1 Edited in WSS

379.22.2 Edited in SG

379.22.3 Edited, with Svayamprakasa Yogi's Tattvadipana, by S.S.Vedantachari. BGOMLM 1, 1948, 57-66

379.22.4 Edited in SSG 11, 370

379.22.5 Edited and translated by P.K.Sundaram. VK 53, 1966-67, 354-357


       23.Bhasya on Mandukya Upanisad and Gaudapada's Mandukyakarikas

See a317.1.46. d317.1.84. e317.1:1,2,4,8,13,15-17,25,26,32,73, 74.1,95; 379.27.1. et317.1.85.1. et379.4:18,21,23; 379.8.30. t317.1.36

379.23.1 T.R.Chintamani, "Samkara, the commentator on the Mandukyakarikas", PAIOC 3, 1924, 419-426

379.23.2 R.D.Karmarkar, "Was Samkara the author of the commentary on Gaudapada Karikas generally attributed to him?", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 125-126

379.23.3 Edited in SSG 4, 59-184

379.23.4 Edited by Kumudranjan Ray, Calcutta 1965

379.23.5 Portions edited and translated in RS

379.23.6 Paul Hacker, "Notes on the Mandukyopanisad and Samkara's Agamasastravivarana" in India Major (Congratulatory Volume presented to J. Gonda). Leiden 1972, 115-132

379.23.7 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 308-317

379.23.8.Translated,with Samkara's Mundakopanisadbhasya, by Som Raj Gupta in The Word Speaks to the Faustian Man, Volume 2, Delhi 1995

379.23.8.5 J.K. Barthakur, "A Journey Towards the Essence of the Mandukya Upanishad for a Theory of Time", IPQ 25.1, 1998, 15-41.

379.23.9 J. K. Barthakur, Time. New Delhi 1999

     

        24.Gurvastaka (Advaita) (NCat VI, 87)

379.24.1 Edited in BSR

379.24.2 Edited in WSS

379.24.3 Edited in BSM

379.24.4 Edited by Jansingh Govindsingh in Gurugita (Arvi 1918)

379.24.5 Edited in SG

379.24.6 Edited in SSG 11, 275-277

379.24.7 Edited and translated, with Totaka's Totakastaka by T.M.P.Mahadevan in Homage to Samkara (Madras 1959)

379.24.8 Edited in HS


       25.Haristuti or Harimidestotra

379.25.0 Edited by Badrinatha Bhattarci. Laliapura, Nepal 1972

379.25.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's commentary, by T.H.Viswanathan. ALB 35, 1971, 273-314

379.25.2 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, "The Hari Stuti of Sri Samkaracarya", VK 57, 1970-71, 422-427

379.25.4 Edited by Alladi Mahadeva Sastri and Kassturi Rangacarya. MOLP 20, 1999

379.25.6 Edited and translated, with Svayamaprakasayati's Haritattvamuktavali, by N. Veezhinathan as The Adoratio of the Self. Chennai 2001


       26.Hastamalakiya Bhasya or Vedantasiddhantadipika on verses ascribed to Hastamalaka--or the verses themselves?

See t379.8.18

379.26.1 Verses edited and translated by E.B.Cowell, "The Hastamalaka", IA 9, 1880, 25-27

379.26.2 Edited by Kailasacandra Simha. Calcutta 1885

379.26.3 Edited, with Sadananda's Vedantasara, Nrsimhasrama's Subodhini and Ramatirtha's Vidvanmanoranjini, by Narayanacandra Kaviratna and Navacandra Siromani. Calcutta 1886

379.26.3.5 Edited by Nandalal Dhole. Calcutta 1900

379.26.4 Edited in WSS

379.26.5 Edited in BN

379.26.6 Edited in VS

379.26.7 M.K.V.Iyer, "Hastamalakiyam", PB 65, 1960, 142-146

379.26.8 B.H.Kapadia, "A note on Hastamalakasloka", VK 48, 196l-62, 24-25

379.26.9 Edited in SSG 9, 375-384

379.26.10 R.Krishnaswami Aiyar, "Hastamalakiyam Bhasyam", Srngeri Souvenir, Madras 1965, 68-70

379.26.10.5 Edited and translated by P. Krishnamurti. Hyderabad 1967

379.26.11 Translated by T.M.P.Mahadevan. MP 5, 1968, 53-56

379.26.12 S. Ramaswamy, "The theme of self in modern writings in English in the light of Adi Samkaracharya's Hastamalakiyam", TL 8.3, 1985, 38-46


       27.Bhasya on Isa(vasya) Upanisad (Advaita) (NCat II, 268-269)

See e317.1:8,13,15,16; 369.7.36. e379.4:4,23. et379.4.18

379.27.1 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasyas on Katha, Kena, Mundaka and Prasna Upanisads and the Mandukyakarikas, and on Anandagiri's glosses on all, by E.Roer. BI 7, 1850

379.27.2 Edited in Telugu characters, with Anandagiri's Tika and Rangaramanuja's Bhasya, by Srinivasacarya. Madras 1868

379.27.3 Edited with Anandagiri's Tika. Calcutta 1873

379.27.4 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasyas on Katha, Kena, Mundaka and Prasna Upanisads and the Mandukyakarikas, with Anandagiri's glosses on all, by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1873

379.27.5 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, Samkarananda's Dipika, Brahmananda Sarasvati's Rahasya, Ramacandra Pandita's Vivrti, Uvatarya's Bhasya, Anandabhatta's Bhasya and Anantacarya's Bhasya, by R.S.Bodas. ASS 5, 1881, 1888, 1927, 1980

379.27.6 Edited Calcutta 1882

379.27.7 Translated by S. Ramaswamier in Vajasaneyasamhitopanisad (Madras 1884)

379.27.8 Edited and translated, with Anandagiri's Tika and Baladeva Vidyabhusana's Bhasya, by Gosvami Siddhanta Vacaspati. Calcutta 1895

379.27.9 Translated by S.C.Vasu. Bombay 1896

379.27.10 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Bhasyas on Kena and Mundaka Upanisads, by S.Sitarama Sastri. Madras 1898

379.27.11 Edited by Brahmanista Ganda Brahmachari. Bombay 1906

379.27.12 Edited, with Samkara's commentaries on Kena and Katha Upanisads, Balakrsnadasa's Prakasika on Isa, Kuranarayana's Prakasika on Isa, Rangaramanuja's Prakasikas on Katha and Kena, Mukundadasa's Prakasika on Kena and Manadasa's Prakasika on Katha Upanisads, by Kundur Rangacarya. Srirangam 1911

379.27.13 Translated by Mysore Hiriyanna. Srirangam 1911; Mysore 1972

379.27.14 Edited, with Narayana Sarasvati's Prakasika, Madhva's Bhasya, Jayatirtha's Vivarana and Bhimasena's Bhasya by Cintamani Gangadhara Bhanu. Bombay 1911

379.27.15 Edited, with Samkara's Bhasyas on Katha, Kena and Mundaka, Narayana Sarasvati's Dipikas on Brahma, Garbha, Brahmabindu, Nadabindu and Rama Upanisads, Samkarananda's Dipika on Kaivalya Upanisad, by Upendranatha Mukhopadhyaya. Calcutta 1912

379.27.16 Edited, with Samkara's commentaries on Taittiriya, Kena, Mundaka Upanisads, by V.V.Bapat in Brahmavidyagrantharatnamala (1913-14)

379.27.17 S .C.Vasu, Studies in the First Six Upanisads and the Isa and Kena Upanisads with the Commentary of Samkara. Also contains Anantacarya's Bhasya. SBH 22, 1919, 69-116

379.27.18 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1922

379.27.19 Edited in WSS

379.27.20 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1935

379.27.21 Edited and translated, with Samkara's commentaries on Katha, Kena and Taittiriya Upanisads, by Gambhirananda. Calcutta 1938

379.27.21.1 Edited Poona 1949

379.27.22 Selections translated by T.M.P.Mahadevan. VK 44, 1957-58, 357-360

379.27.23 Edited by Vasudeva Mahasankar Josi. Ahmedabad 1959

379.27.23.1 Edited by Sitanath Gosvami. Second edition. Calcutta 1960, 1964

379.27.24 Edited in RS

379.27.25 Edited in SSG 3, 1-24

379.27.26 Edited by Vacaspati Pandeya. Meerut 1964

379.27.27 V.P.Limaye, "An untraced Upanisadic citation from Samkaracarya", VIJ 2, 1964, 353-354

379.27.29 Edited Gorakhpur 1967

379.27.29.1 Edited by Vidyananda Giri. 1967, 1968

379.27.30 Edited by Lokesananda Sastri. Varanasi 1968

379.27.31 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tika and Jayamangalacarya's (Svamikasikananda's) Rahasyavivarana. Bombay 1971

379.27.32 Translated by Saccidanandendra Sarasvati. Holenarsipur 1972

379.27.32.1 Minal M. Vora, "Samkara's interpretation of Isa-Upanisad St. 2", BCGV 18, 1974, 48-52

379.27.33 K.B.Archak, "A brief study of the Isavasyopanisad in the light of the Bhasyas of Samkara, Vedanta Desika and Madhva", KUJ 22, 1978, 47-57

379.27.34 Richard H. Jones, "Vidya and avidya in the Isa Upanisad", PEW 31, 1981, 79-88

379.27.34.1 K.B.Archak, Samkara and Madhva on the Isavasya Upanisad. Dharwad 1981

379.27.35 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 278-280

379.27.36 Edited, with editor's Jayamangaliya, by Kasikananda Giri. Bombay 1986

379.27.37 Edited by Sivanarayana Sastri. Delhi 1986

379.27.39 Edited with Vidyananda Giri's Bhasyarthadipika and Visnudevamalagiri's Govindaprasadini by Umesananda Sastri and Niscalananda Giri. Rishikesh 1993

379.27.40 Daya Krishna, "Can there be categories of freedom? What was the Mimamsakas reply to Samkara's contention in his commentary on the Isopanisad?", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 149

379.27.43 Edited, with the commentaries of Uvatat, Sayana, Mahidhara and a Prakasa and others, by Devendra Nath Pandeya. Jaipur 2001

379.27.47 Edited byDipak Kukmar. Varanasi 2008


       28.Jivanmuktanandalahari

See et379.8.56.1

379.28.1 Edited and translated by C. S. Venkateswaran. TVOS 5, 1978, 76-91

379.28.3 Edited and translated by Tejomayananda. Mumbai 1993, 1999


       29.Bhasya on Katha Upanisad (Advaita) (NCat III, 123-124)

See e23.1.1; 317.1:8,13,15,16; 379.4.23; 379.27:1,4,12,15,21. et379.4.18

379.29.1 Edited in Telugu characters, with Anandagiri's Tika, by Srinivasacarya. 1868

379.29.2 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tika. Calcutta 1872

379.29.3 Edited Banaras 1873

379.29.4 Edited by Mahesacandra Pala. Calcutta 1883

379.29.5 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tika and Gopalayogin's Tika, by Vaijanatha Sarma Rajavada. ASS 7, 1889, 1897, 1977

379.29.6 Introduction edited and translated into Italian by P.E. Pavolini. Roma 1892

379.29.7 Edited with Samkara's commentary on Mundaka, Narayana Sarasvati's commentary on Muktika, Garbha, Sarva, Brahmabindu, Rama, Nadabindu and Kaivalya, Samkarananda's commentary on Kaivalya, by Prasannakumara Sastri. Calcutta 1896

379.29.8 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Bhasya on Prasna Upanisad, by Sitarama Sastri. Madras 1898

379.29.9 Edited, with Madhva's Bhasya, Rangaramanuja's Bhasya, by Cintaman Gangadhara Bhanu. Bombay 1912

379.29.10 Edited by K.V.Lele, Wai 1913

379.29.11 Translated by Mysore Hiriyanna. Srirangam 1915

379.29.12 Edited with Rangaramanuja's Bhasya and editor's Balabodhini, by Sridhara Pathak. POS 4, 1919

379.29.13 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Second edition. Poona 1925

379.29.14 Edited in WSS

379.29.15 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1935

379.29.16 Edited in SSG 3, 99-183

379.29.17 Edited by Saccidananendra Saraswati. Holenarsipur 1962

379.29.18 Edited and translated. Gorakhpur 1967

379.29.19 Edited by Surendradeva Sastri. Varanasi 1968

379.29.19.5 Edited by Jaganandna 'Vikasita' and Taranisa Jha. Lucknow 197?

379.29.20 Minal Vora, "Samkara's interpretation of Katha Upanisad I.1.20", Indica 16, 1979, 185-190

379.29.21 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 280-281

379.29.22 Edited, with Anandagiri's Bhasya, Visnudevanandagiri'sGovindaprasadini and Vidyanandagiri's Mitaksara, by Umesananda Giri. Rshikesh 1992

379.29.25 Edited by Puspa V. Gupta. Varanasi 2006


       30.Kaupinapancaka or Yatipancaka (Advaita) (NCat V, 107-108)

See e379.10.1

379.30.1 Edited and translated by G. R. S. Pantulu. IA 33, 1904, 161-162

379.30.2 Edited in SGr

379.30.3 Edited in BSM

379.30.4 Edited by Nakado Raja Gupta. Calcutta 1912

379.30.5 Edited in Ratnapancaka (1919)

379.30.6 Edited in Telugu characters in Sivasahasranamastotra (1923)

379.30.7 Edited in MWS

379.30.8 Edited in SG

379.30.9 Edited in SSG 11, 429-438

379.30.10 Translated, with Samkara's Manisapancaka, Mayapancaka and Upadesasahasri, by R. Krishnaswamy Aiyar. Srirangam 1964

379.30.11 Edited and translated by C. S. Venkatesvaran. TVOS 8, 1980, 89-94

379.30.12Edited with Samkara's Prasnottari, Mahamudgara and Satpadi, by Gosvami Kapiladasa Giri as Carapatapanjarikastotra. Varanasi 1980.


       31.Bhasya on Kena Upanisad (Advaita) (NCat V, 38-40)

See b379.27.17. e23.1.1. e317.1:8,13,15,16. e379.27:1,4,12,15,16. et379.4:18,23; 379.267:10,21

379.31.1 Edited in Telugu characters, with Anandagiri's Tika, by Srinivasacarya. Madras 1868

379.31.2 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tika. Calcutta 1872

379.31.3 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana, Samkarananda's Dipika and Narayana's Dipika, by K.S.Agase. ASS 6, 1888, 1909

379.31.4 Sections translated in BV 3, 1897: 99, 182. Reprinted BV n.s. 9, 1974, 100-118

379.31.5 Translated by Mysore Hiriyanna. Srirangam 1912, 1915

379.31.6 Edited, with Rangaramanuja's Bhasya, by S.S.Pathak. POS 3, 1919

379.31.7 Sridhar Shastri Pathak, "The pada and vakya bhasyas of Kenopanisad", PAIOC 1.1, Summaries 1919, 98-109

379.31.8 Edited in WSS

379.31.8.1 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1924

379.31.9 Edited Banaras 1927

379.31.10 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1935

379.31.11 Upanisad edited and translated by T.M.P.Mahadevan with notes based on Samkara's commentary. Madras 1958

379.31.12 Edited in SSG 3, 95-97

379.31.13 Edited with editor's commentary by Saccidanandendra Sarasvati. Holenarsipur 1959

379.31.14 Portions edited and translated in RS

379.31.15 Edited and translated by Kumudranjan Ray. Calcutta 1963

379.31.16 Edited and translated, with commentaries in Sanskrit and English, by Sitanath Gosvami. Calcutta 1964

379.31.17 Edited and translated Gorakhpur 1965

379.31.18 Sengaku Mayeda, "On Samkara's authorship of the Kenopanisadbhasya", IIJ 10, 1967, 33-35

379.31.18.0 Translated by Sitanath Goswami. Calcutta 1971

379.31.18.1 Edited by Mysore Hiriyanna. Mysore 1974

379.31.19 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 281-284

379.31.20 Edited, with Anandagiri's Bhasya, Vasudevanandagiri's Govindaprasadini and Vidyananda Giri's Mitaksara, by Umeshananda Giri. Rshikesh 1998

379.31.21 Shashaprabha Kumar, "Samkara on 'Kena' Upanisad", JICPR 17.1, 1999, 113-126


       32.Laghuvakyavrtti (Advaita)

See 379.7:32.1, 45

379.32.0 Translated by Hari Prasad Shukla . London 1956

379.32.1 Edited and explained in Kshitish Chandra Chakravarti, Vision of Reality. Calcutta 1969

379.32.2 N.S.Dakshinamurthy, "Significance of Laghuvakyavrtti", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 48-65

379.32.3 Edited, with editor's Puspanjali. Almora 1963; Calcuta 1983; Delhi 1993

379.32.5 Edited and translated by N. Gangadharan. TVOS 22.2, 1997, 87-96


       32A.Laksminrsimharatna

379.32A.1 T.P.Ramachandran, "The Laksminrsimhapancaratnam of Samkara (some thoughts)", TVOS 27.2, 2002, 56-66


      32B.Laksminrsimhakaravadambhstotra

379.32B.1 T. P. Ramachandran, "The Laksminrsimhakaravadambhastotram of Samkara (some reflections). TVOS 28.1, 2003, 88-103


        33.Manisapancaka (Advaita)

See e379.3.8. e379.7:9, 32.2. e379.19.3 t379.30.10

379.33.1 Edited in grantha characters, with Yamuna's Gitarthasamgraha, by Ramakrishna Sastri. Palghat 1905

379.33.2 Translated, with Patanjali's commentary, by G.R.Subramiah Pantulu. IA 34, 1905, 120-123

379.33.3 Edited by A.Svaminath Aiyar. Madurai 1911

379.33.4 Edited in WSS

379.33.5 Edited in BN

379.33.6 Edited in MWS

379.33.7 Edited, with a summary of Sadasiva Brahmendra's Vyakhya, by T.K.Balasubrahmanyam Aiyar. JSS 2.1, 1940-41. Also SSGS 8

379.33.8 Edited in SSG 11, 418-419

379.33.8.1 Translated by Hari Prasad Shastri. London 1956

379.33.9 Edited and translated by T.M.P.Mahadevan. Madras 1967. Also TVOS 2, 1977, 187-231

379.33.10 Edited with Nrsimhasrama's Madhumanjari in FMA

379.33.11 Edited in Malayalam script by G.Balakrsnan Nayar. Puranattukara 1974

379.33.11.5 Iswarananda Giri, Portrait of Guru: Lecture on Manisha-panchaka of Aacharya Shree Shankara. Mt. Abu 1975

379.33.12 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Nirvanasatka, by Chinmayananda. Bangalore 1980, 1984

379.33.13 Edited and explained by Viditatmananda. Ahmedabad 1988-

379.33.14 Edited and translated, with Sadasivendra Sarasvati's Tatparyadipika, by K. Kamala and Vuppal Srinivasa Sarma. Hyderabad 2005

379.33.16 Edited and translated by Ranganathananda, "Shankaracharya and an untouchable", PB 113, 2008, 619-62; reprinted Kolkata 2009


       33A. Manoratnamala

See e379.7.40


       34.Mayapancaka (Advaita)

See t379.30.10

379.34.1 Edited in WSS

379.34.2 Edited in SG

379.34.2.5 Edited, with a summary of Sadasiva Brahmendra's commentary, by T. K. Balasubrahmanya Aiyar. Srirangam 1940

379.34.3 Edited and translated by K.R.Pisharoti. PB 66, 1950, 173-175

379.34.4 Edited and translated by R.Balasubramanian. TVOS 2, 1977, 139-142


       35.Mayavivarana (Advaita)

379.35.1 Edited by T.Chandrasekharan. BGOMLM 1.1, 1948, 23-48


       35A. Mohamudgara

See e379.30.12


       36.Bhasya on Mundaka Upanisad (Advaita)(NCat I, 108)

See e23.1.1; 317.1:8,13,15,16; 379.4.23; 379.11.2.1; 379.27:1,4,10,15,16; 379.29.7. et379.4:18,21 t379.23.8.

379.36.1 Edited in Telugu characters, with Anandagiri's Tippana. 1868

379.36.2 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana. Calcutta 1872

379.36.3 Edited by Mahesacandra Pala. Calcutta 1884

379.36.4 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana and Narayana's Dipika, by the Anandasrama pandits. ASS 9, 1888, 1890, 1897, 1909, 19l8, 1925

379.36.5 Sections translated in BV 3, 1898, 360-365

379.36.6 Translated by S.Suryanarayana Sastri. Madras 1898, 1923

379.36.7 Edited by Upendranatha Mukhopadhyaya. Calcutta 1912

379.36.8 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1914, 1925

379.36.9 Edited and translated into German, with Anandagiri's Tippana, by J. Hertel. IIQF 3, 1924

379.36.9.1 Edited with

379.36.10 Edited in WSS

379.36.11 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1935

379.36.12 Edited in SSG 3, 303-361

379.36.12.1 Edited by Satchidanandendra Sarasvati. Holenarsipur 1960

379.36.13 M.D.Paradkar, "Similes in Samkara's Bhasya on the Mundakopanisad", VIJ 2, 1964, 81-86

379.36.14 Edited and translated. Gorakpur 1966

379.36.14.1 Translated into French by Paul Martin-Dubost. Paris 1978

379.36.15 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 284-289

379.36.16 Edited by Satyavrata Sastri. New Delhi 1986

379.36.17 Edited and translated, with Samkara's Prasnopanisad, by Jayantkrishna H. Dave. Bombay 1988

379.37.20 Edited, with Vijayanandagiri's Govindaprasadini, by Vasudevanacandra. Rsikesh 1991


       37.Navaratnamalika

379.37.1 Edited and translated by P.Thirugnanasambandham. TVOS 6, 1981, 148-158


       38.Nirvanamanjari (Advaita)

379.38.1 Edited in WSS

379.38.2 Edited in SG

379.38.3 Edited in SSG 11, 391-393

379.38.4 Translated, with Samkara's Nirvanasatka and Svarupasamdhana, by R.Krishnaswamy Aiyar. Srirangam 1965


       39.Nirvanasatka or Atmasatka or Muktisopana (Advaita) (NCat II, 58)

See e379.3.2; 379.8.10. et379.33.12. t379.38.4

379.39.1 Edited by Ramakrsna Vidyaratna. Calcutta 1865

379.39.2 Edited by Kesavacandra Raya Karmakara in Paramartharatnakara (Calcutta 1869, 1878)

379.39.3 Edited in BSR

379.39.4 Edited in VSS

379.39.5 Edited in Telugu characters by Pattisapu Venkatesvaru. Madras 1917

379.39.6 Edited in SGr

379.39.7 Edited by Hiralala Jadavaraya. 1912

379.39.8 Edited in WSS

379.39.9 Edited and translated into Telugu by K.G.Yajna Sarma. Madras 1915

379.39.10 Edited in Altar Flowers

379.39.11 Edited in SSG 11, 394-395

379.39.11.1 Edited and translated by Chinmayananda. Bangalore 1980, 1984

379.39.12 Edited and translated. TVOS 14.4, 1990, 60-64

379.39.15 Edited (translated?)with Ksemaraja's Pratyabhijnahrdaya by Prem Prakash in Three Paths of Devotion. St. Paul, Minn. 2002

379.39.18 C. A. Reddy, "Meditating on inherent divinity", VK 94, 2007, 175-178

379.39.20 Edited and translated into French by Martine Quantric-Seguy. Paris 1998


       40.Bhasya on Nrsimhottaratapani(ya) Upanisad (Advaita)

379.40.1 Edited by Ramaraya Tarkaratna. BI 70, 1871

379.40.2 Edited by Mahesacandra Pala. Incomplete. Calcutta 1887

379.40.3 Edited, with Vidyaranya's commentary, by the Anandasrama pandits. ASS 30, 1895, 1929

379.40.4 Edited in SSG 4, 231-344


       41.Pancakosaviveka (NCat XI, l0)


       42.Pancikarana (Advaita)

See e379.7.32.2; 379.19.25

379.42.1 Edited, with Suresvara's Varttika and Narayana Sarasvati's Abharana. Vidyodaya 20, parts 5-12, Calcutta 189l

379.42.2 Edited, with Ramatirtha's Candrika and Anandagiri's Vivarana, by J.Sarma. Bombay 1902

379.42.3 Edited, with Sadasiva Brahmendra's Advaitasamdhana, by Balakrsna Sastri. Kumbakonam 1906

379.42.4 Edited in WSS

379.42.5 Edited in Prakaranaprabandhavali XVI, volumes 1-2. Srirangam 1910, 1913

379.42.6 Edited, with Suresvara's Varttika, by Bhatta Panjabhai Somesvara. Ahmedabad 1918

379.42.7 Edited in Telugu characters, with Suresvara's Varttika, by Kuvuru Pattabhirama Sarma. Ellore 1919

379.42.8 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Ramatirtha's Candrika and Narayana Sarasvati's Abharana, with a summary of Suresvara's Varttika, by B.S.Vajhe. KSS 7, 1923, 1984

379.42.9 Edited in Telugu characters, with Suresvara's Varttika. Madras 1923

379.42.10 Edited, with Suresvara's Varttika, Narayana Sarasvati's Abharana, Anandagiri's Vivarana, Ramatirtha's Candrika, Santyananda's Advaitagamahrdaya and Gangadhara's Candrika, by Gajana Sambhu Sadhale. Bombay 1930; Varanasi 1983

379.42.11 Edited in SSG 10, 412-413

379.42.12 Edited, with Suresvara's Varttika, in Kamakoti Kosasthanam. Madras 1954

379.42.13 Edited and translated, with Suresvara's Varttika. Vrndaban 1962

379.42.14 Edited. 1964

379.42.15 Edited and translated, with Suresvara's Varttika. Second edition, Calcutta 1972; third edition, Calcutta 1776.

379.42.15.1 Edited, with Narayana Sarasvati's Abharana, Suresvara's Varttika, Ramatirtha's Candrika, Anandagiri's Vivarana, and editor's Tippani and Bhumika, by S.Subrahmanya Sastri. Mt. Abu, 1978

379.42.16 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 318-319

379.42.16.1 Edited, with Narayana Sarasvsati's Abharana, Suresvara's Varttika, Anandagiri's Vivecana, Ramatirtha's Tattvacandrika, Santyananda's Advaitagamahrdaya, and Gangadhara's Candrika, and editor's Hindi Tika, by Kamesvara Natha Misra. KSS 229, 1983

379.42.17 Edited, with a Sanmisrapancikarana, Pancikrta, and Sadhana-catustayasampatti. SVVSS n.d.

379.42.18 C. Bouy, "Le Pancikarana: contribution a l'étude philologique d'un texte attribué à Samkara", PNRBFV 1994, 207-310

379.42.19 Vidyasankar Sundaresan, "What decides Sankara's authorship? The case of the Pancikarana", PEW 52, 2002

 

      43.Paramanandadipika (NCat XI, 181-182)


      44.Paramarthasara(samgraha) (Advaita)

See t379.8.18

379.44.1 Edited as Aryapancasiti by Bala Sastri. Pan 5, l870-71, 188-191

379.44.2 Edited by Kevaladina. Lucknow 1876

379.44.3 Translated by Amrtalal Basu, Dhole's Vedanta Series 1883

379.44.4 Edited in VR

379.44.5 Translated by N.Dhole in The Oriental 1, 1899, 11-12

379.44.6 Edited, with Raghavananda's Vivarana, by T.Ganapati Sastri. TSS 12, 1911

379.44.7 Edited, with Raghavananda's Vivarana, by S.N.Sukla. AG 9, 1932

379.44.8 Edited and translated by Satalur Suhara Suryanarayana Sastri. NIA Extra Series IV, Bombay 1941 Bombay 1941

379.44.9 S.Srikantha Sastri, "Paramarthasara and Sri Bhagavata", IHQ 22, 1946, 105-111

379.44.10 Translated in VK 53, 1966-67 - 54, 1967-68

379.44.11 Edited and translated as The Essence of Supreme Identity by Henry Danielson. Leiden 1980

379.44.12 L. Sulochana Devi, "Earliest prakarana on Advaita Vedanta", VIJ 30, 1992, 97-100

379.44.13 Edited by L. Sulochana Devi. Calcutta 1996

379.44.20 J. Devanayhan, "On Paramartha-sara of Adi Samkara (an Advaitic reference to the esoteric essence of ultimte truth”, TVOS 53.1, 2008, 65-78


    46.Bhasya on Prasna Upanisad (Advaita)

See e317.1:8,13,15,16. e379.27:1,4. et379.4:18,21,23. et379.29.8. et379.36.17

379.46.1 Edited in Telugu characters, with Anandagiri's Tippana. Madras 1868

379.46.2 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana. Calcutta 1872

379.46.3 Edited by Mahesacandra Pala. Calcutta 1884

379.46.4 Edited, with Narayana Sarasvati's Vivarana. Banaras 1884

379.46.5 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tippana and Samkarananda's Dipika, by Anandasrama pandits. ASS 8, 1888, 1896, 1911, 1922, 1980

379.46.6 Sections translated in BV 3, 1897, 57-62

379.46.7 Translated by Suryanarayana Sastri. Madras 1898

379.46.8 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1925

379.46.9 Edited in WSS

379.46.10 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1935

379.46.11 Edited in SSG 4, 1-58

379.46.12 Edited and translated. Gorakhpur 1951-52

379.46.13 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 289-294

379.46.13.5 Edited and translated by Gambhirananda. Calcutta 1986

379.46.14 Edited and translated with Paramahansa Niranjanananda's Yogasiddhantabhasya. Munger, Bihar 1992

379.46.15 Edited, with Anandagiri's Bhasya, Visnudevanandagiri's Govindaprasadini and Vidyanandagiri's Mitaksara, by Umesananda Giri. Rshikesh 1995


       47.Prasnottararatnamalika

379.47.00 Edited and translated by R. Sivasankara Pandiah. The HIndu Excelsior Series 7, 1887

379.47.0 Edited Kumbakonam 1945

379.47.0.0 Ediged by Ramacandra Jha. Benares 1954

379.47.0.1 Edited by Anton Schiefner. Petropolo 1958

379.47.1 Edited and translated by T. M. P. Mahadevan. TVOS 5, 1978, 5-45. Selections reprinted TVOS 30, 2005, 71-80

379.47.2 Edited and translated by Tapasyananda. VK 77, 1190 - 78, 1991


       48.Praudhanubhuti (Advaita)

See e379.7.45

379.48.1 Edited in WSS

379.48.2 Edited in MWS

379.48.3 Edited in SG

379.48.4 Edited by Krsna Pant Sastri. AG 1932


       48A. Rajayogabhasya (?)

See e379.67.3.0


       49.Sadacaranusamdhana (Advaita)

379.49.1 Edited in WSS

379.49.2 Edited in ADR

379.49.3 Edited in MWS


       50.Sarvasiddhantasamgraha (Advaita)

379.50.1 Edited and translated by M. Rangacarya. Madras 1909; New Delhi 1983

379.50.2 Edited and translated by Prem Sunder Bose, Calcutta 1929. Translation of Carvaka chapter reprinted in Source Book 234-235

379.50.3 B.N.K.Sarma, "A note on the authorship of the Sarvasiddhanta Sangraha", ABORI 12, 1930-31, 81-83

379.50.4 Bruno Liebich, "Bemerkungen zu Samkara's Sarva-Siddhanta-Samgraha", ZII 2, 1933, 123-132

379.50.8 Discussed by Anantalal Thakukr, ODVS 430-431


       51.Sarva(vedanta)siddhantasarasamgraha (Advaita)

See e379.8.26

379.51.1 Edited in MWS

379.51.2 V.Raghavan, "Minor works wrongly ascribed to Adi Samkara", AOR 6, 1941-42 (Sanskrit section) 5-8

379.51.3 Translated by Tattvananda as The Quintessence of Vedanta. Ernakulam 1960; Calcutta 1971

379.51.4 Edited Tiruchirapalli 1971-73

379.51.5 Edited by Satyananda Sarasvati. Varanasi 1972

379.51.5.1 Selections translated in Bishnupada Bhattacarya (ed.), Carvakadarsanam (Calcutta 1985)

379.51.6 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 339-343

379.51.6.5 Edited and translated by M. Rangacarya. New Delhi 1983; Delhi 2006

379.51.7 Translated by V.K.S.N.Raghavan. TVOS 15.1, 1990 - 20, 1995. In progress.


       52.Satasloki (Advaita)

See e379.7:13, 32.2. et379.7.18

379.52.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's commentary, by Janardana Balaji Modak in Kavyetihasasamgraha (Poona 1885-86) 8.5-12, 9.9

379.52.1.5 Edited with Anandagiri's commentary by Janardana Mahadev Gurjara. Bombay 1886

379.52.2 Edited, with Anandagiri's commentary, by U.J.Gore. Bombay 1886

379.52.3 Edited, with Anandagiri's commentary, by K.S.Navare. Bombay 1895, 1905

379.52.4 Edited in WSS

379.52.5 Edited by Naradalala Popatbhai Vaishnava. Bombay 1913

379.52.6 Edited in ADR

379.52.7 Edited by R.B.Godbole

379.52.8 Edited, with editor's Vivarana, by V.V.Bapat.Poona 1921, 1932

379.52.9 Edited in MWS

379.52.10 Edited by Narahara Amtaji Kelakara. Satara 1927

379.52.11 Edited by Narayana Visnu Padhya. Bombay 1927

379.52.11.1 Edited by P. Gopala Nayar. Calcutta 1936

379.52.12 Edited in SSG 10, 451-476

379.52.13 Edited with Anandagiri's Tika by S. Subrahmanya Sastri. Mt. Abu 1978

379.52.14 Edited and translated by R. Balasubramanian. TVOS 7, 1982, 57-70

379.52.15 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 324-325

379.52.16 Sulabha S. Kalledar, "Satasloki and Rgveda mantras" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 349

379.52.17 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vyakhya, by Krsnananda Sagara. Varanasi 1987

379.52.19 Edited and translated by S. N. Sastri. Chennai 2001

379.52.23 Edited b Ramavatara Vidyabhaskara. Varanasi 2006

379.52.20 Translated by R. Venkataraman as Liberation Management, New Delhi 2001


       52A. Satpadi

See e379.230.12


       53.Sivabhujangam

379.53.1 Editd and translated by P. Thirugnanasambandham. TVOS 2, 1977, 106-138


       54.Sivanandalahari

379.54.00 Edited and traslated by K. P. G. Panikar. Palghat 1906

379.54.0 Edited Rajamundry 1927

379.54.0.1 Edited by Telliyavaram Mahadeva Punnambalan Mahadevan. Madras 1963

379.54.1 Edited and translated in TVOS 3, 1978: 131, 241, 343

379.54.2 Edited and translated by V.K.Subramanian. Palghat 1969; New Delhi 2006

379.54.3 Edited Srirangam 1971

379.54.3.5 Edited and translated by Tapasyananda. Madras 1985. This translated in to Dutch, Amsterdam 2002

379.54.4 Edited and translated as Inundation of the Divine Bliss by Sri Samkaracarya. Madras 1988

379.54.5 Edited and translated by Kamala Chidambaram. Bombay 1989

379.54.6 Edited with an anonymous commentary by Svayampraka Giri. Varanasi 1991

379.54.8 Translated by C. V. Sundaram in Mukundamala of Kulasekhara Alwar. Bangalore 1997

379.54.10 Edited and translated by S. Balakrishnan in Samkara on Bhakti. Mumbai 2000


       54A. Sivapancaksara

See 379.8.56.1


       55.Svarupasamdhana (Advaita)

See t379.38.4

379.55.1 Edited in WSS

379.55.2 Edited in SSG 11, 446-448


       56.Svatmanirupana (Advaita) (ascribed to Daksinamurti, pupil of Srinivasa, in NCat VIII, 293)

See e379.7:11, 32.2. e379.8.26. et379.7.18

379.56.1 Edited, with Saccidananda Sarasvati's Aryavyakhya. Bombay 1867

379.56.2 Translated by J. Harihara Aiyar. BV 6, 1901: 3, 219

379.56.3 Edited in WSS

379.56.4 Edited by Nagesa Jivaji Bapat. Poona 1912

379.56.5 Edited in VS

379.56.6 Edited in ADR

379.56.7 Edited in MWS

379.56.8 Edited in SSG 10, 477-496

              

       57.Svatmaprakasika (Advaita)

379.57.1 Edited in WSS

379.57.2 Edited in MWS

379.57.3 Edited in SSG 11, 449-458

379.57.4 Edited and translated in Michael Gainer Burk, an Exposition and a Relative Chronology of the Phonological Transformations from Indo-European to Sanskrit: Svatmaprakasika: Light on One's Real Self. M.A.Thesis, U. of Texas (Austin) 1976


       58.Bhasya on Svetasvatara Upanisad (Advaita)

See et379.4.18. e379.4.1

379.58.1 Edited, with Samkarananda's Dipika, Narayana's Dipika and Vijnanatman's Vivarana, by the Anandasrama pandits. ASS 17, 1890, 1905, 1927, 1966

379.58.1.1 Edited with Samkarananda's Dipika, Narayana's Dipika and Vijnanatman's Vivarana. Third edition TSS 17, 1927

379.58.2 Edited Gorakhpur 1958

379.58.3 Edited and translated. Gorakhpur 1966


       59.Bhasya on Taittiriya Upanisad (Advaita) (NCat VIII, 219-220)

See e317.1:8,15. e379.4:1,3,15,23. e379.17.2; 379.27.16 et379.4.18; 379.27.21. t379.4.16,28

379.59.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Samkarananda's Dipika, by the Anandasrama pandits. ASS 12, 1889, 1897, 1909, 1922, 1929

379.59.2 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Samkarananda's Dipika and Vidyaranya's Vyakhya, by Vamana Sastri Islampurkar. Poona 1889

379.59.3 Partly translated, with Suresvara's Varttika, by S.Sitarama Sastri. BV 2, 1897: 131, 136, 143, 160, 167, 201

379.59.4 Translated, with Suresvara's Varttika and Vidyaranya's Vyakhya thereon, by A.Mahadeva Sastri. Four volumes. Mysore 1899-1903

379.59.5 Translated by S.Suryanarayana Sastri. Madras 1901

379.59.6 Edited, with Krsnanandatirtha's Vanamala, by G.R.Sastri. SVVSS 13, 1913

379.59.7 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana, Samkarananda's Dipika and Vidyaranya's Vyakhya, by D.V.Gokhale. Bombay 1914

379.59.8 Edited in WSS

379.54.8.5 Edited and translated by Vishnu Vaman Bapat. Poona 1924

379.59.9 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1936

379.59.10 Edited in SSG 3, 185-300

379.59.11 Edited by Sacchidanandendra Saraswati. Holenarsipur 1961-62

379.59.12 Edited and translated. Gorakhpur 1966

379.59.13 Mario Piantelli, "Attention and communication: some observations on the contribution of Samkara to the lexicon of Sanskrit as a metalanguage in Taittiriyopanisadbhasya II.1.1", ITaur 3-4, 1975-76, 387-396

379.59.13.1 Edited with Anandagiri's Tika. Punyapattane 1977

379.59.14 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 204-216

379.59.15 Chris Bartley, "Interpreting satyam jnanam anantam bhumi", OUP 1, 1986, 103-115

379.59.16 R. Balasubramanian, "The Taittiriyopanisadbhasya of Sri Samkara", 1989, 19-32; 14.4, 1990, 43-59

379.59.17 Vijaya Pandya, "Anandamimamsa of the Taittiriya Upanisad and Samkara Bhasyas", Samamnaya 2, 1993, 71-75

379.59.20 Edited, with Visnudevanandagiri Mahraj's Govindaprasadini and Vidyananda Giri's Vidyanandamitaksara, by Umesananda Sastri and Svarnalala Tuli. Hrsikes, U.P. 1999

379.59.21 Translated by Som Raj Gupta in The Word Speaks to the Faustian Man 3, 2001

379.59.22 Kamaleshwar Bhattacharya, "Laksana, laksana, and apophatism in Samkara's commentary on Taittiriya Upanisad II.1", LPEIM 85-96

379.59.25 Edited and translated into French by Michael Angot. PICI 75.1-2. Two volumes. Paris 2007


       60.Tattvabodha or Tattvopadesa (Advaita)

See e379.7.40; 379.8:4, 33, 36

379.60.1 Translated by Lala Simha. Sialkot 1877

379.60.2 Edited by Kalicandra Lahidi. Calcutta 1883

379.60.2.5 Edited with Madhavananda's Tika. Bombay 1886

379.60.3 Edited by Prem Shankar. Banaras 1892

379.60.4 Translated into German by F. Hartmann. Leipzig 1894, 1895, 1934. This translated into russian, Moscow 1912

379.60.5 Edited in Kanarese characters, with commentary, by Sundarananda. Mysore 1910

379.60.6 Edited in Kanarese characters by Sivananda Paramahamsa. Belgaum 1911

379.60.7 Edited by Surendra Mohana Bhattacharya. Calcutta 1911

379.60.8 Edited in WSS

379.60.9 Edited in ADR

379.60.10 Edited by Pandita Rama. Bombay 1914

379.60.11 Edited in VS

379.60.12 Edited by Dayananda. Calcutta 1916

379.60.13 Edited Lucknow 1918

379.60.14 Edited in grantha and Tamil characters by Subrahmanya Bhagavat. Madras 1920

379.60.15 Edited by M.M.Pathak. Banaras 1920

379.60.16 Edited by Bhatta Ramasamkara Monaji. Second edition. Ahmedabad 1923

379.60.16.1 Edited with Svatmarama's Hathayogapradipika by Surendra Mohan Bhattacharya. Calcutta 1927

379.60.17 Edited by Premasamkara Thapa. Banaras 1928

379.60.18 Edited in VR

379.60.18.1 Edited Banaras 1933

379.60.19 Edited in SSG 11, 375-385

379.60.19.1 Edited by Virupaksa Vadeyara Vedatirtha. Indor 1960

379.60.19.2 Translated into German, from Hari Prasad Sastris English translation, by Kurt Friedrichs, with Ursula van Mangoldt's German translation (Das Kleimad der Untersheidung) of Samkara's Vivekacudamani. Stuttgart 1961; Bern 1981

379.60.19.5 Translated, with Vasudeva's Laghuvasudevamanana by Tejomayananda. Sivanandanagar 1972

379.60.20 Edited and translated by Svarupa Chaitanya. Bombay 1981

379.60.21 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 331-333

379.60.21.5 #dited bh Mithiracandra. Bombay 1986

379.60.22 Edited by Viditatmananda. Ahmedabad 1987

379.60.25 Edited and translated by Tejomayananda. Mumbai 2001

379.60.28 Edited and translated by Sunirmalananda in Insights into V edanta. Chennai 2006


    60A.Tripuri

See e379.7.32.2


       61.Upadesasahasri (Advaita) (NCat II, 355-357)

See t379.7.32.2; 379.30.10. a131.1.274

379.62.1 Edited by Bala Sastri. Pan 3, 1868-69 - 5, 1870-71

379.61.2 Edited, with Ramatirtha's Padayojanika, by K.S. Navare. Bombay 1886

379.61.3 Edited with Ramatirtha's Padayojanika, by A.Mahadeva Sastri and K.Rangacarya. MOLP 21, 1899

379.61.4 Edited by S.M.Phadke. Poona 1911

379.61.5 Edited, with Ramatirtha's Padayojanika, by V.L.S.Pansikar. Bombay 1914, 1918

379.61.6 Edited in ADR

379.61.7 Edited, with Ramatirtha's Padayojanika, by Aksayakumara Sastri. Calcutta 1915

379.61.8 Edited in VS

379.61.9 Edited, with Ramatirtha's Padayojanika, by Dinkar Vishnu Gokhale. Bombay 1917

379.61.10 Edited in MWS

379.61.11 Edited in WSS 4, 1925

379.61.12 Edited, with Ramatirtha's Padayojanika, by Karanera Motilala Ravisamkara Bhoda. Ahmedabad 1931

379.61.13 Partly translated by Jagadananda. VK 27, 1940, 144-155

379.61.14 Edited and translated by Jagadananda as A Thousand Teachings. Madras 1949, 196l, 1970, 1973, 1979, 1984, 1989

379.61.15 Translated into German by Paul Hacker. Bonn 1949

379.61.16 Edited in SSG 10, 101-229

379.61.16.5 Giorgio Renato Franci, L'Upanisasahasri (gadyabhaga) di Samkara: contributo dello stdio del Kevaladvaitin. Bologna 1958

379.61.17 Edited by Girisamkara Mayasamkara Sastri. Ahmedabad 1959

379.61.18 Sengaku Mayeda, Upadesasahasri of Samkaracarya. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Pennsylvania 1959

379.61.19 Sengaku Mayeda, "The authenticity of the Upadesasahasri ascribed to Samkara", JAOS 85, 1965, 178-196

379.61.20 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samkara's Upadesasahasri: its present form", JOI 15, 1966, 252-257

379.61.21 Chapter 18 of the verse section translated by Anthony J. Alston as That Thou Art (From the Thousand Teachings of Sri Samkara). London 1967, 1982

379.61.22 V.Raghavan, "The Upadesasahasri of Samkaracarya and the mutual chronology of Samkaracarya and Bhaskara", WZKSOA 11, 1967, 137-140

379.61.23 Sections 45-110 of prose section translated by Deb. Kumar Das as A Discourse on the Real Nature of the Self. Calcutta 1970

379.61.24 Prose section translated by Sengaku Mayeda. SBAV 124-150

379.61.24.1 Edited by V.S.Gopalakrsna Aiyar and T.A.Venkatarama Aiyar. Madras 1971

379.61.24.5 Edited by- Sengaku Mayeda. Tokyo 1973

379.61.25 Edited, with Anandagiri's Tika and editor's Tippani, by S.Subrahmanya Sastri. Varanasi 1978

379.61.25.1 Edited by S. Subrahmanya Sastri. Mt. Abu 1978

379.61.26 Translated by Sengaku Mayeda as A Thousand Teachings. Tokyo 1979; Albany, N.Y. 1992. Reprinted in SourceBAP 93-115

379.61.26.5 Chapter 18 tgrhaslated by A. J. Alston as "That thou art": Chapter XVIII of the Thousand Teachings (Upadesasahasri) of Sri Samkara. London 1882

379.61.27 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 217-254

379.61.27.1 Edited by E. R. Sreekrishna Sarma and A. Sankara Sarma. Kalati 1984

379.61.27.2 Edited Bombay 1984

379.61.28 Mayawati, A Study of the Upadesasahasri. Ph. D. Thesis, University of Delhi 1987.

379.61.28.0 Translated into Spanish by Fernando Tola as Las mil consenanzas del marstro Shankara. Pueblo, Mexico 1988

379.61.28.0.5 Maheshananda Giri, Upadesasahasi in a Nutshell. Mt. Abu 1988

379.61.28.0.8 Edited with editor's Tika by Musalagaomkara. Varanasi 1988

379.61.28.1 Translated by A.J.Alston as The Thousand Teachings. London 1990

379.61.29 Part One edited Delhi 1991

379.61.29.5 Tuvia Gelblum, "Some observations on Mayeda's study of Samkara's Upadesasahasri", SAR 13, 1993, 66-95

379.61.30.Michael Comans, "Samkara and the prasankhyanavada", JIP24, 1996, 49-71

379.61.30.5 Edited and translated by V. Narasimhan. Bombay 1996

379.61.31 Donald R. Tuck, "Lacuna in Samkara studies: A Thousand Teachings (Upadesasahasri)", AsPOxford 6.3, 1996, 219-232

379.61.36 Jacqueline Suthren Hirst, "Weaving the strands: cognition, authority and language in Samkara's Upadesasahasri", Parampara 141-166

379.61.40 Edited, with Anandagiri's Sahasrivivrti, by Ramakrisor Tripathi. Varanasi 2003

369.61.41 Christine Marguerite Fillian, The Roile of Scriptural Testimony, Reason and Spiritual Practice in Upadesasahasri; a non-Commentarial work of Samkara. M.A.Thesis, Faculty of Religious Studies (London?), 2003

379.61.44 N. C, Pandey, Upadesasahasri: Prose and Poetry of Sri Samkaracarya. New Delhi 2007

379.61.47 Nigel Dixon, Re-Thinking Knowledge and Action in Samkara's Thought: with a focus on Samkara's Upadesasahasri", M.A, Thesis. U. of Manitoba/Winnipeg 2009


    61A.Upadespancaratna

See e379.7.32.2


    62.Vakyasudha or Drgdrsyaviveka (Advaita) (NCat IX, 97)

See et379.7.8

379.62.0 Edited in F. H. H. Windischmann, Sankara, sive de teologamani Vedanticorum. Bonn 1833

379.62.1 Edited and translated, with Vidyaranya's Vivarana, by M. N. Dvivedi in CRYP

379.62.1.5 Edited by Manilal Nabhubhai Dvivedi. Bombay 1890, 1899

379.62.2 Edited, with Brahmananda Bharatitirtha's Tika and Ramananda Sarasvati's Vivaranopanyasa, by Damodara Sastri Sahasrabuddha. BenSS 55-56, 1901

379.62.3 Edited by Aparoksanubhavi Vakulabharana Paradesi. Madras 1901

379.62.4 Edited by E.P.Subrahmanya Sastri. Palghat 1903

379.62.5 Edited Banaras 1911

379.62.6 Edited by K.V.V.Chetti and M.S.Mudaliyar. Second edition. Madras 1912

379.62.7 Edited in ADR

379.62.8 Edited in VS

379.62.9 Edited, with Atmananda Sarasvati's Atmanandaprabhakara, by Gadadharaprasada Sukla. Bombay 1917

379.62.10 Edited, with Brahmananda Bharati's Tika, by Brahmachari Chetanasvarupa; and Vidyaranya's Anubhutiprakasa edited, with Kasinatha's Mitaprakasavivrti, by Venimadhava Misra and revised by N. D. Sarma and R. Sarma. Banaras 1923

379.62.11 Edited, with Vidyaranya's Anubhutiprakasika and Kasinatha's Mitavrtti, by Devakinandana Sastri. Banaras 1924

379.62.12 Edited in MWS

379.62.13 Edited in WSS 4, 1925

379.62.14 Edited, with Brahmananda Bharati's commentary, by Durgacarana Chattopadhyaya. Calcutta 1927

379.62.15 Edited and translated by Nikhilananda. Mysore 1931, 1944, 1956. This translated into French as Comment Discriminer le Specteur du Spectacle? Drg-drsya-viveka by M. Sauton. Paris 1945, 1946, 1964

379.62.15.5 Mariasusai Dhavamony, "Vakyasudha: the nectar of sayings", Gregorianum 51, 1970, 711-745

379.62.16 Edited, with Bhimadasa Bhupala's Vyakhya, in FMA

379.62.17 Edited and translated by A.J.Alston as Self and Non-Self (Poona 1978)

379.62.18 Edited and translated by Raphael as Self and Non-Self. New York 1990

379.62.19 Edited by Irinnal S.K. Vaidyar. Vatakara 1997

397.62.19.5 Edited b Tejomayananda. Mumbai 1997

379.62.20 S. Revathy, "The metaphysics of Advaita with reference to the Drgdrsyaviveka", TVOS 24.2, 1999, 63-75

379.62.21 Sharadasubramanian, "The seer (relative and absolute) with reference to Vidyaranya's Drgdrsyaviveka", JVOS 24.2, 1999, 46-62

379.62.22 Yatishwarananda, "Notes on Drig Drishya Viveka", VK 86, 1999: 50, 93, 173, 215, 252, 293, 333

379.62.30 Edited, with the editor's Vivrti and Vidyaranya's Anubhutprakasa and Brahmananda Bharati's commentary, edited by Raghunath Narayan Dutta. Delhi 2006

379.62.31 Translated into Spanish by Copnsuelo Martin (Martin Diaz) as Discernimento: estudio y commentario del tratade Drig-Drisya-Viveka de Samkara. Madrid 2006

379.62.32 Edited, with Brahmananda Bharati's Tika, by D. Damodara Pisharoti. Tripuntham 19–


       63.Vakyavrtti (Advaita)

See e379.7:11,32.1,32.2. e379.8:26,36. et379.7.18; 379.9.5

379.63.1 Edited in BSR

379.63.2 Translated by Chunilal C. Bohra. BV 6, 1901, 751

379.63.3 Edited, with Visvesvara's Prakasika, by Subrahmanya Sastri. Palghat 1904

379.63.4 Edited by B.B.Joshi. Poona 1910, 1914

379.63.4.1 Franz Hartmann's edition translated into Russian. Moscow 1912

379.63.5 Edited in WSS

379.63.6 Edited in BSM

379.63.7 Edited, with Visvesvara's Prakasika, by Jnanandagiri. Bombay 1913

379.63.8 Edited in ADR

379.63.9 Edited in VS

379.63.10 Edited, with Visvesvara's Prakasika, by R.S.Vaidya. ASS 80, 1915, 1978

379.63.11 Edited in MWS

379.63.12 Edited in SG

379.63.13 Edited by Paramahamsa Yogananda. Agra 1929, 1932

379.63.14 Edited in SSG 11, 429-438

379.63.15 Edited by Sripada Sastri Jere. Kolhapur 1957

379.63.16 Edited with Visvesvara's Prakasika by Ranganatha Sastri Vaidya. Poona 1978

379.63.17 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 334-335

379.63.20 Edited and translated by N. Gangadharan. TVOS 21.2, 1996, 121-136; 22.1, 1997, 91-106

379.63.22 Edited, with Anandagiri's Vivarana and Visve'vara Pandit's Prakasika, by Svayamprakasa Giri. Kasi 2000


       64.Vivekacudamani (Advaita)

See e379.7.11. e379.8.26. e379:10.1, 64, 32.1.5. t379.60.19.2

379.64.1 Edited Calcutta 1870

379.64.2 Edited by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1872

379.64.3 Edited by Isvaracandra Bandyopadhyaya. Calcutta 1876

379.64.4 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 188l

379.64.5 Translated by Mohini M.Chatterjee as The Crest-Jewel of Wisdom in CRYP; also Bombay 1890, 1899. Reprinted Adyar 1932, 1973. Translated into German by M.M.Chatterji as Das Palladium der Weisheit (Leipzig 1895)

379.64.7 Edited by R.Trikrama Sastri. Bellary 1898

379.64.8 Edited, with editor's Subodhini, by Haridatta Misra. Banaras 1901

379.64.9 Edited by Nrsimha Deva Sarma. Lahore 1902; Bombay 1907

379.64.10 Edited by Kovuru Pattabhiramayya. Nellore 1906

379.64.11 Edited by Korath Narayana Menon. Palghat 1906

379.64.11.5 Translated into German as Das Palladium der Weisheit by Franz Hartman. Leipzig 1907

379.64.12 Edited by Doddabele Narayan Sastri. Vidyananda (Bangalore) 1-3, 1909-1911. Incomplete

379.64.13 Edited Srirangam 1910

379.64.14 Edited, with Krsna Sastri's notes, by Samkara Sastri and Sahajananda Svami.   Bangalore 1910

379.64.15 Edited, with Kesavananda Svami's Prabha, by Narayana Muni. Moradabad 1910

379.64.16 Translated by Chunilal C. Bohra. BV 17, 1912: 394, 445, 480

379.64.17 Edited by Nanabhai Sadanandaji Rele. Second edition. Poona 1914

379.64.18 Edited by R.L.Harat. Belgaum 1914

379.64.19 Edited by S.Subbarama Sastri. Madras 1914

379.64.20 Edited in ADR

379.64.21 Edited in VS

379.64.22 Edited by Sarat Chandra Chakravarti. Calcutta 1918

379.64.22.1 Translated PB 25, 1920, 18 ff.

379.64.23 Edited by Candrasekhara Sarma. Bombay 1922, 1932

379.64.24 Edited and translated by Madhavananda. Mayavati 1921; 1952, 1995; Calcutta 1926, 1966, 1992; Almora 1944, 1966

379.64.25 Edited by R.S.Sarma. Moradabad 1924

379.64.26 Translated by Charles Johnston as The Crest-Jewel of Wisdom. New York 1925; Felinfach 1994

379.64.27 Edited in MWS

379.64.28 Translated by Christopher Isherwood and Prabhavananda as The Crest-Jewel of Discrimination. Hollywood, California 1947

379.64.29 Edited in SSG 10, 1-100

379.64.30 R.S.Betai, "Comparison between the definitions of sthitaprajna in the Gita and the Vivekacudamani", JUBo 33, 1964, 73-84. Also BCGV 11, 1964, 1-16

379.64.31 Edited by Munilal, Gorakhpur 1966

379.64.31.1 Translated by Ernest Wood as The Pinnacle of Indian Thought. Wheaton, Ill. 1967

379.64.32 Chinmayananda, Talks on Samkara's Vivekachudamani. Contains text and translation. Two volumes. Bombay 1970

379.64.33 Selections translated in Joseph Head and S.L. Cranston, Reincarnation in World Thought. New York 1967

379.64.34 Edited Madras 1971

379.64.34.1 Edited in Bengali script by Narayananda Tirtha. Varanasi 1971

379.64.35 Edited by K.K.Kolhatkar. Bombay 1972

379.64.36 Edited and translated, with translation of Candrasekhara Bharati''s commentary, by P.Sankaranarayanam. Bombay 1973, 1979, 1988

379.64.36.1 Chinmayananda, Talks on Samkara's Vivekachoodamani. Bombay 1974, 1977

379.64.37 Arvind Sharma, "The Vivekacudamani, verse 2", JAIH 7, 1974-75, 270-275

379.64.38 Robert E. Gussner, "Samkara's Crest Jewel of Discrimination: a stylometric approach to question of authorship", JIP 4, 1977, 265-27

379.64.39 Edited and translated in HinduReg 7, 1977 - 10, 1980

379.64.40 Edited by Candrakanta Vasudeva Dandekar. Poona 1979

379.64.41 Iantha H. Hoskins, "Viveka-chudamani", AB 102, 1981, 260-262

379.64.41.1 Edited and translated Calcutta 1982

379.64.42 Edited and translated by R.Balasubramanian, TVOS 7, 1982 - 10, 1985

379.64.42.5 Translated by P. Samkaranarayanan, with a translation of Candrasekhara Bharati (Sri Samkaracarya of Srngeri Pith, Srngeri)'s commentary. Bombay 1988

379.64.43 Edited with editor's Bhavaprakasa by Pandit Venkatanatha. Varanasi 1982

379.64.43.1 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 335-338

379.64.44 N. Jayashanmukham, "The yoga of knowledge as expounded in the Vivekacudamani", TVOS 15.2-3, 1990, 103-111

379.64.44.1 Edited in Telugu script by Anumula Venkatasesakari. Karnulu 1990

379.64.44.2 Edited and translated by Paravrajika Brahmaprana and Turiyananda. Madras 1992

379.64.44.2.5 Sita Krilshna Nambiar, "Prarabdha in Vivekacudamani", SSV 192-196

379.64.44.2.8 K. Kapoor, "L'analogie comme argument dans l'Vivekacudamani d'Adi Samkara", RAL 23, 1994, 133-141

379.64.44.3 Edited by Nandalal Kishore. Hardwar 1994

379.64.45 M. M. Dakshina Murty, "The Crest-Jewel of Wisdom", Dilip 22.2, 1996, 10-14

379.64.45.5 Translated into Spanish by Pepa Linares as Le joya suppreme del disccernimento. Madrid 1996

379.6379.64.46 Edited with Kesavananda's Prabha by Anandaraghava. Hardwar 1997

379.64.47 Sections translated by Dayanand Sarasvati Rishikesh 1997

379.64.48 Edited by Ramesh S. Betai. Bandhinagar 1998

379.64.52 John Grimes, "Samkara and the Vivekacudamani", Parampara 73-100

379.64.54 Francis X. Clooney with Hugh Nicholson, "To be heard and done, but never quite seen: the human condition according to the Vivekacudamani", in Robert C. Neville, ed., The Human Condition, Albany, N.Y. 2001

379.64.55 Edited and translated into Dutch by Paul G. van Oyer and Yvonne L. Scheap. Deventer 2001

379.64.58 Thomas A. Forsthoefel, "Retrieving the Vivekacudamani", PEW 52, 2002, 311-325

379.64.59 Edited and translated by John Grimes. Delhi, Aldershot Herts, England 2004

379.64.60 Edited and translated into German by Raphael. Bielefeld 2004

379.64.63 Saccidananda, The Message of Vivekakudamani. Kolkata 2006

379.64.68 Sunita Chaudhury, A Study on Samkara's Vivekacudamani. Introduction by Sitanath Gosvami. Kolkata 2008

379.64.70 Edited by Suddhidananda and translated by Ranganathanana, The Message of Vivekacudamani. Kolkata 2008


       65.Vivarana on Vyasa's Yogabhasya

See a379.16.43; e131.1.91; et131.1.258

379.65.1 Hajime Nakamura, "Samkara's Vivarana on the Yogasutra-Bhasya", ALB 44-45, 1980-81, 475-485

379.65.2 Translated by Trevor Leggett as Samkara on the Yogasutras. Volume I: Samadhi, London 1981. Volume 2: Means. London 1983. Complete, London 1990. Reprinted as Meditation Practice and Yoga Techniques: an Authoritative guide by Samkara, india's Greatest Religion and Philosophical Genius. London 1999

379.65.3 Albrecht Wezler, "Philological observations on the so-called Patanjalayogasutrabhasyavivarana (Studies in the Patanjalayogasastravivarana 1)", IIJ 25, 1983, 17-40

379.65.4 A. Wezler, "On the quadruple division of the Yogasutra, the Caturvyuhatva of the Cikitsasastra and the 'Four Noble Truths' of the Buddha (Studies in the Patanjalayogasastravivarana II)", ITaur 12, 1984, 289-341

379.65.5 Albrecht Wezler, "Further references to the Vaisesikasutra in the Patanjalayogasastravivarana (Studies in the Patanjalayogasastravivarana III)", Amrtadhara 457-472

379.65.6 Albrecht Wezler, "On the varna system as conceived by the author of the Patanjalayogasastravivarana", DBSFV 142-188

379.65.7 Wilhelm Halbfass, "Samkara, the Yoga of Patanjali, and the so-called Yogasutrabhasyavivarana", POSankara 178-211

379.65.8 Trevor Leggett, "Samkara's yogic practice: notes on the Yogasutrabhasyavivarana", POSankara 212-227

379.65.9 Tuvia Gelblum, "Notes on an English translation of the Yogabhasyavivarana", BSOAS 55, 1992, 76-89

379.65.10 T.S.Rukmani, "The problem of the authorship of the Yogasutrabhasyavivaranam", JIP 20, 1992, 419-424

379.65.11 Trevor Leggett, "New Samkara commentary", TL 13.1, 1990, 8-25

379.65.12 Ko Endo, "Notes on the Trivandrum manusciprt of the Patanjaliyogasastravivarana", JIBSt 41.2, 1993, 19-24

379.65.12.5 Kapil Kapoor, "Analogy as argument in Adi Samkara's Vivekacudamani", SVUOJ 39, 1994, 1-32

379.65.13 T. S. Rukmani, "The Yogasutrabhasyavivarana is not a work of Samkaracarya the author of the Brahmasutrabhasya", JIP 26, 1998, 263-274

379.65.18 Samadhi- and Sadhana-padas edited and translated by T. S. Rukmani. New Delhi 2001. Two volumes.

379.65.25 Summarized by T. S. Rukmani,; EnIndPh 12, 2008, 240-260


       66.Yogataravali

See 1071A.1.4

379.66.0 Edited with a Bhavaprakasa in Mandalabrahmopanisad, Third edition, Mysore 1899

379.66.1 Edited in WSS

379.66.2 Edited in MWS

379.66.3 Edited in SG

379.66.3.0 Edited with the Mandalabrahmana Upanisad , with Samkara's Rajayogabhasya (?). MOLP 115, 1970

379.66.3.1 Edited and translated by Ramarayachar. Kerala 1975

379.66.3.2 Edited in Marathi script by Candrakanta Vasudeva Dandekar. Poona 1979

379.66.4 Edited by Sri Dayananda Sastri. Varanasi 1982

379.66.5 Translated by R.M.Umesh. TL 13.1, 1990, 48-58

379.66.7 Summarized by Ram Sankar Bhattacharya. EnIndPh 12, 2008, 574-576


       67.General

See a47.16:11,57,85,127,128,148.0; 221.1:141.3, 167.4.5; 235.1.3; 268.10.15;

297.1.6; 317.1:46,65,68,81.1,89.1,100; 317.3.5; 344.9.47.3; 363.5:17,28; 369.7:17,18,20,21.1,23,26; 637.7:16,166. aAV1262.4; KS68.6, 80.5. b23.1.272; 47.16:51,119; 175.24.40 363.5.23; 317.3.2. d47.16:41,50.2

379.67.1 F.H.H.Windischmann, Sancara sive de Theologumenis Vedanticorum. Bonn 1833

379.67.2 James Burgess, "On the date of Samkaracarya", IA 11, 1882, 263

379.67.3 K.T.Telang, "The date of Samkaracarya", IA 13, 1884, 95-103

379.67.4 J.C.Fleet, "A note on the date of Samkaracharya", IA 16, 1887, 41-42

379.67.5 M.N.Dvivedi, "Advaita philosophy of Samkara", WZKM 2, 1888, 95-114

379.67.6 V.B.Kameswar Aiyar, "Sri Samkara and bhakti", SJ 2, 1897: 69, 85

379.67.7 Charles Johnston, "Shankara, teacher of India", PB 2, 1897, 58. Also OC 11, 1898, 559-563

379.67.8 V.S.Aiyar, "Sri Samkaracarya", IR 4, 1903, 674-677

379.67.9 Sitanath Tattvabhusan, "Philosophy of Samkaracarya", IR 4, 1903: 140, 205

379.67.9.5 Lionel D. Barnett, Brahman-Knowledge: an Outline of the Philosophy of the Vedanta as set forth by the Upanishads and by Samkara. London 1907, 1920; New York 1910, 1911

379.67.10 V.Subrahmanya Iyer, "An apotheosis of Samkara", Madras Mail 1907. Reprinted VSIPT 1-3

379.67.11 K.T.Telang, Sankaracarya, Philosopher and Mystic. Adyar 1911

379.67.12 D.R.Bhandarkar, "Can we fix the date of Samkaracarya more accurately?", IA 41, 1912, 200

379.67.13 D.R.Bhandarkar, "Solecisms of Samkaracarya and Kalidasa", IR 41, 1912, 214

379.67.14 D.N.Pillai, Samkara the Sublime. Calcutta 1912

379.67.15 A.Desai, The Vedanta of Samkara expounded and vindicated. London 1913

379.67.16 P.D.Sastri, "Plato and Samkara", HR 30, 1914, 11-21

379.67.17 S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Critical study of Samkara", CR 2, 1914, 125-152

379.67.18 S.V.Venkatesvaran, "The date of Samkaracarya", IA 43, 1914, 238

379.67.19 N.Bhasyacharya, The Age of Sri Samkaracarya. Adyar 1915

379.67.20 V.S.Aiyar, "Samkara: reason or revelation?", SR 1, 1915, 29-36

379.67.21 Y.Subbarao, "Was Samkara the propagator of a new system of thought?", SR 1, 1915, 119-132

379.67.22 T.S.Narayana Sastri, The Age of Sri Samkara. Madras 1916. Enlarged edition 1971

379.67.23 N.K.Venkatesan, Sri Samkaracarya and his Kamakoti Peetha. Kumbakonam 1915

379.67.24 S.V.Venkateswara, "The date of Sankaracharya", JRAS 1916, 151-161

379.67.25 Bhakti Chaitanya, "The conception of mukti according to Samkaracharya", PB 21, 1916, 178

379.67.26 N.C.Ghosh, "Some parallels between Plato and Samkara", JIIP 1, 1918, 169-173

379.67.27 Pandit Mahabhagvat, "Samkaracarya's criterion of truth", IPR 1, 1917, 26-31

379.67.28 R.Zimmerman, "Truth and its criterion in Samkara's Vedanta", IPR 2, 1918-19, 304-339

379.67.29 R.Allar, "Shankara et la dialectique" in Approches de l'Inde (Paris 1919)

379.67.30 N.C.Ghosh, "Thoughts preceding and leading up to Sankara", JIIP 2.3, 1919, 16-33

379.67.31 N.C.Ghosh, "The idea of the Good and God of Plato as compared with the ideas of Brahman and isvara of Samkara", JIIP 2.2, 1919, 19-29

379.67.32 N.C.Ghosh, "The ideal world and the world of appearances of Plato as compared with the transcendental and empirical worlds of Samkara", JIIP 2.1, 1919, 17-29

379.67.33 Panduranga Sharma, "Samkara on Buddha", PAIOC 1.1, 1919, 97-98

379.67.34 V.S.Iyer and R.Zimmerman, "Anubhava: the criterion of truth in Samkara", IPR 3, 1920: 189, 395

379.67.35 M.A.Buch, The Philosophy of Samkara. Baroda 1921

379.67.36 V.Subrahmanya Iyer, "The philosophy of Samkara", JMysoreU 5, 1921, 354-358

379.67.37 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Samkara's commentaries on the Upanisads", SAMSJV 3.2, 101-110

379.67.38 R.Zimmerman, "Samkaracarya and Kant: a comparison", JASBo 25, 1922, 187-200

379.67.39 A.Guha, "Samkara and Ramanuja", CR 9, 1923, 74-81

379.67.40 S.Thirumalai, "Paralogisms of pure reason--Kant and Samkara", JMysoreUJ 8, 1924, 294-301

379.67.41 Jwala Prasad, "Some reflections on the philosophy of Samkara", PAIOC 3, Summaries 1924, 165

379.67.42 S.K.Padmanabha Sastri, "The relation between the systems of Samkara and other systems of philosophy", PAIOC 3, Summaries 1924, 34

379.67.43 K.C.Bhattacharya, "Samkara's doctrine of maya", ProcIPC 1, 1925, 45-57. Reprinted in KCBSP I, 93-108 and in RIndPh 1-14

379.67.44 Dhirendra Mohan Datta, "Some realistic aspects of the philosophy of Samkara", ProcIPC 1, 1925, 120-128. Reprinted in RIndPh 341-350

379.67.45 V.S.Ghate, "Samkaracharya", ERE 11, 1925, 185-189

379.67.46 M.G.Sastri, "An examination of Samkara's refutation of the Samkhya theory", Jayakrsnadas Krsnadas Polra Series 3, Ahmedabad 1925

379.67.47 Nagaraja Sharma, "Samkara's critique of Jainism", JainG 21, 1925, 337-350

379.67.48 Asokananda, "Sri Samkaracarya, a study", VK 12, 1925-26, 49-53

379.67.49 B.V.Kamesvar Iyer, "The probable date of Samkara", PAIOC 4.1, Summaries 1926, 38-40

379.67.49.1 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "Elements of realism and idealism in the philosophy of Samkaracarya", Jignyasa 1.1, 1926, 1-9

379.67.50 S.C.Dutt, "Dialectics of Samkara and Ramanuja", JDL 15, 1927, 131-148

379.67.50.1 K.G.Natesa Sastri, "Sri Samkaracarya", Jignyasa 1.3, 1927, 1-28; 1.4, 1927, 29-44

379.67.51 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "Elements of realism and idealism in the philosophy of Samkaracarya", Jignyasa 1.1, l927, 1-9. Summarized in PAIOC 4.1, 1926, 75-76

379.67.52 M.N.Sircar, Comparative Studies in Vedantism. Oxford 1927

379.67.53 N.K.Venkatesan, "Last days of Sri Samkaracarya", JOR 1, 1927, 330-335

379.67.54 A.C.Mukerji, "Some aspects of the absolutism of Samkaracarya", AUS 4, 1928, 375-433

379.67.55 T.R.Chintamani, "Date of Sri Samkaracarya and some of his predecessors", JOR 3, 1929, 39-56. Summarized in PAIOC 5, 1928, 119

379.67.56 Satindra Kumar Mukherjee, "Samkara on the nature of the object", PQ 5, 1929-30, 200-213

379.67.57 Sambidananda, "Advaita philosophy of Samkara", VK 16, 1929-30, 253

379.67.58 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "The date of Samkaracarya", IHQ 6, 1930, 168

379.67.59 D.G.Londhe, "The Advaita philosophy of Samkara and its later development", RPR 1.1, 1930, 30-52

379.67.60 Satindra Kumar Mukherjee, "Samkara on the relation between the Vedas and reason", IHQ 6, 1930, 108-113

379.67.61 Satindrakumar Mukherjee, "Samkara on the limits of empirical knowledge", ABORI 12, 1930, 64-70

379.67.62 K.B.Pathak, "Samkara attacked by Vidyanandin", ABORI 12, 1930, 84

379.67.63 S.Srikantha Sastri, "Vidyananda and Samkara-mata", ABORI 12, 1930, 252-255

379.67.64 Raghuvira Mitthulal Sastri, "Samkara and the Upanisads", PAIOC 5, 1930, 691-720

379.67.65 V.Subrahmanya Iyer, "Samkara and our own times", AP 2, 1931, 137

379.67.66 Satindra Kumar Mukherjee, "Samkara on empirical and transcendental knowledge", JDL 21, 1931, 1-30

379.67.67 Satindra Kumar Mukherjee, "Samkara on vivartavada", CR 39, 1931, 388-409

379.67.68 V.Subrahmanya Iyer, "Samkara and his view of life", VK 18, 1931-32, 92

379.67.69 K.A.Krishnaswamy Aiyar, "Samkara: was he a crypto-Buddhist?", VK 19, 1932-33, 1-31

379.67.70 G.Deb-Purkayastha, "Doctrine of maya in Samkara", CR 45, 1932, 313-325

379.67.71 E.P.Horrwitz, "Samkara and Vedanta", VL 19, 1932-33, 62ff

379.67.72 B.Kumarappa, "Place of morality in the philosophy of Samkara", PQ 7, 1932, 417-429

379.67.73 Satindra Kumar Mukherjee, "Samkara on the Absolute Being", JDL 22, 1932, 1-9

379.67.74 D.L.Murray, "'Natural' and 'spiritual' mysticism--Samkara and Eckhart", AP 3, 1932, 549ff.

379.67.75 B.N.Krishnamurti Sarma, "A critique of Samkara's rendering of yeyam prete", JAU 1, 1932, 241-249

379.67.76 Kokileswar Sastri, "Was Samkara a pantheist?", RPT 3.1, 1932, 1-12

379.67.77 P.T.Raju, "The problem of the infinite: Hegel, Bradley, and Samkara", PQ 8, 1932-33, 301-319

379.67.78 V.Subrahmanya Iyer, "Samkara and his modern critics", PQ 37, 1932: 377, 428

379.67.79 G.V.Budhakar, "Is the Advaita of Samkara Buddhism in disguise?", QJMS 24, 1933: 1, 160, 252, 314

379.67.80 J.N.Chubb, "Liberation according to Samkara", AP 4, 1933, 833 ff.

379.67.81 N.K.Venkatesam Pantulu, "Samkara and his philosophy in the epics, the Puranam and other literary works", PAIOC 7, Summaries 1933, 127-128

379.67.82 Sarvepalli Radhakrishnan, "Intellect and intuition in Samkara's philosophy", Triveni 6.1, 1933, 8-16

379.67.83 K.A.Nilakantha Sastri, "A note on the date of Samkara", JOR 7, 1933, 25-26

379.67.84 Kokilesvar Sastri, "An interpretation of Samkara's doctrine of maya", KBPCV 159-165

379.67.85 C.T.Srinivasan, "Some modern views on Samkara", JAU 2, 1933, 156-163. Also PB 42, 1937, 317-323

379.67.86 C.Mahadeviah, "Samkara--a philosopher", VK 21, 1934-35, 338 ff.

379.67.87 Ranganthananda, "Buddha and Samkara", VK 21, 1934-35, 93 ff.

379.67.88 D.S.Desai, "Some stock objections against Samkaracarya's Advaitism considered", PB 40, 1935, 479-487

379.67.89 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Kant and Samkara", AP 6, 1935, 382 ff

379.67.90 G.Ramakantacharya, "The place of Samkara in Hinduism", PAIOC 7, 1935, 359-372

379.67.91 K.R.Srinivasiengar, "Sarvamukti: Appayya Diksita and Samkara", RPR 6.2, 1935, 39-44

379.67.92 R.Brakell Buys, "Het wereldbeeld bij Shankara", TWP 30, 1936, 19-22

379.67.93 D.S.Desai, "Critical remarks on the idea of the Absolute found in Hegel and Samkara", PB 41, 1936, 573-576

379.67.94 D.S.Desai, "Samkaracarya's idea of the Absolute", PB 41, 1936, 290-292

379.67.95 Mysore Hiriyanna, "The world and the individual", KK 3, 1936, 589-590. Also PEIP 49-50

379.67.96 R.M.Nath, "Samkaracarya and Buddhism in Assam", JAssamRS 4, 1936, 31-38

379.67.97 J.C.Archer, "Samkara and the Hindu One", Review of Religions 1, 1937, 238-248

379.67.98 Olivier Lacombe, L'absolu selon le Vedanta. Paris 1937

379.67.99 A.C.Mukerji, "Samkara's theory of consciousness", AUS 13, 1937, 43-59

379.67.100 Kokileswar Sastri, "Samkara and the world", KSCF 73-80

379.67.101 P.T.Raju, "Skepticism and its place in Samkara's philosophy", PQ 13, 1937, 46-57

379.67.102 P.T.Raju, "The empirical and the noumenal truths in Samkara's philosophy", PAIOC 9, 1937, 575-583

379.67.103 B.G.Roy, "Bosanquet compared with Bradley and Samkara", DUS 2.1, 1937, 1-15

379.67.104 Kokileswar Sastri, "Maya in Samkara-Vedanta: its  objectivity", POS 39, 1937, 327-342

379.67.105 Rasvihary Das, "Samkara and modern idealism", PQ 14, 1938, 248-257

379.67.106 Prabhavananda, "Samkara's philosophy of non-dualism", VATW 1.9, 1938, 12-16; 2.3, 1939, 4-9

379.67.107 W.Thomas, "The non-dualistic theism of Samkara", ME 27, 1938, 86-91

379.67.108 Ganganatha Jha, Samkara Vedanta. Allahabad 1939, 1941

379.67.109 N.Aiyaswami Sastri, "Samkaracarya on Buddhist idealism", JSVRI 1.3, 1940, 71-86

379.67.110 Y.Subrahmanya Sarma, "Samkaracarya and Yoga", KK 7, 1940, 177-179

379.67.111 G.C.Dev, "Samkara and Bradley", PB 46, 1941, 500 ff.

379.67.112 N.K.Devaraja, "Meaning and status of reasoning in Samkara", AUS 941 (Philosophy) 1-8

379.67.113 P.K.Gode, "References to nose-ornament in some works ascribed to Samkaracarya and their effect on the authorship and chronology of these works", Ratnadipa (Rajapur 1941) 22-24. Reprinted in PKGS 5, 167-173

379.67.114 S.Sampath Iyangar, "Samkara and Ramanuja", VK 28, 1941-42, 433-438

379.67.115 V.Subrahmanya Iyer, "Samkara's philosophy and action", Triveni 13.4, 1941, 73-81

379.67.116 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Bergson and Samkara", AP 12, 1941, 174 ff.

379.67.117 M.N.Sircar, "The absolute experience", CR 80, 1941, 185-201

379.67.118 S.V.Sastri, "Samkara and his modern interpreters", PQ 17, 1941-42, 125-130. Reprinted PB 106, 2001, 402-404

379.67.119 Jagadiswarananda, "Acarya Samkara and Meister Eckhart", VK 29, 1942-43: 347, 372

379.67.120 Nand Kishore, Criteriology in Samkara. Ph.D.Thesis, Allahabad University 1942

379.67.121 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Sri Samkara's idealism and its message", JBHU 7.1, 1942, 65-80

379.67.122.Srikantha Sastri, "Sri Samkara in Cambodia?", IHQ 18, 1942, 175-179

379.67.123 N.M.Sastri, A Study of Samkara. Calcutta 1942

379.67.124 A.K.Sarkar, "Samkara: a non-intellectualist", VK 29, 1942-43, 48-54

379.67.125 A.K.Banerjee, "Acarya Samkara", VK 30, 1943-44, 340-343

379.67.126 B.Mahadevan, "Towards a healthy understanding of Samkara", VK 30, 1943-44, 70-72

379.67.127 A.K.Banerjee, "Samkara's Advaitavada and its bearing on practical life", PB 50, 1945, 392-398

379.67.128 A.K.Banerjee, "Samkara's message of unity", VK 32, 1945-46, 228 ff.

379.67.129 S.V.Ramamurti, "Samkara as a scientist sees him", VK 32, 1945-46, 27 ff.

379.67.130 A.K.Sarkar, "Western philosophy and Samkara", UCR 3, 1945, 58-76

379.67.131 D.S.Sarma, "Samkara and Ramanuja", VK 32, 1945-46, 56 ff.

379.67.132 A.K.Banerjee, "Some aspects of Samkara's philosophy", PB 51, 1946, 186-189

379.67.133 N.K.Brahma, "The finite and the infinite", VK 33, 1946-47, 11-14

379.67.134 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Samkara and Suresvara", DCKRPV 1-4. Reprinted in IPS 2, 97-100

379.67.135 Olivier Lacombe, "The grammatical theory of laksanartha as applied by Samkara to the definition of Brahman", PAIOC 13.6, Summaries 1946, 11-12

379.67.136 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Samkara's Isvara and Whitehead's God", AP 17, 1946, 454 ff.

379.67.137 D.Andreani, "Conoscenza sacra e conoscenza profana nel vedanta di Sankara", Rivista di storia della filosofia (Milano) 1947

379.67.138 Paul Hacker, "Samkaracarya and Samkara-bhagavat-pada", NIA 9, 1947, 175-186. Reprinted in PHKS 41-58; also PhilCon 41-56

379.67.139 Prabhavananda and Christopher Isherwood, "Samkara's philosophy of non-dualism", VATW 10, 1947: 29, 48

379.67.140 Bhumananda, "Influence of the Yogavasistha on Samkaracarya", PAIOC 14, Summaries 1948, 137

379.67.141 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Whitehead and Advaita Vedanta of Samkara", JGJRI 5, 1947-48 - 6, 1948-49

379.67.142 Paul Hacker, "Vedanta-Studien 1: Bemerkungen zum Idealismus Samkaras", Die World des Orients 3, 1948, 240-249. Reprinted in PHKS 59-68

379.67.143 Sriramulu, "Samkara's interpretation of sannyasa texts", PAIOC 14.2, Summaries 1948, l8

379.67.144 Adyananda, "Samkaracarya", PB 53, 1948, 338-339. Translated into French in LB 53, 1949, 513-517

379.67.145 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "Sri Samkaracarya's gospel of bhakti and mukti", BVK 1.1, 1948, 4-7

379.67.146 Helmut von Glasenapp, Der Stufenweg zum Gottlichen Sjankara's Philosophie der All-Einheit. Baden-Baden 1948

379.67.147 Zacarias de Santa Teresa, "Une studio sobre filosofia indiana (teoria cosmologica de Samkaracarya)", PICP 1948, part 2, 441-465

379.67.148 R.B.Athavale, "Samkaracarya's contribution to the interpretation of the Vedas", PAIOC 15, Summaries 1949, 2

379.67.149 J.Lambermont, "L'absolu selon Samkara", RPL 47, 1949, 248-258

379.67.150 S.Sampath Iyengar, "Sri Samkara", VK 36, 1949-50, 57-60

379.67.151 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Sri Samkara the mastermind", VK 36, 1949-50, 507-508

379.67.152 R.Rao, "Psychological standpoint of Samkara", BVK 10, 1949, 88-103

379.67.153 R.P.Singh, "Vedantic world-view of Samkara", PB 54, 1949, 364-371

379.67.154 R.P.Singh, The Vedanta of Samkara. Jaipur 1949

379.67.155 S.Sriramulu, "Sannyasa-vidhi or a criticism of Samkara's interpretation", PAIOC 15, Summaries 1949, 15-16

379.67.156 P.Seshadri, Sri Samkaracarya. Trivandrum 1949

379.67.157 R.N.Dandekar, "Samkaracarya", KK 16, 1950-51, 458-463

379.67.158 G.R.Malkani, "Mayavada: Sri Samkara and Sri Aurobindo", PQ 23, 1950-51, 87-104

379.67.159 Ram Pratap Singh, "The individual self in the Vedanta of Samkara", PQ 23, 1950-51, 227-234

379.67.160 G.V.Devasthali, "Samkaracarya's indebtedness to Mimamsa", JOI 1, 1951-52, 23-30

379.67.161 Paul Hacker, "Eigentumlichkeiten der Lehre und Terminologie Samkaras: avidya, namarupa, maya, isvara", ZDMG 100, 195l, 246-286. Reprinted in PHKS 69-109. Translated into English by John Taber, PhilCon 57-100.

379.67.162 P.Horsch, Le notion d'upadhi dans le philosophie de Samkara. These de Lettres. University of Paris 1951

379.67.163 A.K.Mazumdar, "The nature of Self--Gentile and Samkara", Mahendra 167-173

379.67.164 Ram Pratap Singh, "Samkara and Aurobindo", URS 1951, 32-60

379.67.165 B.Tivari, "Samkara the reconciler", PAIOC 16, Summaries 1951, 239-241

379.67.166 Helmut von Glasenapp, "The Vedantic Buddhism", MB 59, 1951, 290-293

379.67.167 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Samkara's conception of ultimate value", QAP 89-93

379.67.168 Daniel H.H. Ingalls, "The study of Samkaracarya", ABORI 33, 1952, 1-14

379.67.169 Y.Krishan, "Samkara's contribution to Indian thought", VQ 18, 1952-53: 247, 330

379.67.170 Surendranath Bhattacharya, "The philosophy of Samkara", CHI 3, 237-244

379.67.171 E.Brehier, "Les analogies de la creation chez Samkara et chez Proclus", RP 143, 1953, 329-333

379.67.172 R.V.de Smet, The Theological Method of Samkara. Ph.D.Thesis, Rome 1953

379.67.173 Daniel H.H. Ingalls, "Samkara on the question: whose is avidya?", PEW 3, 1953, 69-72

379.67.174 S.K.Ramacandra Rao, "Psychological speculations of Samkara", Scientia 88, 1953, 141-145

379.67.174.1 Candrodaya Bhattacharya, "Shankara on subjective idealism", JPA 1.3-4, 1954, 15-20

379.67.175 Roma Chaudhuri, "Brahman or the ultimate reality according to Samkara and Ramanuja", PB 59, 1954, 269-272

379.67.176 R.V. de Smet, "Correct interpretations of the definition of the Absolute according to Samkara and Saint Thomas Aquinas", PQ 27, 1954, 187-194. Also ProcIPC 29.2, 1954, 3-10

379.67.177 R.V. de Smet, "Language et connaissance de l'absolu chez Samkara", RPL 52, 1954, 31-7

379.67.178 A.Elenjimittam, "Aquinas and Samkara", VK 41, 1954-55, 17 ff.

379.67.179 P.G.Kulkarni, "Nature of the sensible world according to Plotinus and Samkara", JPA 2, 1954, 33-39

379.67.180 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "The metaphysics of Samkara", PEW 3, 1954, 359-364

379.67.181 G.Patti, "L'Absoluto secondo il pensiero di Samkara e la sua importenza nell induismo", LCC 105, 1954, 256-269

379.67.182 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Samkara's mysticism", ABORI 35, 1954, 84-90

379.67.183 S.N.L.Shrivastava, "Was Samkara an illusionist?", PB 59, 1954, 23-27

379.67.184 V.B.Athavale, "Date of Adya Samkaracarya", PO 19, 1955, 35-39

379.67.185 S.A.Chattopadhyay, "Is Samkara a realist?", PQ 28, 1955, 139-144

379.67.186 Brahmachari Durgachaitanya, "Sri Samkara, his life, work and inspiration", VK 42, 1955-56, 181-185

379.67.187 V.Subrahmanya Iyer, various articles on Samkara in VSIPT 301-440

379.67.188 C.Kunhan Raja, "The infinite", PB 60, 1955, 593-606

379.67.189 Ajit K. Sinha. Problems of Appearance and Reality in Samkara and Bradley.   Ph.D.Thesis, University of Illinois 1955

379.67.190 S.Ramachandra Sastri, "Samkara and Vaisnavism", PAIOC 18, 1955, 499-504

379.67.191 B.K.Sengupta, "Is Samkara a crypto-Buddhist?", JOI 5, 1955-56, 19-28. Summary in PAIOC 17, 1953, 131

379.67.192 A.R.Bhattacharya, "Brahman of Samkara and sunyata of Madhyamikas", IHQ 32, 1956, 270-285

379.67.193 K.C.Chakravarti, "The transcendental ego and the transcendental Self", PB 61, 1956, 449-455

379.67.194 Ganananda, "Sri Samkara's ideal of conduct", VK 43, 1956-57, 276-279

379.67.195 Ram Svarupa Naulakha, Samkara's Brahmavada. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Agra 1956

379.67.196 J.J.Navone, "Samkara and the Vedic tradition", PPR 17, 1956-57, 248-255

379.67.197 P. Nagaraja Rao, "Philosophy of Samkara", JKU 1956-57, 81-91; 2, 1958, 31-36

379.67.198 S.N.L.Shrivastava, "The Absolute in Bradley and Samkara", PEW 6, 1956, 99-112

379.67.199 Ram Pratap Singh, "Samkara and Bhaskara", PQ 29, 1956, 75-82

379.67.200 P.B.Vidyarthi, "Absolute in Samkara", JUBihar 1, 1956, 70-78

379.67.201 Evelyn Berry, A Comparative Study of the Metaphysics of Samkara, Vijnanavada Buddhism and Berkeley. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Lucknow 1957

379.67.202 Govind Chandra Dev, "Activism in Samkara and his followers", JASP 2, 1957, 50-55

379.67.203 C.T.Kenghe, "No antinomy imputable to Sri Samkaracarya", OT 3.2-4, 1957, 13-19

379.67.204 T.L., "Meditation on Shri Samkara and Zen Buddhism", MW 31, 1957, 147-152

379.67.205 A.V.S.Rao, "Life and works of Sri Samkara", PB 62, 1957: 473, 499 

379.67.206 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Religious significance of Samkara's Advaita", Vid 2, 1957, 13-19

379.67.207 S.N.L.Shrivastava, "Samkara's Weltanschauung (in contemporary philosophical thought)", PB 62, 1957, 189-195

379.67.208 S.N.L.Shrivastava, "Samkara on God, religion and morality", PEW 7, 1957-58, 91-106

379.67.209 Anan C. Swain, A Study of Samkara's Concept of Creation. Ph.D.Thesis, Cornell University 1957

379.67.210 J.A.B.Van Buitenen, "Kapyasam pundarikam", BDCRI 18, 1957, 336-343

379.67.211 Atmananda, Sri Samkara's Teachings in His Own Words. Bombay 1958

379.67.212 D.Chaitanya, "Essentials of Samkara's thought", VK 45, 1958, 190 ff.

379.67.213 Rasik Goven, "The absolutism of Samkaracarya as compared with Maulana Jalaluddin Rumi's school of thought", P 1, 1958, 92-99

379.67.214 Arthur Isenberg, "Reflections on the concept of karma and dharma in Samkara's Advaita Vedanta", VK 45, 1958, 145 ff.

379.67.215 James H.K. Norton, "Samkara and Ramanuja on sat", JMU 30, 1958, 141-148

379.67.216 A.Vedantasastri, "Acarya Samkara in the light of Krsnadas Kaviraj", CR 149, 1958, 285-288

379.67.217 Madeleine Biardeau, "Quelques reflexions sur l'apophatisme de Samkara", IIJ 3, 1959, 81-101

379.67.218 Roma Chaudhuri, "Samkara and Ramanuja", BRMIC 10, 1959, 57-63

379.67.219 Kalyan Chandra Gupta, "The self and the body", PQ 32, 1959, 43-48

379.67.220 Arthur Isenberg, "Samkara's system of philosophy", IR 60, 1959, 311-313

379.67.221 R.B.Joshi, "The origin of maya in Samkara's philosophy", JIH 37, 1959: 179, 289

379.67.232 Olivier Lacombe, "Samkara, héraut de l'hindouisme", RTP 9, 1959, 201-207

379.67.233 Ganeswar Misra, "An examination of an instance of metaphysical logic--analysis of identity-propositions by Bradley and Samkara", PQ 31, 1959, 281-288

379.67.234 Sangam Lal Pandey, "Samkara and philosophy of science", Islamic Culture (Hyderabad) 1959. Reprinted in WIP 378-389

379.67.235 M.D.Paradkar, "Field of observation of Samkaracarya--similes from the nature-world", JUBo (Arts) 28, 1959, 78-131

379.67.236 N.Ramesan, Sri Samkaracarya. Ponnur 1959, 1971

379.67.237 T.Visvanathan, "Samkara and modern thought", VK 46, 1959, 454 ff.

379.67.238 S.S.Raghavachar, "Some observations of Sri Samkara on bhakti", VK 46, 1959, 141-146

379.67.239 Brahm Swarup Agrawal, Samkara and Spinoza--A Comparative Study. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Agra 1960

379.67.240 A.R.Bhattacharya, "Samkara and Buddhistic speculation", JAssamRS 14, 1960, 141-146

379.67.241 B.R.Chaitanya, "Life and thought of Sri Samkaracarya", VK 47, 1960, 43-53

379.67.242 R.V. de Smet, "Fundamental antinomy of Sri Samkaracarya's methodology", OT 4, 1960, 1-9

379.67.243 N.K.Devaraja, "Samkara's alleged indebtedness to Buddhist thinkers", Bh 4, 1960-61, 36-42

379.67.244 N.S.Dravid, "Is Samkara's critique of causation unjustified?", JPA 7, 1960, 163-172

379.67.245 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, "Samkara's contribution to philosophy and religion", KK 24, 1960, 166-170

379.67.246 B.G.Ketkar, "An examination of Samkara's theory of causation", JPA 7, 1960, 21-28

379.67.248 Y.K.Menon and R.F.Allen, The Pure Principle. East Lansing, 1960

379.67.249 K.Satchidananda Murty, "Samkara's views on religious life", Religion and Society 7.2, 1960, 46-60

379.67.250 K.Kunjunni Raja, "On the date of Samkaracarya and allied problems", ALB 24, 1960, 125-148. Reprinted in Rajasudha 47-75

379.67.251 S.K.Ramacandra Rao, Samkara: A Psychological Study. Mysore 1960

379.67.252 V.P.Varma, "Samkara and Kant", VK 46, 1960, 505-515

379.67.253 Brahm Swarup Agarwal, "Mechanism in knowledge: a comparison of Samkara and Spinoza", IPC 6, 1961, 357-361

379.67.254 Candrodaya Bhattacharya, "Transcendental consciousness in the philosophy of Samkara", JIAP 1, 1961-62, 89-112

379.67.255 Karuna Bhattacarya, "Samkara's criticism of Nagarjuna", JIAP 1, 1961-62, 53-65

379.67.256 Manjulal Sevaklal Dave, "Shri Adya Sankaracharya: his maths andmemorials", SPP, special number March 1961, 25-36

379.67.257 B.G.Ketkar, "Samkara's critique of causation", JPA 8.29-30, 1961, 49-52

379.67.258 Trivedi Krishnaji, "Sri Samkaracarya and Krishna bhakti", VK 48, 1961-62, 509-511

379.67.259 A.K.Mukherji, "The epistemological realism of Samkara", PQ 34, 1961-62, 183-185

379.67.260 M.D.Paradkar, "Samkara's similes", OT 5.1-3, 1961, 15-17

379.67.261 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Samkara and his philosophy", VK 48, 1961, 360-366

379.67.262 S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Samkara and the schools of Advaita", CPSSS 122-128

379.67.262.1 Chelkuzil Thomas, Apearance and Reality in Samkara and Francis Herbert Bradley. Ph.D.Thesis, The Hartford Seminary 1961

379.67.263 J.A.B.Van Buitenen, "The relative dates of Samkara and Bhaskara", ALB 25, 1961, 268-273. Reprinted SILP 187-190

379.67.264 A.Nataraja Aiyar and S.Lakshinarasimha Sastri, The Traditional Age of Sri Samkaracarya and the Math. Madras 1962

379.67.265 N.K.Devaraja, An Introduction to Samkara's Theory of Knowledge. Delhi 1962

379.67.266 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, "Sri Samkara as a philosophical and religious thinker", KK 26, 1962, 145-152

379.67.267 R.B.Joshi, "Was Samkara influenced by Islam?", OT 6.4, 1962, 1-16

379.67.268 Ashok Lal, "Liberation in Vedanta: a comparative estimate of Samkara and Ramanuja", UJP 1, 1962, 59-64

379.67.269 Hajime Nakamura, "A conflict between traditionalism and rationalism: a problem with Samkara", EW 12.2, 1962, 153-162

379.67.270 S.Subrahmanya Sastri, "Some differences between Samkara and Vacaspati Misra", EPM 257-263

379.67.271 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, "Philosophy and religion of Sri Samkara", KK 27, 1963, 141-146

379.67.272 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, "Sri Aurobindo and Samkara on the Absolute", PB 68, 1963, 98-104

379.67.273 Georg Landmann, "Die analoge Gotteserkenntnis nach Shankara", Kairos 5, 1963, 262-276

379.67.274 Leta Jane Lewis, "Fichte and Samkara", PEW 12, 1963, 301-310

379.67.275 V.G.Lokare, A Critical Comparison of Spinoza's 'Substance' and the 'Brahman' of Samkara. Ph.D.Thesis, University of London 1963-64

379.67.276 P.Nagaraja Rao, "The substance and structure of Sri Samkara's Advaita Vedanta", SVUOJ 6, 1963, 41-56

379.67.277 Sarvepalli Radhakrishnan, "Samkara", HPE 272-286

379.67.278 P.S.Sastri, "The pithas and the date of Samkara", IHQ 39, 1963, 160-184

379.67.279 P.S.Sastri, "Samkara's conception of the world in Prapancasaratantra", PB 68, 1963, 62-66

379.67.280 A.K.Sinha, "Samkara's theory of the Self", IPC 8, 1963, 7-13

379.67.281 R. de Smet, "Samkara's nondualism (Advaitavada)", in Religious Hinduism

379.67.282 N.S.Dravid, "Samkara's justification of philosophical inquiry", VVMFV 302-305

379.67.283 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, Advaita Vedanta according to Samkara. Bombay 1964

379.67.284 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, "Darwin, Alexander, Aurobindo and Samkara on evolution", PB 69, 1964, 103-108

379.67.285 Daya Krishna, "Reflections on an alleged incident in Samkara's life", Q 43, 1964, 31-35

379.67.286 Sengaku Mayeda, "Adi Samkaracarya's teaching on the means to moksa: jnana and karman", JOR 34-35, 1964-66, 66-75

379.67.287 R.S.Naulakha, Samkara's Brahmavada. Kanpur 1964

379.67.288 Anima Sengupta, "Samkara and Ramanuja: a comparative study", PB 69, 1964, 170-177. Also ESOSIP. Summary in CIDO 26, Summaries 1964, 223-224

379.67.289 Ram Pratap Singh, "Sankara and Radhakrishnan", RSV 440-452

379.67.290 Guru Dass. "The disciples of Sri Samkara", Srngeri Souvenir, Madras 1955, 83-86

379.67.291 C.P.Ramaswami Iyer, "Uniqueness of Samkaracarya", Srngeri Souvenir, Madras 1965, 41-47

379.67.292 T.L.Venkatarama Iyer, "Samkara--his life and teachings", Srngeri Souvenir, Madras 1965, 87-89

379.67.293 Daya Krishna, "Adhyasa--a non-Advaitic beginning in Samkara Vedanta", PEW 15, 1965, 243-250

379.67.294 T.M.P.Mahadevan. "The philosophy of Samkara", VATW 174, 1965, 26-30

379.67.295 Nityabodhananda, "Samkara and Meister Eckhart", VK 52, 1965-66, 66-69

379.67.296 Sarvepalli Radhakrishnan, "Date and life of Samkara", Srngeri Souvenir, Madras 1965, 38-39

379.67.297 S.Roy, The Heritage of Samkara. Allahabad 1965

379.67.298 Hari Prasad Shastri, "In what sense is the world unreal in Sri Samkara's philosophy?", Self Knowledge (London) 16, 1965, 124-127

379.67.299 Apurvananda, "Acarya Samkara", VK 53, 1966 - 58, 1971-72

379.67.300 T.N.Dave, "Sri Samkaracarya and sphota", SPP 6, 1966, 19-27

379.67.301 Aditi De, "Samkara and the concept of maya", PatUJ 21.3, 1966, 1-4

379.67.302 Raghunath Damodar Karmarkar, Samkara's Advaita. Dharwar 1966

379.67.303 Sangam Lal Pandey, "Samkara's dialectic", AUS 1966, 25-42. Reprinted in WIP 355-377

379.67.304 P.Nagaraja Rao, "The mind and message of Sri Samkara", PB 71, 1966, 491-502

379.67.305 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Sri Samkara and the Upanisads", VK 53, l966-67, 449-453

379.67.306 L.P.N.Sinha, "A critical note on Samkara's doctrine of maya", IPC 11.1, 1966, 8-9

379.67.307 Cedomil Veljacic, "An existentialist's approach to Samkara", Shakti 3.7, 1966, 31-34

379.67.308 C.P.Ramaswamy Aiyar, "Uniqueness of Samkaracarya", SPP 7, 1967, 62-71

379.67.309 Kalyan Kumar Bagchi, "Sankara's emphasis on the point of view of jnana: its philosophic significance", IPC 12.4, 1967, 44-46

379.67.310 Richard Brooks, The Rope and the Snake: A Study of Samkara's Concept of Superimposition (adhyasa). Ph.D.Thesis, University of Minnesota 1967

379.67.311 Rasvihary Das, "Samkara as a religious teacher, philosopher and mystic", JIAP 6, 1967, 1-20

379.67.312 Manjulika Guha, "The concept of reality in Samkara and Bradley", JASBe 9, 1967, 208-211

379.67.313 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Samkara, the great Indian philosopher", IAC 16, 1967, 5-16

379.67.314 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Samkara's contribution to world philosophy", SIUM 103-106. Reprinted in PNREIPR

379.67.315 Satchidanandendra Saraswati, Salient Features of Samkara's Vedanta. Holenarsipur 1967

379.67.316 Ram Nath Sharma, "Samkara: a mystic or rationalist?", AUJR 15, 1967, 89-92

379.67.317 Noel Sheth, "Samkara on how effects pre-exist their cause", IPQ 7, 1967, 298-304

379.67.318 Ram Lal Singh, Nature and Status of Reason in Kant and Samkara. Ph.D.Thesis, Allahabad University 1967

379.67.319 Ajit Kumar Sinha, "The nature of space, time and causality according to Samkara and F.H.Bradley", KAG 218-223

379.67.320 Brahma Swarup, "Absolutism and pantheism (Samkara and Spinoza)", Darshana 26, 1967, 23-27

379.67.321 K.R.Venkataraman, The Throne of Transcendental Wisdom. Second edition, revised. Madras 1967

379.67.322 Ananyananda, "Sri Samkara: his life and thought", PB 73, 1968, 213-221

379.67.323 Candrodaya Bhattacharya, "The intuition of Brahman in Samkara's philosophy", JIAP 7.1, 1968, 1-11

379.67.324 Paul Hacker, "Samkara der Yogin und Samkara der Advaitin. Einige Beobachtungen", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 119-148. Reprinted PHKS 213-242. Translated into English by Jarava Lal Mehta, PhilCom 101-134.

379.67.325 Sy-Quy Hoang, Le Moi qui me depasse selon le Vedanta. Paris 1968

379.67.326 M.K.Venkatarama Iyer, "The practical aspect of Sri Samkara's teaching", PB 73, 1968, 221-227

379.67.327 Shanti Joshi, The Message of Samkara. Allahabad 1968

379.67.328 T.M.P.Mahadevan, Sankaracharya. New Delhi 1968

379.67.329 S.S.Mukherji, "Jiva according to Sri Caitanya and Samkara", IPC 13.3, 1968, 34-37

379.67.330 Max Nolan, "Samkara and the causal concept", PB 73, 1968, 60-69

379.67.331 Sangam Lal Pandey, "Authentic works of Samkaracarya", JGJRI 24, 1968, 161-178

379.67.332 V.Raghavan, "The Sukanusasana (Sukanuprasna)", ABORI 48-49, 1968, 421-426

379.67.333 N.Ramesan, "Samkara Bhagavatpada", PA 47-52

379.67.334 A.K.Sarkar, "Samkara's interpretation of the Self and its influence on later Indian thought", Self 142-155

379.67.335 S.N.L.Shrivastava. Samkara and Bradley. Delhi 1968

379.67.336 Tilmann Vetter, "Zur Bedeutung des Illusionismus bei Samkara", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 407-423

379.67.337 Amiya Chakravarti, "Samkara--Advaitism and bhakti", in Sankara and Shanmata

379.67.338 R.V.de Smet, "Samkara and Aquinas on liberation (mukti)", IPA 5, 1969, 239-247

379.67.339 Will Durant, "The system of Samkara" in Sankara and Shanmata

379.67.340 Ganeswar Misra, "The logical foundations of Samkara Vedanta", Bh 3, 1969, 95-111. Reprinted in Ganeswar Misra, Analytical Studies in Indian Philosophical Problems (Bhubaneshwar 1971), 1-33

379.67.340.5 J.N.Mohanty, "The logical foundations of Samkara Vedanta", Bharati 3, 1969. Reprinted LRA 41-56

379.67.341 S.G.Mudgal, Impact of Buddhism and Samkhya on Samkara's Thought. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Poona 1969

379.67.342 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Philosophy of Sankaracharya" in Sankara and Shanmata

379.67.343 P.Sankaranarayanan, "Life and work of Sri Samkara" in Sankara and Shanmata

379.67.344 Satchidanandendra Sarasvati, Samkara's Clarification of Certain Vedantic Concepts. Holenarsipur 1969

379.67.345 K.R.R.Sastry, "The works of Samkara", VK 56, 1969-70, 102-104

379.67.346 B.N.Sinha, "Reality and appearance in Samkara and Bradley", PB 74, 1969, 301-308

379.67.347 Ninian Smart, "Samkara and the West", in Samkara and Shanmata

379.67.348 Anam Charan Swain, "Samkara's attitude towards the accounts of creation", VK 56, 969-70, 230-233

379.67.349 K.R.Venkataraman, Samkara and his Sarada Pitha in Srngeri. Calcutta 1969

379.67.350 Sobharani Basu, "Sri Samkaracharya as a bhakta", VK 57, 1970-71, 149-152

379.67.351 Donald H. Bishop, "Samkara and Kant", BV 5, 1970, 57-69

379.67.352 Paul Hacker, "Samkara's conception of man", Studia Missionalia (Rome) 19, 1970, 123-131. Also in Man, Culture and Religion (Roem 1970), 123-131. Also in German Scholars in India 1 (Banaras 1973), 99-106. Reprinted in PHKS 243-250; also PhilCom 177-186

379.67.353 D.S.Jakatey, "God and personality in the light of Samkara Vedanta", in K.D.Tangod (ed.), The Doctrine of God. Seminar Proceedings, 1970 (Belgaum 1970), 146-164

379.67.354 K.Krishnamurthy, "Samkara's stotras", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 38-42. Also BV 11, 1976, 126-133

379.67.355 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Samkaracarya and Kerala", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 77-78

379.67.356 K.Padmanabhan, "Advaita and Sri Samkara", MP 7, 1970, 12-16

379.67.357 O.Ramachandran, "Age of Samkara and the social conditions of the times", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 22-24

379.67.358 B.N.K.Sharma, "Out-Samkaraing Samkara", JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 37-40

379.67.359 Santosh Chandra Sen Gupta, "The metaphysics of inwardness: Samkara's contributions to Indian metaphysics", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 81-85

379.67.360 A.K.Sinha, "Samkara's doctrine of nescience in the context of present-day science", Rtam 1.2, 1970, 55-68

379.67.361 N.Subramania Sastri, "Sri Samkaracharya's life in the light of Vyasacala's Samkaravijayam", SVUOJ 13, 1970, 27-36

379.67.362 Ramananda Tirtha, A Writer's Study of Samkara versus the Six Preceptors of Advaita. Trichinopoly 1970

379.67.363 Donald Richard Tuck, Maya: Interpretive Principle for an Understanding of the Religious Thought of Samkara and Radhakrishnan. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Iowa 1970

379.67.364 V.Venkatachalam, "The Sudhanvan copper plate", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 86 ff.

379.67.365 D.Venkatavadhani, "The path and the goal according to Sri Samkara", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 15-21

379.67.366 J.G.Wilson, "Samkara, Ramanuja and the function of religious language", Religious Studies 6, 1970, 57-68

379.67.367 N.K.Devaraja and N.S.Hirematha, A Source Book of Samkara. Banaras 1971

379.67.368 K.A.Nilakantan Enyather, "Metaphysics and ethics in Samkara", VK 58, 1971-72, 503-506

379.67.369 R.K.Garg, "Aurobindo and Samkaracarya--a comparative study", Darshana 43, 1971, 22-26

379.67.370 Manjulika Guha, "The theories of knowledge of Bradley and Samkara", JASBe 13, 1971, 178-186

379.67.370.5 A. L. Herman, "Indian theodicy: Samkara and Ramanuja on Brahmasutra II.1.32-36", PEW 12, 1971, 265-281. Reprinted IPE 4, 1-18

379.67.371 Herbert Herring, "The concept of appearance in Plato, Samkara and Kant", IPA 7, 1971, 19-28

379.67.372 A.G.Javadekar, "Some unparalleled distinctive aspects of Sankaracharya's philosophy", IPA 7, 1971, 29-35

379.67.373 Boniface Lewis, "Samkara and Christianity" in PBDFV 416-420

379.67.374 A.K.Majumdar, "Impact of Samkaracarya on Indian thought", VQ 37, 1971-72, 1-51

379.67.375 M.P.Marathe, "Concept of adhyasa in Samkara's philosophy", JUP 35, 1971, 47-58

379.67.376 Ram Shankar Mishra, "Reality and process in the light of Aruni" in RMSPR

379.67.377 S.G.Moghe, "Samkaracarya and Purvamimamsa", MO 4, 1971, 79-89 

379.67.378 James Ramlall, Problem of Being in Samkara and Heidegger. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Poona l971

379.67.379 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Samkara's Advaita Vedanta" in PNREIPR 143-159

379.67.380 P.Nagaraja Rao, "Samkara's contribution to world philosophy" in PNREIPR 160-162

379.67.381 Gaurinath Sastri, "Samkara and Tantra literature", FRSD 316-320

379.67.382 P.K.Sundaram, "Some reflections on Samkara's concept of God", JMU 43.1-2, 1971, 144-149

379.67.383 Anam Charan Swain, "Concept of hiranyagarbha in the philosophy of Samkara", FRSD 126-133

379.67.384 Ramananda Bharati, "Samkara and Ramanuja (a comparative study)", PTG 7.1, 1972, 22-27

379.67.385 Bakutnath Bhattacharya, "Acharya Samkara the transcendentalist", OH 20, 1972, 21-32

379.67.386 S.K.Chattopadhyaya, "Samkara's philosophy of language", VJP 8.2, 1972, 23-33

379.67.387 John B. Chethimattam, "Samkaracharya's theological method", UandU 90-113

379.67.388 Sitanath Goswami, "Life and teachings of Sri Samkaracharya", Anviksa 6, 1972, 99-107. Reprinted IndTradII, 113-119

379.67.389 Manjulika Guha, "The idea of self in the philosophies of Samkara and Bradley", JASBo 47-48, 1972-73, 48-53

379.67.390 B.R.Kulkarni, "Summum bonum in Samkara", PTG 7.1, 1972, 77-81

379.67.391 A.Kuppuswami, Sri Bhagavatpada Samkaracharya. Varanasi 1972

379.67.392 Ram Murti Sharma, "The doctrine of maya of Samkara", JDSUD 1.2, 1972, 59-64

379.67.393 C.Sivaramamurti, Bhagavatpada Sri Samkaracharya. New Delhi 1972

379.67.394 S.P.Verma, Evaluation of Samkara's Critique of Rival Metaphysical Systems. Ph.D.Thesis, Kurukshetra University 1972

379.67.395 Haripada Chakraborti, Asceticism in Ancient India in Brahmanical, Buddhist, Jaina and Ajivika Societies from the earliest times to the period of Samkaracarya. Calcutta 1973

379.67.395.5 J. Dash, "Knowledge - a priori and svatah pramanam in Samkara", PAOPA 4, 1973, 49-55

379.67.396 Sara Grant, "Reflections on the mystery of Christ suggested by a study of Samkara's concept of relation", GWAM 105-116

379.67.397 Robert Erwin Gussner, Hymns of Praise: A Textual-Critical Analysis of Selected Vedantic Stotras Attributed to Sankara with reference to the Question of Authenticity. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1973

379.67.398 Paul Martin-Dubost, Samkara et le Vedanta Sein. Paris 1973

379.67.399 Gajendra Narain Mishra, Samkara's Doctrine of Maya and Aurobindo's Refutation of It: A Critical Study. Ph.D.Thesis, Agra University 1973

379.67.400 Ganeswar Misra, "Samkara's analysis of moral arguments", BUUJH 7, 1973, 1-6

379.67.401 G.C.Nayak, "The philosophy of Sankaracarya: a reappraisal", IndPQ 1, 1973-74, 52-81

379.67.401.1 K.N.Neelakantham Elayath, The Ethics of Samkara. Kerala 1973

379.67.402 Satchidanendra Saraswati, Misconceptions about Samkara. Holenarsipur 1973

379.67.403 R.B.Athavale, "Samkara's spiritual interpretation of some Rgvedic rks", JASBo 49-50, 1974-76, 15-22

379.67.404 R.Balasubramanian, "The philosophical prose style of Samkara", JMU 46.2, 1974, 42-64

379.67.405 Karuna Bhattacharya, "Sankarism and pessimism", JIAP 13.1, 1974, 44-51

379.67.406 Rama Shankar Bhattacharya, "Was Samkara ignorant of the Ramayana and the Atharva Veda?", Hindutva 5.2, 1974, 26-28

379.67.406.5 Shlomo Biderman, Reality and Illusion in the Philosophy of Samkara. Dissertation, Tel-Aviv 1974

379.67.407 Mario Piantelli, Samkara e le Rinascite de Brahmanisime. Fossano 1974

379.67.408 G.Sundara Ramaiah, Brahman: A Comparative Study of the Philosophies of Sankara and Ramanuja. Waltair 1974

379.67.409 A. Ramamurti, Advaita Mysticism of Samkara. Santiniketan 1974

379.67.410 K.J.Shah, "A note towards the discussion of Samkara's theory of error", IndPQ 2, 1974-75, 1-8

379.67.411 H.S.Ursekar, "Contribution of Samkaracarya to philosophy", Shankara Matham Souvenir Volume, Bombay 1974. Reprinted in HSUEI 199-201

379.67.412 D.Ramaswamy Ayyangar, "Samkara and Ramanuja", Dilip 2.3, 1975, 3-5

379.67.412.1 Dipankar Chatterjee, Morality and Liberation in the Philosophies of Samkara and the Bhavadgita. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Washington 1975

379.67.413 V.A.Devasenapati, Kamakottam Nayanmars and Adi Samkara. Madras 1975

379.67.414 K.N.Nilakantan Elayath, "Freedom of will and action in Samkara's philosophy", VK 62, 1975-76, 401-406

379.67.415 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Samkara", ITAI 283-300

379.67.416 Sengaku Mayeda, "On the cosmological view of Samkara", ALB 39, 1975, 186-204

379.67.417 Harihar Misra, "Is Samkara an acosmist?", AOPA 5, 1975, 17-21

379.67.418 S.G.Mudgal, Advaita of Samkara: A Reappraisal. Varanasi 1975

379.67.419 Kenneth H. Post, "Samkara's objection to the sphotavada", ABORI 56, 1975, 67-76

379.67.419.5 Rajendra Ram, "A study of some aspects of Samkaracarya's role in Nepal (A.D. 788-820)", JHR 7.2, 1975, 68-75

379.67.420 C.V.Raval, "Radhakrishnan's interpretation of the nature and status of the philosophical world in Samkara Vedanta", SPP 15-16, 1975-76, 64-86

379.67.421 Sukhamay Sarkar, "Acharya Sankara and Acharya Pranavananda", HinduReg 5, 1975, 142-146

379.67.422 Edith Wyschograd, "The concept of the world in Samkara: a reply to Milton K. Munitz", PEW 25, 1975: 301, 347

379.67.423 K.Guru Dutt, "Shri Samkaracharya", BV 11, 1976, 154-159

379.67.424 S.L.Gupta, "Sankaracharya and social responsibility", ICQ 31.3, 1976, 12-14

379.67.426 David N. Lorenzen, "The life of Samkaracharya", in Frank E. Reynolds and D.Capps (eds.), The Biographical Process: Studies in the History and Philosophy of Religions (The Hague 1976). Reprinted in ESEHD 155-176

379.67.427 M.P.Marathe, "Samkara's criticism of syadvada: a reconsideration", BandJ 2, 25-33

379.67.428 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samkara's view of ethics", PhilEW 192-207

379.67.429 Y.Keshava Menon, Mind of Adi Samkara. Bombay 1976

379.67.429.5 J.N.Mohanty, "Samkara's philosophy of language", in The Advaita Conception of Philosophy: Its Method, Scope and Limits 1976; Reprinted LRA 21-40

379.67.430 G.C.Nayak, "The Vedantic concept of liberation: an analysis of the views of Samkara and Yajnavalkya", CIDO 29, 1976, 280-287

379.67.431 R.P.Nipanikar, "An incident in the life of Samkaracarya", JSU 9, 1976, 69-72

379.67.432 Sangam Lal Pandey, "Samkara and the philosophy of science", IndPQ 4, 1976-77, 75-82

379.67.433 K.Thiagarajan, "Buddha, Samkara and Vivekananda: a study in kinship", VK 63, 1976-77, 184-186

379.67.434 K.Thiagarajan, "Samkara and Ramanuja, two embodiments of spiritual regenerators", VK 63, 1976-77, 402-403. Also Dilip 4.2, 1977, 15-17

379.67.435 Vandanamandara, "Samkara prefaces to his commentaries on the Upanisads", PB 81, 1976, 203-209

379.67.436 Yutaka Yuda, "Hegel and Samkara--a comparison between the eastern and western way of thinking" (in Japanese with English summary). JGK 10, 1976, 18-35

379.67.437 Achalananda, "Reality--as defined by Samkara", VK 64, 1977, 13-16

379.67.437.5 T. R. Anantharaman, Erkenntnis durch Meditation nach Samkara. Stuttgart 1977

379.67.438 Shiv Kumar Chaturvedi, "Etymologies of Sankaracharya--the chief characteristic", JGJRI 33.3, 1977, 55-76

379.67.439 Ganesh Prasad Das, "Samkara's conception of adhyasa: has Prof. S.K.Chattopadhyaya refuted Prof. G. Mishra?", IndPQ 4, 1976-77, 627-642

379.67.440 M.K.Deshpande, "Gita and the maya of Sri Samkara", PTG 11.4, 1977, 32-37

379.67.441 Robin Ghosh, "Samkara's concept of Absolute Reality", PB 82, 1977, 493-496

379.67.441.1 Daniel S. Goldenberg, A Comparative Analysis of Wittgenstein's Tractatus and Samkara's Advaita Vedanta with an Introduction to the Logic of Comparative Methodology. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Hawaii 1977

379.67.442 Saral Jhingram, "Samkara and the philosophy of science: an evaluation", IndPQ 5, 1977-78, 173-182

379.67.443 S.Vittala Sastri, "Mulavidya-vada is against Samkara's Advaita", BRMIC 28, 1977, 147-152

379.67.443.1 J.J.Shukla, "Vedanta (Shankara) and phenomenology:, Darshana 17.2, 1977, 15-27

379.67.444 Tapasyananda, "Samkara in confrontation with Mandana (translation from Dig-vijaya)", VK 64, 1977, 199-201, 238-242

379.67.445 K. Thiagarajan, "The life and teachings of Samkara", Dilip 4.1, 1977, 28-30

379.67.446 Tilmann Vetter, "Sankara's 'system'", ZDMG Supplement 19, 1977, 1015-1021

379.67.447 Shlomo Biderman, "Sankara and the Buddhists", JIP 6, 1978, 405-414

379.67.447.5 Kshitish Chandra Chakravarti, Samkaracarya and God-Realization. Calcutta 1978

379.67.448 S.K.Chattopadhyaya, "The concept of adhyasa and the Vedanta of Samkara", IndPQ 6, 1978: 81-100, 683-696

379.67.449 Chinmayananda, "Samkara, the sprititual general", STM 3-5

379.67.450 Chinmayananda, "An introduction to prakrtagranthas", STM 88-90

379.67.451 Paul Hacker, "Samkara der Yogin und Samkara der Advaitin", PHKS 213-242

379.67.451.1 Alaknanda Kate, "On the laksana in "styam jnanam anantam brahma", CASSt 4, 1978, 35-43

379.67.452 Sengaku Mayeda, "The teachings of Samkara", TVOS 5, 1978, 376-378

379.67.453 Mukhyananda, "Acharya Samkara and his contribution to Indian spiritual regeneration", VK 65, 1978: 182, 225

379.67.454 Karl H. Potter, "Can the truth be told?", KCV 3, 73-80

379.67.455 C.Ramakrishnan, "Samkara, the effulgent efflorescence of India's national genius", STM 6-10

379.67.456 Sakhyanand, "The three great Sankaracharyas", Hindutva 9.4, 1978, 5-8

379.67.457 Jayendra Sarasvati, "Sri Adi Samkara and his teachings", TVOS 5, 1978, 46-58

379.67.458 K.Thiagarajan, "Essentials of Samkara's thought", Dilip 5.3, 1978, 23-25

379.67.459 Tilmann Vetter, "Erführung des Unerfahrbaren bei Samkara", TVH 45-59

379.67.460 Gautam N. Dwivedi, "Advent of Samkara in the central Himalayas", JOI 29, 1979, 55-58

379.67.461 Iswarananda, "Simhavalokanam: Buddha and Samkara", VK 66, 1979, 192-196

379.67.462 Karunakaran, "Samkara's philosophy and religion", VK 66, 1979, 283-286

379.67.463 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Mission of Samkara", TVOS 4, 1979, 22-30

379.67.464 Hajime Nakamura, "Meditation in Samkara", JD 7.1, 1979, 1-18

379.67.465 N.A.Nilakantam Elayath, "Freedom of will and action in Samkara's philosophy", JOI 28, 1979, 36-43

379.67.466 K.S.Ramakrishna Rao, "Samkara on cause and effect--vivartavada of Samkara and Suresvaracarya", BVa 14, 1979, 93-102

379.67.467 Sibnath Sarma, "Impact of Samkara on Rudolf Otto", JUG 30-33, 1979-82, 98-104

379.67.468 C.Sivaramamurthi, "Influence of Samkara in India and abroad", TVOS 4, 1979, 62-71

379.67.469 Frank Whaling, "Samkara and Buddhism", JIP 7, 1979, 1-42

379.67.470 Ramaprasad Bhattacharya, "Samkara, Mandana and Ramanuja on mantra XI, Isopanisad", CIS 132-137

379.67.471 Budhananda, "Sri Samkara's teachings on the steps to concentration", VK 67, 1980, 417-424

379.67.472 Tapash Shankar Dutta, "Influence of Buddha and Samkara on Vivekananda's philosophy", PB 85, 1980, 381-383

379.67.473 V.Subramanya Iyer, "Samkara's philosophy", VSIPT 4-14

379.67.474 Nilima Kushari, "An evaluation of drstisrsti in Samkara's Vedanta", JIAP 20.1, 1981, 33-50

379.67.475 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samkara and Suresvara: their exegetical method to interpret the great sentence 'tat tvam asi'", ALB 44-45, 1980-81, 147-160

379.67.476 Fred Miller, "Relation and salvation as exemplifying Samkara's Madhyamika hermeneutic", JRS 8.1, 1980, 83-96

379.67.477 Subodh Kumar Mohanty, "Samkara's autograph: a philosophical excavation", IndPQ 8, 1980-81, 401-410

379.67.477.1 Carl Olson, "Samkara and Buber on the self", Darshana 20.3, 1980, 1-10

379.67.478 L.Thomas O'Neil, Maya in Samkara: Measuring the Immeasurable. Delhi 1980

379.67.479 S.S.Raghavachar, "Sri Samkara on world thought", PB 85, 1980, 213-216

379.67.480 R.V.Raghavan, "Sri Bhagavatpada's works: the occasions on which they were composed", Dilip 6.3, 1980, 9-22

379.67.481 Anil K. Sarkar, "Plotinus and Samkara: where do they meet?", Triveni 48.4, 1980, 15-21. Reprinted Darshana 31.4, 1991, 30-38

379.67.482 E.R.Sreekrishna Sarma, "Sphota and Samkara", ALB 44-45, 1980-81, 223-228

379.67.483 S.Vittala Sastri, Sri Samkara's Advaitasiddhanta. Mysore 1980

379.67.484 Rajendra Prasad Acharya, "The universal mind of Samkara", TVOS 6, 1981, 176-189

379.67.485 Amalatmananda, "Sri Samkara and his teachings", BVa 16.3, 1981, 1-5

379.67.486 Nathuram Bhoothalingam, Had Samkara Lived Today. Madras 1981

379.67.487 Kaushitaki Charan, "The monism of Samkara", JIAP 30.2, 1981, 34-47

379.67.488 Lina Gupta, Two Levels of Knowledge in the Philosophy of Samkara and F.H.Bradley. Ph.D.Thesis, Claremont University 1981

379.67.489 Lina Gupta, "Samkara on two levels of knowledge", JBRS 67-68, 1981-82, 362-377

379.67.490 Bijayananda Kar, "A study in the arguments from theology with reference to Hume and Samkara", Philosophica 10, 1981, 18-22

379.67.491 M.M.Kothari, "Refutation of Samkara's doctrine of Brahman", IndPQ 9, 1981-82, 77-96

379.67.492 V.G.Ramchandran, "Date of Samkara stotram", TVOS 6, 1981, 77-88

379.67.493 Candrasekhara Sarasvati, "Adi Samkara", TVOS 6, 1981, 209-236

379.67.494 Jayendra Sarasvai, "Sri Samkara's service to mankind", TVOS 6, 1981, 237-241

379.67.495 Panduranga Sharma, "The conception of svaprakasa (self-luminous) in Samkara Vedanta", JIAP 20.1, 1981, 1-20

379.67.496 Udayavir Shastri, The Age of Samkara. Translated by Lakshmi Datt Dikshit.  Gaziabad 1981

379.67.497 R.P.Singh, "Bradley and Samkara", CPP 25-38

379.67.498 P.K.Sundaram, Advaita and Other Systems. Madras 1981

379.67.499 John Taber, "Reason, revelation and idealism in Samkara's Vedanta", JIP 9, 1981, 283-307. Reprinted IPE 4, 161-186

379.67.500 R.M.Umesh, Shankara's Date. Madras 1981

379.67.500.1 Amrtananda, "Sri Samkara and rational integration", TL 5.2, 1982, 11-16

379.67.500.9 Francisco Garcia Bazan, Neoplatonism y Vedanta: le doctrine de la materia en Plotino y Shankara. Buenos Aires 1982

379.67.501 Francisco Garcia Bazan, "Matter in Plotinus and Samkara", NIT 181-208

379.67.501.1 S.P.Dubey, "Hermeneutics in Samkara's Advaitism", TL 5.5, 1982, 11-19

379.67.502 Russell Hatton, "Samkara and Erigena on causality", NIT 209-226

379.67.502.1 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Somenew lights on Samkara's doctrine of adhyasa", JASP 27.1, 1982, 4-9

379.67.503 Prem Lata, Mystic Saints of India. Samkaracharya. Delhi 1982

379.67.504 G.Sundara Ramaiah, A Philosophical Study of the Mysticism of Samkara. Calcutta 1982

379.67.505 Ramakant Sinari, "The concept of human estrangement in Plotinism and Samkara Vedanta", NIT 243-256

379.67.506 Heather Thompson, Paradox and Negation in the Upanishads, Buddhism and the Advaita Vedanta of Samkaracharya. Ph.D.Thesis, California Institute of Integral Studies 1982

379.67.507 R.T.Vyas, "Roots of Samkara's thought", JOI 32, 1982, 35-49

379.67.508 Boyd Henry Wilson, Samkara's Use of Scripture in His Philosophy. Ph. D. Thesis, University of Iowa 1982

379.67.508.5 Apurvananda, Acharya Shankara. Mysore 1983

379.67.509 R. Balasubramanian, "The philosophical prose style of Samkara", TL 6.2, 1983, 5-19

379.67.510 Jnanananda Bharati, "Samkara's confrontation with Mandana Misra", Dilip 9.1, 1983, 6-8

379.67.511 Ram Shankar Bhattacharya, "Is Samkara's assertion of the Puranic view about Naraka valid?", Puranam 25, 1983, 196-202

379.67.512 Mike Bos, "After the rise of knowledge", WZKSOA 27, 1983, 165-184

379.67.513 William Cenkner, A Tradition of Teachers: Samkara and the Jagadgurus Today. Delhi 1983

379.67.514 Jaya Chemburkar, "Stotra literature of Sankaracharya", JOI 33, 1983, 247-256

379.67.515 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Maya and avidya: an analysis of a controversy", JIAP 22.1, 1983, 57-61

379.67.516 G.N.Kundargi, "Samkara's conception of reality", Tattvaloka 6.4, 1983, 9-17

379.67.517 Ranganathananda, "Buddha and Samkaracharya Simhavalokanam", VK 70, 1983, 187-189

379.67.518 K.N.Ramakrishna Rao, "Sri Samkara's theory of truth", Tattvaloka 5.6, 1983, 5-12

379.67.519 Sakhyananda, "Historicity of Shankaracharya in the light of Kerala traditions and Tamil epigraphic records", SRC 73-80

379.67.520 D.S.Sharma, "Samkara and Ramanuja--Simhavalokanam", VK 70, 1983, 152-154

379.67.521 Bhagwant Singh, "Nature and destiny of man in the light of Acharya Samkara", P 28.2-29.1, 1983, 107-114

379.67.522 John A. Taber, Transformative Philosophy. A Study of Samkara, Fichte and Heidegger. Honolulu 1983

379.67.522.5 L. Stafford Betty, "A death-blow to Samkara's non-dualism? A dualist refutation", Religious Studies 20, 1984, 281-290. Reprinted IPE 4, 77-86

379.67.523 Bata Kishore Dalai, "Examination of Samkara's arguments refuting samavaya" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 339

379.67.524 S.K.Dave, "Is Samkara the author of Saundarya Lahari?" (summary).   PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 119

379.67.525 Bina Gupta, "Brahman, God, substance and nature in Samkara and Spinoza", IndPQ 11, 1984-85, 265-284

379.67.526 M.P.Marathe, "Samkara on Sarvastivada Buddhism", RandP 113-125

379.67.527 S.G.Moghe, "Samkaracarya and Purva-Mimamsa", SPM 1-13

379.67.527.5 S.G.Moghe, "Samkaracarya's approach to arthavhda", SVUOJ 27, 1984, 43-56

379.67.528 S.S.Raghavachar, "Sri Samkara's universal view", VK 71, 1984, 105-108

379.67.528.1 Ram Murti Sharma, "Samkara and I'sense", SVUOJ 27, 1984, 29-42

379.67.528.5 Ram Murti Sharma Shastri, "Modern monism and the Vedanta of Samkara", Bharati 15, 1971-84, 73-78

379.67.529 E.R.Sreekrishna Sharma, "Significance of Samkara's Adhyasa-bhasya", Amrtadhara 399-402

379.67.530 Swaminatha Sarma, Srisamkaravijayamakaranda. New Delhi 1984

379.67.530.1 Abheda Nanda Bhattacharya, The Idealistic Philosophy of Samkara and Spinoza: Some Typical Problems of Idealism of the Two Philosophers. Delhi 1985

379.67.531 Klaus Klostermaier, "Moksa and critical philosophy", PEW 35, 1985, 61-77

379.67.532 I.S.Madugula, The Acarya Samkara of Kaladi. A Study. Delhi 1985

379.67.533 S. Panneerselvan, "The hermeneutical approach of Gadamer and Samkara", IPQ 18, 1985-86, 169-180

379.67.533.1 Nyshadham Prabhakara Rao, "Samkara's Advaita philosophy", TL 8.3, 1985, 33-37

379.67.533.2 P.S.Sastri, "Philosophy of Sri Samkara's Advaita Vedanta", TL 8.1-2, 1985, 29-33

379.67.534 Yoshitsugu Sawai, "On a legendary biography of Samkara--especially in regard to the date of Madhava's Samkaradigvijaya", JIBSt 34.1, 1985, 10-15

379.67.535 Craig Schroeder, "Levels of truth and reality in the philosophies of Descartes and Samkara", PEW 35, 1985, 285-294

379.67.536 P.Thirugnanasambandham, "Saiva Nayanmars in Sri Samkara's devotional hymns", SaivS 20, 1985, 1-8

379.67.537 Anantanand Rambachan, "Samkara's rationale for sruti as the definitive source of brahmajnana: a refutation of some contemporary views", PEW 36, 1986, 25-40

379.67.538 R. Balasubramanian, "Samkara on jnana-yoga", TVOS 11, 1986-87, 26-41

379.67.538.1 Richard de Smet, "Forward steps in Shankara research", Darshana 26.3, 1986, 33-46

379.67.539 G.C.Nayak, "Samkara and linguistic analysis", IPQ 13, 1986, 289-298

379.67.539.1 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samkara and Narayana Guru", ALB 50, 1986, 58-84

379.67.540 Ganeswar Misra, Sources of Monism: Bradley and Samkara. Meerut 1986

379.67.541 Yoshitsugu Sawai, "Samkara's theory of samnyasa", JIP 14, 1986, 371-388

379.67.541.1 T.V.Anantharamaseshan, "Avinayam apanaya visno", Tattvaloka 10.1, 1987 - 12.1, 1989

379.67.542 D. Chatterjee, "Karma and liberation in Samkara's Advaita Vedanta", POV 158-169

379.67.542.1 V. Subrahmania Iyer, "Is Samkara's philosophy modern?", TL 10.1, 1987, 33-38

379.67.542.2 Satyajit Layak, "Samkara on dream knowledge", VIJ 25, 1987, 130-137

379.67.543 Y. Masih, Shankara's Universal Philosophy of Religion. Calcutta 1987

379.67.544 Jagat Narayan Misra, "Samkara: some logical reflections", IndPQ 14, 1987, 389-396

379.67.545 Satya Deva Mishra, "The theory of appearance in Samkara's Vedanta", TVOS 12, 1987: 129, 261

379.67.546 G.C.Nayak, "Does Samkara advocate enlightenment through analysis? A reappraisal of the Vedantic conception of enlightenment vis-a-vis the Madhyamika", POV 318-332

379.67.546.1 G. C. Nayak, "Significance of knowledge in Samkara and Yajnavalkya", GCNPR 1, 1987, 54-60. Reprinted in GCPNR 2

379.67.547 H.J.Nersoyan, "Self-knowledge and the Samkara-Ramanuja disagreement", POV 42-61

379.67.548 S. Panneerselvam, "The philosophical 'I' of Wittgenstein and the 'self' of Samkara", JMU 52.9, 1987, 15-21

379.67.548.1 T. Ramalingeswara Rao, "Sakti and Samkara", TL 10.4, 1987, 15-18

379.67.549 Yoshitsugu Sawai, "The legend of Samkara's birth", JIBSt 36.1, 1987, 14-18

379.67.550 Anima Sen Gupta, "Advaita-bhakti of Sankaracharya", VK 74, 1987, 417-419

379.67.550.1 K.N.Neelakantam Elayath, "Samkara's system of karma-samnyasa", VIJ 26, 1988, 153-157

379.67.551 M. Venkatrao, "Buddha and Sankara", SKGIB 7-14

379.67.551.1 T.S.Devadoss, "Perspectives on ethical and moral discipline in Samkara's philosophy", SVUOJ 30-31, 1987-88, 1-10

379.67.551.1.5 M. Dhavamony, "Samkara as commentator on Hindu scriptures", Studia Missionali 37, 1988, 141-164

379.67.551.2 K.A.Neelakantan Elayath, "Samkara's system of karma-samnyasa", SVUOJ 26, 1988, 153-157

379.67.552 Andrew O. Fort, "Beyond pleasure: Samkara on bliss", JIP 16, 1988, 177-190

379.67.552.1 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Is 'mayavada' a misnomer in Samkara's philosophy?", JASP 33.1, 1988, 47-52

379.67.552.2 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Samkara's appearance theory of causation: some observations", DUS 45.1, 1988, 7-18

379.67.553 David Loy, "The path of no-path: Samkara and Dogen on the paradox of practice", PEW 38, 1988, 127-146. Also summary in TICOJ 33, 1988, 119-120

379.67.553.1 N. Hariharan, "Search for reality", TL 11.1, 1988, 34-37

379.67.554 Charles Hartshorne, "Samkara, Nagarjuna and Fa Tsang, with some Western analogies", IAB 98-115

379.67.554.1 Kazi Nurul Islam, A Critique of Samkara's Philosophy of Appearance. Allahabad 1988

379.67.555 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samkara and Narayana Guru", IAB 184-202

379.67.555.1 G. Mukhopadhyaya, "The unique teaching of Samkara", TL 11.1, 1988, 38-41

379.67.556 K.S.Murthy, "The philosophy of Sri Samkaracharya", Triveni 57, 1988, 394-390

379.67.556.1 N.S.Dakshina Murthy, "Dr. Radhakrishnan on Samkara", JMysoreU 52, 1988, 90-99

379.67.557 Gaya Ram Pandeya, Samkara's Interpretation of the Upanisads. Delhi 1988

379.67.557.1 Punarnava, "Samkara's criticism of Samkhya", Tattvaloka 11.1, 1988, 24-29

379.67.558 Raja Ramanna, "Logic, Samkara and Subrahmanya Iyer", FPS 61-72

379.67.558.1 Bharati Tirtha Sannidhanam, "Sri Samkara Bhagavatpada--11.2, 1988, 24-30

379.67.558.2 S.Srinivasan, "Vyasa-Samkara encounter: a clash of titans", TL 11.2, 1988, 24-30

379.67.559 P.M.Upadhye, "Shrimat Shankaracharya as a writer of knowledge", PTG 23.1, 1988, 45-50

379.67.560 R.Balasubramanian, "The Absolute and God according to Advaita", POSankara 11-23

379.67.561 Pratima Bowes, "Mysticism in Upanisads and in Samkara's Vedanta", Yoga and Mystic 54-68

379.67.561.1 Purusottama Billimoria, "Self, not-self and the ultimate--Samkara's two-tiered definition-cum-description revisited", JICPR 6, 1989, 155-167

379.67.562 Himamsu Chakravarti, "Samkaracarya as a successful organizer", POSankara 416-424

379.67.563 Richard de Smet, "Radhakrishnan's interpretation of Samkara", RadhContVol 53-70

379.67.563.1 Richard de Smet, "The Buddha, Meister Eckhart and Samkara on 'nothing'", JRS 17.2, 1989, 56-69

379.67.564 M.N.Deshpande, "Influence of the philosophy of Samkara on Hindu temple architecture and symbolism", POSankara 425-432

379.67.564.1 Richard de Smet, "Radhakrishnan's second presentation of Samkara's teaching", P 34, 1989, 83-96

379.67.564.2 M. Dhavamony, "The self and consciousness in Samkara's Advaita" in Self and Consciousness: Indian Interpretations (ed. Augstine Thottakara), Bangalore 1989, 32-43

379.67.564.3 M. Dhavamony, "Shankara", Dictionaire de spiritualite 92-94, Paris 1989), 792-797

379.67.565 S.P.Dubey, "Hermeneutics in the Vedanta of Samkara", POSankara 88-103

379.67.565.1 K.A.Neelakantha Elayath, "Samkara's attitude towards sudras", Purnatrayi 16.2, 1988, 49-52

379.67.566 Sitanath Goswami, "Samkara's views on the relation between philosophy and spirituality", POSankara 284-292. Reprinted (different title) IndTrad I, 55-61

379.67.567 Som Raj Gupta, "The word that became the Absolute: relevance of Samkara's ontology of language", JICPRF 7, 1989, 27-42

379.67.567.5 N. Isayeva, "Samkara's polemics with Sarvastivada", ActOP 43.1, 1989, 415-430

379.67.568 G.G.Joshi, "Acharya Shankara--the poet and devotee", PTG 24.1, 1989, 51-57

379.67.568.1 Julius J. Lipner, "Samkara on metaphor with reference to Gita 13.12.18", IndPhRel 167-182

379.67.569 K.Satchidananda Murty, "What we owe to Samkara", POSankara 440-449

379.67.570 P. Srirama Murty, "Samkara's interpretation of Vedanta", POSankara 38-41. Reprinted TVOS 25.1-2, 200, 149-162

379.67.571 G.C.Nayak, "Samkara's formulation of Vedanta", POSankara 1-10

379.67.572 G.C.Pande, "On the historical and cultural significance of Samkara", POSankara 450-452. Reprinted TVOS 25.1-2, 2000, 163-166

379.67.573 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Samkara and Mimamsa", POSankara 228-232

379.67.574 P.Ramacandralu, "Samkara and Purvamimamsa", POSankara 233-240

379.67.575 G.Sundara Ramaiah, "The theological postion of Samkaracarya", POSankara 330-339

379.67.576 S.O.Ramakrishnan, "Samkara the integrator of Indian culture", POSankara 404-415

379.67.577 G.Parthasarathy Rao, "Samkara's hymns--their philosophic significance", POSankara 277-283

379.67.578 Hiltrud Rustau, "The place of Samkara in Indian philosophy and his influence on modern Indian thinkers", POSankara 381-392

379.67.578.1 Bharati Tirtha Sannidhanam, "Samkara's Advaita", Tattvaloka 11.5, 1989, 60-66

379.67.579 V.R.Kalyanasundara Sastri, "Sankara on jnanayoga", POSankara 297-306. Reprinted TVOS 25.1-2, 2000, 85-98

379.67.580 D.N.Shanbhag, "Samkaracarya--the great devotee of Lord Visnu", POSankara 317-329; also JKU 33, 1989, 124-138

379.67.581 Kim Skoog, "Samkara on the role of sruti and anubhava in attaining brahmajnana", PEW 39, 1989, 67-74

379.67.582 S.Sankaranarayanan, "Samkara and the Vaisesika-Naiyayika schools", POSankara 143-155

379.67.583 N.S.Ramanuja Tatacharya, "The influence of Samkara's writing on Ramanuja", POSankara 241-252. Reprinted TVOS 29, 2004, 119-132

379.67.584 V.Venkatachalam, "Is there an independence of spirit in the philosophic thought of Acarya Samkara's commentators and later followers", POSankara 455-466

379.67.585 Alex Wayman, "'Bija' according to Samkara and Buddhism", POSankara 104-115

379.67.586 Anthony J. Alston, Samkara Source Book. London 1990

379.67.586.1 J.G.Arapura, "Sri Samkaracharya--the great philosopher", IPA 21, 1989-90, 89-99

379.67.587 Dindigul Ramaswamy Ayyangar, "Samkara and Ramanuja", Dilip 16.3, 1990, 21-22

379.67.587.1 R. Kesava Ayyangar (tr. J. Parthasarathi), "Adi Samkaracharya as a Vaishnava Ekantin", SRV 13.2, 1990, 50-61

379.67.587.2 K.P.Balakrishnan, "Understanding Samkara--a viewpoint", TL 13.1, 1990, 78-79

379.67.588 Pranab Bandyopadhyaya, Shankaracharya. Calcutta 1990

379.67.588.1 Jonathan Bader, Meditation on Samkara's Vedanta. New Delhi 1990

379.67.588.2 Sibajiban Bhattacharyya, "Evaluation of Samkara's critique of Nyaya-Vaisesika", IPA 21, 1989-90, 8-27

379.67.589 Andrew O. Fort, "Knowing Brahman while embodied: Samkara on jivanmukti", JIP 19, 1991, 369-390

379.67.590 J.G.Suthren Hirst, "The place of teaching techniques in Samkara's theology", JIP 18, 1990, 119-150

379.67.591 N.Jayashanmukham, "Sruti, tarka and Samkara", TVOS 14.1-2, 1990, 48-54

379.67.591.0 J.N.Mohanty, "Samkara's doctrine of adhyasa", LRA 7-20

379.67.591.1 G.C.Pande, "Samkara and Buddhsm", IPA 21, 1989-90, 28-49

379.67.591.2 K. T. Pandurangi, "Sri Samkara and Purvamimamsa", IPA 21, 1989-90, 75-88

379.67.591.3 K. Puligandla, "An analytical interpretation of Samkara's philosophy", IPA 21, 1989-90, 50-62

379.67.592 K. Kunjunni Raja, "Parisamkhyana versus prasamkhyana in Samkara's philosophy", ALB 54, 1990, 191-193

379.67.592.1 C.L.Ramakrishnan, "Sri Samkara's teachings in his own words", TVOS 15.1, 1990, 75-84

379.67.592.2 C.L.Ramakrishnan, "Sri Samkara: the supreme dialectician", TVOS 15.2-3, 1990, 89-102

379.67.593 S.Sankaranarayana. "Sri Samkara and Nyayadarsana--a new perspective", ALB 54, 1990, 111-150

379.67.593.1 S.Sankaranarayana, "The technique of taking refuge in God and Samkara Vedanta", Kalyanamittam 123-126

379.67.593.2 A. P. Sharma, "Krishnamurti and Samkaracarya: a close perspective on their views of freedom", Darshana 3-4, 1990, 80-83

379.67.594 Arvind Sharma, "Samkara's bhakti and Swami Abhishiktananda's 'adult faith'", JD 15, 1990, 140-144

379.67.595 D.K.Tripathi, The Philosophy of Samkara. Varanasi 1990

379.67.595.1 Vedwati Vaidik, "Relevancy of Samkara's thoughts in modern times", MO 16, 1990, 150-157

379.67.596 N. Veezhinathan, "Sri Samkara and the Purvamimamsa school", TVOS 14.1-2, 1990, 33-47

379.67.596.1 Cedomil Veljacic, "An existentialist's approach to Samkara", HHF 86-90

379.67.597 Edakunniu Ituthra Warrier, Sri Aurobindo's Integral Yoga and Samkara's Advaita: a Comparative Study. Allahabad 1990

379.67.597.1 D.B.Gangolli, The Essential Adi Shankar. Bangalore 1991

379.67.597.2 Amalia pezzali, "Samkara e il probleme dell'assoluto", Atti del Quarto e del Quinto Convegne Nazionale di Studi Sanscriti (ed. O. Botto) (Torino 1991) 209-219

379.67.598 Hirudananda Ray, Samkara as a Romantic Philosoher. Cuttack 1991

379.67.599 K.N.Upadhyaya, "Samkara on reason, scriptural authority and self-knowledge", JIP 19, 1991, 121-132

379.67.600 Godavorisha Mishra, "Samkara and Ramanuja, their visits to and influence on purusottama-ksetra", StudCJag 141-153

379.67.600.1 Ram Murti Sharma, "Ultimate principle in Samkara's philosophy", UAITD 19-22

379.67.601 D.N.Shanbhag, "Sorry, Rashtrapati has misunderstood Sri Samkara", DhP 20.1-2, 1991, 38-48

379.67.602 R.C.Dwivedi, "Two models of non-dualism: the Vedanta of Samkara and the Kashmir Saivism", JOR 55-62, 1986-92, 114-121

379.67.602.1 John Grimes, "Samkara's siren of sruti", JD 17, 1992, 196-202

379.67.603 Ian Kesarcodi-Watson, "Samkara, Ramanuja and bhakti", BhakStud 98-158

379.67.603.0 Bijayananda Kar, "International significance of Samkara's Vedanta", in Adi Samkaracarya (ed. Gautama Patel) (Ahmedabad 1992. Reprinted VPIP 39-44

379.67.603.1 Bijayananda Kar, "Samkara Advaita and its social relevance", VQ 3, 1992-93, 28-33.

379.67.603.2 R.A.Mall, "Metonymic reflections on Samkara's concept of Brahman and Plato's seventh epistle", JICPR 9.3, 1992, 89-102

379.67.604 Bimal K. Matilal, "A note on Samkara's theodicy", JIP 20, 1992, 363-376. Reprinted BKMPCR 2, 421-432

379.67.604.0 Harry Oldmeadow, "Samkara's doctrine of maya", AsPOxford 2.2, 194.02, 131-146

379.67.604.1 Jagat Pal, "The concept of bliss", JICPR 9.3, 1992, 113-122

379.67.604.2 V. Narayan Karan Reddy, Adi Samkara and Aurobindo. Delhi 1992

379.67.605 Arvind Sharma, "Is anubhava a pramana according to Samkara?", PEW 42, 1992, 517-526

379.67.606.1 Yoshisugu Sawai, The Faith of Ascetics and Lay Smartas. A Study of the Samkaran Tradition of Srngeri. Vienna 1992

379.67.606.1.1 A. Ungemach (ed.), Samkara-Mandara-Saurabha. Eine Leben des Philosophen Samkara. Stuttgart 1992

379.67.606.1.2 Vedwati Vaidik, "Relevancy of Samkara's thougohts in modern times", MO 16, 1992, 150-157. Also RIPMC 137-141

379.67.606.1.5 W. R. Antarkar, "The date of Samkaracarya", JASBo 67-68, 1992-93, 1-20

379.67.606.2 N.S.Anantharangachar", "Karma and jnana", TL 15.4, 1993, 36-38

379.67.606.3 Sunitri M. Gautama, "Samkara's teraching--basic tenets", TL 15.4, 1993, 43-48

379.67.607 Natalia Isayeva, Samkara and Indian Philosophy. Albany, N.U. 1993

379.67.608 Ram Prasad Chakravarti, "Dreams and reality: the Samkarite critique of Vijnanavada", PEW 43, 1993, 405-456

379.67.608.1 C.P.Ramaswami Aiyar, "Uniqueness of Samkara", Dilip 19.2, 1993, 11-20

379.67.608.1.1 Anisuzzaman, "A comparative study of some aspects of the philosophies of Samkara and Bradley", DUS 50.2, 1993, 15-29

379.67.608.2 M.L.Friquegnon, "Meditation, momentariness, Samkara and Sangarakshita", HBISS 107-116

379.67.608.5 Jacqueline Hirst, "The place of bhakti in Samkara Vedanta", LDSBDM 117-146

379.67.609 N. Jayashanmukham, "The phala-tatparyalinga as a principle of interpretation", JICPR 10.2, 1993, 71-76

379.67.609.0 Victoria Lysenko, "Sankara's critique of the Vaisesika atomism", in Sergei Dimitriyevich Sarebriany (ed.0, The IXth World Sanskrit Conference (January 10-16, 1994, Melbourne Australia. Contributions of Russian Scholars (Moscow 1993), 31-40

379.67.609.1 Bharati Tirtha Mahaswamigal, "Samkara Bhagavatpada--commentator par excellence", TL 15.4, 1993, 27-30

379.67.609.2 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samkara's revival of Vedanta", TL 15.4, 1993, 39-42

379.67.609.3 Narendranath B. Patel, "On the Upanisads", TL 15.4, 1993, 31-32

379.67.609.4 S.S.Raghavachar, "Samkara and world thought", TL 15.4, 1993, 15-19

379.67.609.4.1 Michael Saeedkhan, "The genesis of Shankara's attack on the Buddhists", JRS 23.2, 1993, 101-115

379.67.609.5 Sridananda, "Realism in Samkara", TL 15.4, 1993, 20-23

379.67.609.6 N. Subramanian, "Samkara and modern science", TL 15.4, 1993, 69-72

379.67.609.7 Olga Mezentseva, "Neo-Cedantism and Samkara's concept of the illusory nature of the world", HIndPh 154-174

379.67.609.7.5 Vedavati Vaidik, "Relevance of Sankara's thought in modern era", RIPMC 134-141

379.67.609.8 R. S. Betai, "Free-will in Samkaracarya", BhV 54, 1994, 32-38; 55, 1995, 25-38

379.67.610 L. Stafford Betty, "Samkara's fatal mistake", AsPOxford 4, 1994, 3-8

379.67.610.0 Ramaprasad Bhattacharya, "Samkara: advocate of pratibimbavada or avacchedavada or abhasavada?, CultInd 220-222

379.67.610.1 Satyajyoti Chakravorty, "The concept of ajnana in Samkara and Advaitism", VJP 30.2, 1994, 8-16

379.67.610.2 Diane Collinson and Robert Wilkinson, Samkara section, 350P 1994, 68-77

379.67.610.2.1 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Samkara and Lalitadvaita", TVOS 19, 1994, 60-76

379.67.610.3 S. P. Narang, "Samkaraacarya's concept of aesthetics, theory and practice", PNRBFV 1994, 17-19

379.67.611 Govind Chandra Pande, Life and Throught of Samkaracarya. Delhi 1994

379.67.611.05 K. T. Pandurangi, "Sri Samkara and Purvamimamsa", StudinM 415-426

379.67.611.05.5 G. Parthasarathi Rao, "Samkara's philosophy in the context of sorrow, suffering and human bondage", CultInd 247-248

379.67.611.06 Michael Saeedkan, "A statement of Samkara's main doctrines", JRSA 24, 1994, 71-77

379.67.611.07 S. Sankaranarayanan, "Saranagati in God and Samkara Vedanta", TVOS 19, 1994, 142-150

379.67.611.1 Arvind Sharma, "Is mukti possible only through sruti according to Samkara?", Dilip 20.4, 1994, 17-19

379.67.612 M.V.B.S.Sarma, "Samkara refutes other systems", TL 17.1, 1994, 47-52

379.67.612.0 Ram Murti Sharma, "Samkara's relevance to the present age", Krsna Pratibha 415-420

379.67.612.1 T.R.Sharma, "Samkara on Vijnanavada", AIBP 58-62

379.67.612.1.5 Frederick M. Smith, "Samkara's Vedanta and the transmission of the Veda in the Samkara tradition", Sruticintamani 132-146

379.67.613 Anantanand Rambachan, "Response to Professor Arvind Sharma", PEW 44, 1994, 721-724

379.67.613.01 W. R.Anatarkar, "The Candaka incident in the life of Samkaracarya", BhV 55, 1995, 39-42

379.67.613.02 Girish Baruah, Samkara and Radhakrishnan representing clasical and modern Vedanta", Darshana 35.2, 1995, 50-57

379.67.613.03 Purusottama Bilimoria, "Misconception of the Self: ancient and modern critiques of Samkara metaphysics of atman", in Douglas Allen (ed.), Culture and Self: Philosophical Perspective, East and West (New York 1995)

379.67.613.04 Suresh Chandra, "Seeing and seeing as: Pradhan and Panneerselvam", JICPR 12.3, 1995, 111-122

379.67.613.04.1 G.R.Franci, "Il pposto dell'anubhava e Samkara: une ghirlande di ossevazioni in ordine sparsa", Studi orientale e Linguistica (Bologna) 5, 1994-95, 289-297

379.67.613.05 Sakunthala Gangadharan, "The Advaita of Samkara and Radhakrishnan", NEPSR 1995, 443-460

379.67.613.1 Robert A. Holland, "Toward a resolution of Samkara's atmavidya and the Buddhist doctrine of anatman", IPQ 35, 1995, 71-86

379.67.613.1.5 N. Isayeva, "Sitting at the feet of Samkara", PKSM 1995, 149-156

379.67.613.1.6 V. Kutumba Sastry, "Samkara and Sanskrit literature", TVOS 20.1, 1995, 92-103

379.67.613.2.Michael Levine, "Appearance and reality: misinterpreting Samkara", AsPOxford 5.2, 1995, 151-158

379.67.613.2.5 G. C. Nayak, "Understanding Samkara's Vedanta", JICPR 13.1, 1995, 71-82

379.67.613.2.7 Gerhard Oberhammer, "Bemerkungen zur Transzendenz des Brahma bei Sankara", Sauhrdayamangalam 259-266

379.67.613.3 S. Panneerselvam, "Seeing and seeing as: a reply to Suresh Chandra", JICPR 12.3, 1995, 132-138

379.67.613.4 R.C.Pradhan, "Seeing and seeing as: a response to Suresh Chandra", JICPR 12.3, 1995, 123-131

379.67.613.5 S. Sankaranarayanan Sri Samkara: His life, Philosophy and Relevance to Man in Modern Times. Madras 1995

379.67.613.6 S. Sankaranarayanan, "Date of Sri Samkara--a new perspective", ALB 59, 1995, 132-176. See also note by K.K.Raja , p. 177

379.67.613.6.1 S. Sankaranarayanan, "Sri Samkara and Kashmir Saivism: a perspective", TVOS 20.2, 1995, 105-129

379.67.613.7 M. L. Sharma, "Professor Date's new light on the Vedanta of Samkara", Darshana 35.3, 1995, 39-44

379.67.614 Frits Staal, "Changing one's mind", JIP 23, 1995, 53-56

379.67.615 Arvind Sharma, "A reply to Anantanand Rambachan", PEW 45, 1995, 105-114

379.67.616 K. P. Aleaz, The Relevance of Relation in Samkara's Advaita Vedanta. Delhi 1996

379.67.616.1 W. R. Antarkar, "The place of Samkara's final disappearanca", JASBo 71, 1996, 1-22

379.67.616.9 Thomas Kulangara, Absolutism and Theism: a Philosophical Study of S. Radhakrishnan's Attempt to Reconcile Samkara's Absolutism and Ramanuja's Theism. Trivandrum 1996

379.67.617 Jacob Kurian, Philosophy and Life of Sri Samkara. 1996

379.67.617.5 Lance E. Nelson, "Living liberation in Samkara and classical Advaita: sharing the holy writing of God", LKLHT 1996, 17-60

379.67.618 Satchidanandendra Sarasvati, Introduction to Vedanta Texts. Karnatak 1996

379.67.619 Satchidanandendra Sarasvati, The Pristine Pure Advaita Philosophy of Adi Samkara. Karnataka 1996

379.67.620 Michael Zammit, "His You are what I am" from the unique to the universal", AsPOxford 6.2, 1996, 109-116

379.67.623 K. P. Aleaz, An Indian Jesus from Samkara's Thought. Calcutta 1997

379.67.625 Bhuteshananda, "Jnana and karma are complementary", BRMIC 48, 1997, 67-72

379.67.705 Purushottama Bilimoria, "On Samkara's attempted reconciliation of 'you' and 'I': yusmadasmatsamanvaya", RSB 1997, 252-277

379.67.710 Brian Carr, "Samkaracarya", CEAP 189-210

379.67.715 Samghamitra Dasgupta, "Some reflections on the status of the world (jagat) in Samkarite Vedanta", IndPQ 24, 1997, 359-372

379.67.716 Richard de Smet, "Contemplation in Shankara and Ramanuja", PC 209-220

379.67.717 Andrew O. Fort, "Shankara and Vivekananda on jivanmukti and social service", VCA 214-230

379.67.730 K. Jayammal, A Glossary of Technical Terms in the Commentaries of Samkara, Ramanuja and Madhva. New Delhi 1997

379.67.755 Julius Lipner, "Samkara' on satyam jnanam anantam brahma", RSB 1997, 301-318

379.67.758 Sengaku Mayeda, "Tradition and modernity: Samkara and Narayana Guru with special reference to the problem of caste", TMIJ 17-31

379.67.780 Anantanand Rambachan, "Where words can set free: the liberating potency of Vedic words in the hermeneutics of Samkara", TCon 1997, 33-46

379.67.781 Shankar Dayal Sharma, "Adi Sakara's holistic philosophy of otherness", TVOS 22.1, 1997, 12-20

379.67.782.2 Sanghamitra Dasgupta and Dilip Kumar Mohanta, "Some reflections on the relation between Samkara and Buddhism", IndPQ 25, 1998, 349-366

379.67.782.5 M.L.Wadekar, "Samkaracarya's preference to the readings from the Madhyandina recension", JOI 47, 1997, 61-64. Reprinted AsIS 210-214

379.67.782.7 K. P. Aleaz, "Meaning of the true significance of 'this world' in the Advaita spirituality of Samkara", STEVL 77-103

379.67.782.8 W. R. Antarkar, "The incident of parakiyapravesa iin the life of Adi Sankaracarya", BhV 58, 1998, 1-20

379.67.788 Daya Krishna, "Was Acarya Samkara responsible for the disappearance of Buddhist philosophy from India?", JICPR 17.1, 1998, 127-130

379.67.789 Jacob Kurian, Life in Philosophy of Sri Sankara. Delhi 1998

379.67.790 Michael W. Myers, "Sankaracarya and ananda", PEW 48.4, 1998, 553-567

379.67.791 G. C. Nayak, "The concept of freedom in Sartre and Samkara", IndPQ 25, 198, 119-132

379.67.792 G.C.Nayak, "Mayavada--an approach from Acarya's point of view", SVUOJ 41, 1998, 1-12

379.67.793 Sunirmalananda, "Renunciation according to Samkara and Swami Vivekananda", BRMIC 49, 1998, 138-142

379.67.793.5 P. Govindarajan, "The mind of Sri Adi Sankar", Dilip 25.1, 1999, 21-24

379.67.793.7 S. Ramaswamy, "The approach to Samkara", TVOS 24.2, 1998, 133-138

379.67.794 Gopal Stavig, "The supreme atman of Samkara's Advaita and the Absolute Essence in the philosophy of Ibn Al-'Arabi", JD 23, 1998, 303-326

379.67.795 K.P.Sinha, "Samkara's conception of the personal Absolute", IndTradI 181-183

379.67.796 K. P. Aleaz, "Advaita relation: a search in the authentic writings of Samkara", VCA 29-58

379.67.796.5 Girish Barua, "Samkara and Radhakrishnan representing classical and modern Vedanta", Darshana 39, 1999, 1-8

379.67.797 Brian Carr, "Samkara on memory and the continuity of the self", Religious Studies 36, 2000, 419-434

379.67.798 Brian Carr, "Samkara and the principle of material causation", Religious Studies 35, 1999, 425-440

379.67.799 John B. Chettimatham, "Brahman-Atman of Samkara", DHCCR 171-185

379.67.799.2 N.G.Kulkarni, "Levels of reality in the context of Samkara's mayavada", DHCCR 75-78

379.67.799.4 Park Ho Nam, "On transmigration and maya in Samkaracarya", DHCCR 53-66

379.67.799.6 Lalita Namjoshi, "Brahman-Atman relationship in the hymns of Samkaracarya", DHCCR 165-170

379.67.799.8 S.P.Narang, "Rality vs. fiction of the world--Samkara's approach", DHCCR 67-74

379.67.799.9 M.D.Paradkar, "Samkaracarya's Vedanta and the modern science", DHCCR 47-52

379.67.800 Sara Grant, Samkacarya's Concept of Relation. Delhi 1999

379.67.800.0 Minoru Hara, "Atman in the Bhagavadgita as interpreted by Samkara", Cat 67-89

379.67.800.1 I. Panduranga Rao, "Adi Samkara and his spiritual vision", DHCCR 119-124.

379.67.800.1.5 Gopal Stravig, "Samkara, Kant and Schopenhauer", Darshana 39.4, 1999, 17-35

379.67.800.2 G.V.Tagare, "The word as maya in Samkaracarya", DHCCR 79-86

379.67.800.3 S.R.Talghatti, "The world as maya in Samkaracarya", DHCCR 39-46

379.67.800.4 Shrinivas Tilak, "Samkaracarya's myth of maya", DHCCR 87-102

379.67.800.5 Anthony J. Alston, "Samkara in East and West today", NPAV 84-108

379.67.801 Jonathan Bader, Conquest of the Four Quarters. Traditional Accounts of the Life of Samkara. New Delhi 2000

379.67.801.0 Subramanian Balakrishnan, Samkara on Bhakti. Mumbai 2000

379.67.801.1 R. Balasuramanian, "Samkara", AdV 66-124

379.67.801.2 Shyama Kumar Chattopadhyaya, The Philosophy of Samkara's Advaita Vedanta, New Delhi 2000

379.67.801.3 N.S.Dravid, "Samkara vis-a-vis other systems - II", AdV 148-174

379.67.801.5 Sara Grant, "The contemporary relevance of the Advaita of Samkaracarya", NPAV 148-164

379.67.803 Yohanon Grinshpan, "Adult liberationand infantile liberties: a note on Samkara's view of childhood", JIP 28.5-6, 2000, 549-566

379.67.806 Julius J. Lipner, "The self of being and the being of self: Samkara on 'that you are'", NPAV 51-69

379.67.808 Bradley J. Malkovsky, "Samkara on divine grace", NPAV 70-83

379.67.809 Bradley J. Malkovskly, The Role of Divine Grace iln the Soteriology of Samkaracarya. Leiden 2000

379.67.810 Roger Marcaurelle, Freedom through Inner Renunciation. Samkara's Philosophy in a New Light. Albany 2000

379.67.812 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samamkara and Buddhism", NPAV 18-29

379.67.813 G.C.Nayak, "Samkara vis-a-vis other systems - I", AdV 125-147

379.67.813.1 G. C. Nayak, "Samkara's formulation of Vedanta", TVOS 26.2, 2001, 60-75

379.67.814 Y.G.Nighoskar, "Truth and Advaita Vedanta of Samkara", PTG 34.3, 2000, 38-44

379.67.815 Carl Olson, "The problematic and liberating nature of language in the philosophies of Derrida and Samkara", JIPR 5, 2000, 37-59

379.67.815.1 C.S.Radhakrishnan, "Sri Samkara as an Alamkarika", FIC 453-460

379.67.815.2 K. Kunjunni Raja, "On the date of Samkara", FIC 194-212

379.67.815.3 F. Tola and C. Dragonetti, "The system of Samkara: reality, illusion, perspectivism", ITaur 26, 2000, 161-186

379.67.815.5 V. K. Bharadvaj, "Sankaracarya's argument from sruti", IndPQ 28, 2001, 201-214

379.67.815.5.5 Himamsu Chakravarti, "Bhakti in Samkara' philosophy", JUJI 6, 2001, 158-168

379.67.815.6 S.K.Chintamani, "The role of Samkara's etymologies in the exposition of his philosophy", JGJRI 57, 2001, 253-276

379.67.815.7 N. Usha Devi, "'Brahman according to Samkara'. Reply to query published in the JICPR, Vol. 17, No. 3", JICPR 18.2, 2001, 242-245

379.67.816 Michel Hulin, Shankara et le non-dualitè. Paris 2001

379.67.816.2 Rachappa Ingalalli, "Ethical values in the philosophy of Sri Samkaracarya”, Acarya Samkaracarya and his Philosophy (Bhuvaneshwar 2001), pp. 44-46

379.67.816.4 M. N. Krishnamani, Samkara, the Revolutionary. New Delhi 2001

379.67.816.4.5 Radha Kumar, "Saktiand Samkara", JAIRI 3, 2000-2001, 61-68

379.67.816.4.8 Angelika Malinar, "Samkara as jagadguru according to Sankara-Digvijaya", CCERHI

379.67.816.5 Bradley J. Malkovsky, The Role of Divine Grace in the Soteriology of Samkaracarya. Leiden 2001

379.67.816.6 Sangeetha Menon, "Towards a Sankarite approach to consciousness studies: a discussion in the context of recent interdisciplinary scientific perspectives", JICPR 18.1, 2001, 95-112

379.67.816.7 G.C.Nayak, "Samkara's formulation of Vedanta", TVOS 26.2, 2001, 60-75

379.67.816.9 Stephen H. Phillips, "Could there be mystical evidence fo a nondual Brahman? A causal objection", PEW 51, 2001, 492-506

379.67.817 Alexander R. Pruss, "Samkara's principle and two ontomystical arguments", IJPR 49, 2001, 111-120

379.67.817.0 N., Veezhinathan, "On the cause of the world", TVOS 26.1, 2001, 80-86

379.67.817.1 T.R.Anantharaman, "Samkara and classical Yoga", TVOS 27.2, 2002, 67-81

379.67.817.1.5 Krishna S. Arjunwadkar, "Prapacasara ascribed to Samkara", JOI 51, 2002, 65-84

379.67.817.2 S.R.Bhakshi and Sangh Mitra (eds.), Sankaracharya. New Delhi 2002

379.67.817.3 Sailaja Bapat, "Samkara's interpretation of srutiprajna", ITH 250-261

379.67.817.5 Joel A. Dubois, "Each in its proper place: Samkara's approach to diversity in Upanisadic insight-texts", IJHS 6, 2002, 275-318

379.67.817.8 Satya Deva Misra, "The concept of saksi caitanya on Samkara Vedanta", VedS 114-122

379.67.818 S.N.Rao, "Samkara in contemporary inter-religious dialogue--a Brahmin's perspective", NPAV 122-147

379.67.819 Candrasekarendra Sarasvati, "Sri Adi-Samkara", TVOS 27.2, 2002, 17-30

379.67.820 Arvind Sharma, "Samkara's life and works as a source for a hermeneutics of human rights", NPAV 109-121

379.67.821 Ramakant Sinari, "The real and the constructed: Samkara and Husserl", IndPQ 29, 2002, 277-290

379.67.822 S.M.Srinivasa Chari, The Philosophy of the Upanisads: A Study Based on the Evluation of the Comments of Samkara, Ramanuja and Madhva. New Delhi 2002

379.67.822.5 J. Rangaswami, "Refutation of Samkara's mayavada by Ramanuja and Jnanadeva: a critical analysis", JTS 62, 2002, 91-118

379.67.823 C. S. Stephen, "Samkara and Husserl on consciousness", WEIP 187-208

379.67.825 P. George Victor, Life and Teachings of Adi Samkaracarya. Andhra University Philosphy Series 1. New Delhi 2002

379.67.830 Sengaku Mayeda, "Samkara and Buddhism", Parampara 59-72

379.67.832 Rajendra Prasad Acharya, "The universal mind of Samkara", Dilip 30.3, 2004, 19-23

379.67.833 Jnanananda Bharati, "Sri Samkaracharya and bhakti", Dilip 29.4, 2003, 13-16

379.67.840 Bhaktivilas Tirtha Goswami, "Acharya Samkara's place in the evolution of Indian theism", The Gaudiya 67.1, 2003

379.67.842 N. Hariharan, "A new definition of bhakti", VK 90, 2003, 229-231

379.67.843 Natalia V. Isayeva, "The concept of jiva in the systems of Samkara and Suresvara", BhV 60-63, 2000-2003, 69-78

379.67.843.5 Thomas Jackson, "Samkara–a child philosopher", BrB 65-78

379.67.844 Krishnan Unni Pettapallath, "Socialism and Advaita of Srl Samkara", VK 90, 2003, 193-195

379.67.846 K. V. Raghupati, "Therapeutic value of yama and niyama", VK 90, 2003, 189-192

379.67.847 Hiltrud Rüstau, "The place of Samkara in Indian philosophy and his influence on modern Indian thinkers", TVOS 28.1, 2003, 130-144

379.67.848 Gordon Stavig, "Shankara, Kant and Schopenhauer on reality and phenomenality", VK 90, 2003, 62-67

379.67.848.5 N.Veezhinathan, "Samkara: his message to mankind", TVOS 28.2, 2003, 118-127

379.67.849 Rajendra Prasad Acarya, "The universal mind of Samkara", Dilip 30.3, 2004, 19-23

379.67.849.5 Shailaja Bapat, "Adi Samkaracarya's Kevaladvaitavada", SVBLB 22-72

379.67.849.5 S. R. Bhatt, "Samkaracarya's philosophy of Advaita and his critique of other schools", TVOS 29, 204, 59-68

379.67.850 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Samkara and Bhaskara on Vaisesika", GJWDJ 27-38

379.67.851 Nalini Chapekar, "Vedanta darsana kevaladvaita system of philosophy of Sri Samkaracarya", IndPT 79-98

379.67.852 Rachappa Ingalalli, "The role of reason in the philosophy of Sri Sakaracarya,” The Wisdom of the Rsis (Bhuvaneshwar 2004)

379.67.853 Peter Stephen, "Gottliche Gnade in Sankaras soteriologie", ZDMG 154, 2004, 397-416

379.67.854 Jacqueline Suthren Hirst, "Images of Samkara: understanding the other", IJHS 8, 2004, 157-182

379.67.854.5 Daniel Rauch, "Transformative education: Samkara and Krishnamurti on the encounter between teacher and student", JICPR 21.3, 2004, 137-160

379.67.854.7 S. Balakrishnan, "Superimposition as presented by Samkara and Vidyaranya", TVOS 30.2, 2005, 110-117

379.67.855 Alan Jacobson (ed.), Ramana, Shankara and the Forty Verses. The Essential Teachings of Advaita. Delhi 2005.

379.67.859 Ram Murti Sharma, "Commonality Samkara", EnIW2 34-37

379.67.860 V. K. Kalyanasundara Sastri, "Samkara on jnanayoga", TVOS 30, 2005, 81-92

379.67.890 Sushit Kumar Sarkar, "Samkara's Brahman and Hegel's Absolute: a comparative study", UPEWP 203-212

379.67.895 L. Vijai, "On consciousness: Sri Samkara and Sri Aurobindo", UPEWP 238-246

379.67.896 Vimalananda, Sadacarah of Adi Samkara. Mumbai 2005

379.67.897 Bijayananda Kar, "Samkara Vedanta on sruti, tarka and adhyasa", PappuSV 59-66

379.67.897.2 R. Balasubramaniam, "Thus spake Samkara", TVOS 31.1, 2006, 3-25

379.67.897.3 R. Balasubrahmanyam, "Life, message, and mission of Adi Samkara", TVOS 31.2, 2006, 75-111

379.67.897.5 Arabinda Basu, "Samkara's doctrine of maya", NRMIC 57, 2006, 449-451

379.67.898 Kanchi Mahasrami, "Sri Samkara Bhagavatpada: the guru who innitiated the Vedic revival", Dilip 32.1, 2006, 40-51

379.67.898.5 Mukhyananda, Shri Shankaracharya's Life and Philosophy: an Elucidative and Reconciliatory Interpretation. Calcutta 2006

379.67.898.6 Mukhyananda, "Sri Sankara's methodology", BRMIC 57, 2006, 530-532

379.67.899 K. T. Pandurangi, "Sri Samkara and Purvamimamsa", PIPV 453-459

379.67.899.5 Daneil Rauch, "An alleged anecdote revisited: on Samkara's taking over the King's body and the notion of jnana-nistha", JICPR 23.2, 2006, 73-84

379.67.900 Gyananda Saraswati, Adi Samkara (Life and Philosophy). New Delhi 2006

379.67.903 S. Balakrsnan, "Relevance of Samkara's refutation of the combination of karma and knowledge (jnanakarmasamuccaya) in the present times", TVOS 32, 2007, 23-30

379.67.910 John Grimes, Samkara and Heidegger (Being, Truth, Freedom). Varanasi 2007

379.67.911 Tatsuoki Kato, "On the usage of avidya by Samkara: avidya-kama-karman", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 188

379.67.912 Roopen Majithia, "Samkaraon action and liberation"m AsPOxford 17, 2007, 231-250

379.67.913 T. S. Rukmani, "Ethics in Samkara's Advaita Vedanta", TVOS 32, 2007, 59-76

379.67.914 Daniel P. Sheridan, "The dueling sacred biographies of Madhva and Samkara", JVaisS 15.2, 2007, 123-144

379.67.918 Johannes Bronkhorst, "What was Samkara's sastrarambha?", Sastrarambha 121-130

379.67.920 N. Hariharan, "Nine gems”, TVOS 33.1, 2009, 27-46

379.67.921 Srinivasa Rao, "What did Samkara really teach? A selective exposition of Swami Peamananda Bharati' Vedantaprabodha", JICPR 25.2, 2008, 109-126

379.67.923 H. P. Sah, "An unconventional approach to Samkara's nirguna Brahman", VIJ 45-46, 2007-2008, 141-150

379.67.924 Surya Kant Maharana, "A few aspects of consciousness in Samkara's epistemology", JICPR 26.4, 2009, 87-104

379.67.925 S. K. Arun Murthi, "The mulavidya controversy among Advaita Vedantins: was Samkara himself responsible?", JIP 37, 2009, 149-177

379.67.935 Jonathan Duguette and K. Ramasubramanian, "Is space created? Samkara's philosophy and philosophy of physics", PEW 60, 2010, 517-533

379.67.940 Satya Prakash Singh, "Yoga of Acarya Samkara”, HY 345-358

379.67.943 Carl Olson, "The difference that makes all the difference: a comparison of Derrida and Samkara", PEW 61, 2011, 247-259

379.67.944 Hultraud Rustau, "The place of Samkara in Indian philosophy and hisinflluence on modern Indian thinkers”, TVOS 36, 2011, 117-134


380.Cirantanacarya (715)

       1.Tippana on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra

See e196B.1.29


       2.Pancasutra

380.2.0 Edited by Vrajlal Mohanlal Shah. Prakrta Granthamala 3, Ahmedabad 1934

380.2.1 Edited with Haribhadra's Tika, Yasobhadra Suri's Vivarana and Yasovijaya's Yogadipika, by Sobhadrasuri Mahopadhyaya. Ahmedabad 1980

380.2.2 Edited with Haribhadra's Vyakhya and English summary by Jambuvijaya. Delhi 1986

380.2.4 Acarya Vijaysilacandrasuri, "Who is the author of the Pa`casutra? Cirantanacarya or Yakinisunu Haribhadra?", Jambujyoti 183-202


       3.Cudamani on Sivasarman's Bandhasataka

See e577.2.1


381-390.(unassigned)


391.Author Unknown (715)

       1.Samantabhadracaryapranidhanarajasutra (T.297)


392.-396.(unassigned)


397.Samkarasvamin (720)

       1.General

397.1.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "On the date and works of the Naiyayika Samkarasvamin", WZKSOA 21, 1977, 213-218

397.1.2 Cf. EnIn 2, 1977, 340-341


398.Jnanagarbha (720)

       1.Anantamukhanirdharanitika

See be284.1.4. t176A.1.8. a398.1.1

398.1.1 Hisao Inagaki, "Haribhadra's quotations from Jnanagarbha's Anantamuklhanirdharanitika", in Buddhist Thought and Asian Civilizations (1977), 132-144


       2.Bhasya on Sandhinirmocanasutra

See t135.1.9

398.2.1 Edited in Tibetan by Josho Nozawa. Kyoto 1957

398.2.2 John Powers, Jnanagarbha's Commentary on Just the Maitreya Chapter from the Samdhinirmocana-Sutra. Study, Translation and Tibetan Text. New Delhi 1998

       3.Bhavanamarga


       4.Satyadvayavibhangakarika and Vrtti thereon

398.4.1 Edited in Tibetan and translated, with a translation of Santaraksita's Satyadvayavibhagapanjika, by Malcolm David Eckel. Albany, N.Y., 1987

398.4.2 Malcolm David Eckel, "The concept of reason in Jnanagarbha's Svatantrika-Madhyamaka", BLE 265-290

398.4.3 Ilkka, Pyysiänen, "Jnanagarbha and the 'God's-eye' view", AsPOxford 6.3, 1996, 197-206

398.4.6 Ritsu Akahane, "Study on the Satyadvayabhangabhanga (2); Tibetan commentary and its author", JIBSt 53.2, 2005, 41-44; 54.3, 2006, 109-113

398.4.8 Ritsu Akahane, "What affected the two truths thesis of Jnanagarbha? Study in the Satyadvayavibhaga (4)", JIBSt 56.3, 2008, 85-89


398A.Author Unknown (725)

    1.Mahavairocanasutra

398A.1.0 Chapter One translated in Wilhelm Kuno Müller, Shingon-mysticism: Subhakarasimha and I'hsing's commentary to the Mahavairocanasutra, Chapter One. Ph.D.Thesis, Universityof California at Berkeley, 1976. Ann Arbor 1980

398A.1.1 Translated by Chikyo Yamamoto. New Delhi 1990

398A.1.2 Translated in Minoru Kiyota, Tantric Concept of Bodhicitta: a Buddhist Experiential Philosophy. Madison, Wisconsin 1982, 1983

398A.1.3 Ryujun Tajima, Etude sur le Mahavairocana-sutra. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Paris 1936, 1983. Translated in A. Wayman and R. Tajima, The Enlightenment of Vairocana, Part 2. Delhi 1992, 1998

398A1.4 Kumchok Sithar, "Mahavairocanasutra in the studies on Tsong kha pas's sNgags rin chen mo", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 245-256

398A.1.7 Edited and translated, with Buddhaguhya's commentary, by Stephen Hodge. New York, London 2003

398A.1.9 Translated by Rolf W. Gibel in The Vairocanabhisambodhi Sutra. Berkeley, Calif. 2005


398B.Kotyacarya or Silanka (725)(NCat V, 90)

       1.Commentary on Jinabhadra's Visesavasyakabhasya (NCat V, 90)

See e296.1.3.3. Cf. EnIndPh10, 2006, 233

398B.1.1 Edited by Nathmal Tatia. Vaishal, Bihar 1972


       2.Vrtti on Bhadrabahu's Acaranganiryukti

See d296.2.4 e296.2:1-3,7,8

398B.2.1 Edited Bombay 1932

398B.2.2 Edited by Hiralal Hamsaraj. Jamnagar 1935

398B.2.3 Edited by Acarya Mahaprajna. Ladanum, Rajasthan 1994


       3.Tika on Bhadrabahu's Su(tra)krtangasutraniryukti

See e296.4:1,2,3,7

398B.3.1 Edited, with Parsvacandra's Balavabodha, Sadhurangani's Dipika, and Harsakula's Vakyaprakasatika, by Bhimasimha Manaka. Bombay 1879, 1880

398B.3.2 Edited with Candrasagaragani's Dipika by Rangopadhyaya.


(former 398C renumbered 398B)

398C. Ravigupta (730) 

    1.Vrtti on Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika (available in Tibetan)


399.Subhagupta or Kalyana Raksita (740)

    1.Anyapohasiddhi (Vijnanavada) (NCat I, 239; III, 257)

399.1.1 Ratna Handurukande, "Anyapohavicarakarika", EnBud 1.4, 1965, 786


    2.Bahyarthasiddhikarika (Sautrantika) (NCat III, 257)

399.2.1 Fragments collected by Masaaki Hattori. JIBSt 8.1, 1960, 9-14

399.2.2 Edited in Tibetan and translated by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. Bulletin of Tibetology 4.2, 1967, 1-96

399.2.2.1 Tibetan text with Sanskrit fragments edited by Shiro Matsumoto, "Sahopalambhaniyama", Sotoshu Kenkyuin Kenkyusci Kenkyu Kiyo 12, 1980, 298-265.

399.2.3 Edited by Esho Mikogami. Ryukoku-Daigaku-Ronshu No. 429, 1986

399.2.3.1 Katsumi Mimaki, "Bahyarthasiddhikarika KK.59-60 de Subhagupta", ITaur 14, 1987-88, 275-284

399.2.3.2 Esho Mikogami, "Subhagupta's criticism of the vasana therory, disputes between realists and the Vijnanavadins", Ryukoku-Daigaku-Ronshu No. 434/435, 1989, 31-46. Also SBWarder 86-99


    3.Bodhisattvacaryavatarasamskara


    4.Isvarabhanga (Sautrantika) (NCat II, 277; III, 257)


    5.Nairatmyasiddhi


    6.Sarvajnasiddhi (NCat III, 258)

399.6.1 Edited in Tibetan by Shigeoki Watanabe, "Subhagupta's Sarvajnasiddhikarika", Naritasan Bukkyo Kenkyo Kiyo (Chiba) 10, 1987, 55-74


     7.Srutipariksakarika (NCat III, 257)

399.7.1 Vincent Eltshinger, "Subhagupta's Srutipariksa karika (vv. 10cd-19) and its Dharmakirtian background", DTI 47-61


    8.Paralokasiddhi and commentary

399.8.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "Paralokasiddhi-Texts", in Buddhism and its Relation to Other Religions, Essays in Honour of Dr. Shozen Kumoi (Kyoto 1985), 215-224


400.Hastamalaka (740)

    1.Anubhavavedantaprakarana or Vivekamanjari (Advaita) (NCat I,206; IX, 195)

400.1.0 Edited, with Bhagavatpujya's commentary, and Sadananda Yogindra's Vèdantasaraarasvati's Subodhini, Ramatirtha's Vidvanmanoranjini, all edited by Ananachandra Vedantavagisa. Calcutta 1849

400.1.1 E.B.Cowell, "The Hastamalaka", Journal of Philology 6, 1876, 161-169

400.1.2 Edited by E.B.Cowell. IA 9, 1880, 25 ff.

400.1.2.5 Translated by Nandalal Dhole. Calcutta 1900

400.1.3 Edited in SSG

400.1.3.5 Edited and translated by P. Ksidhnamurti. Hyderabad 1967

400.1.4 A. G. Krishna Warrier, "Hastamalaka", PA 57-62

400.1.5 Passages translated by into German by Paul Hacker in AV334. This translated by Edeltraud Harzer in EnIndPh3, 1981, 601-602


401.Totaka or Trotaka (740)(NCat VIII, 224)

       1.Atmanatmavivekavidhi (Advaita) (NCat II, 62)


       2.Srutisarasamuddharana (Advaita) (NCat VIII, 224)

401.2.1 Edited, with Saccidanandayogindra's Tattvadipika, by V.G.Apte. ASS 103, 1936

401.2.2 Edited, with Saccidanandayogindra's Tattvadipika, by S.Subrahmanya Sastri. Srirangam 1939

401.2.3 Summarized in AV334, 156ff.

401.2.4 Edited in HS

401.2.5 Edited in Malayalam script by Prakasananda. Aliyoor (Mahe) 1971

401.2.6 Edited by Vidyanandagiri. Rsikesh 1972

401.2.7 Kumari R. Pattammal, "Sri Totakacarya's Srutisamuddharanam--a study", TVOS 6, 1981 - 8, 1983

401.2.8 Summary based on 401.2.3 in EnIndPh3, 1981, 598-600

401.2.9 Edited and translated by M. G. Hampholi. PTG 29 (1994): 1. 2-9; 2. 1-13;3.1-13; 4. 1-13. 30 (1995): 1. 1-11; 2. 1-11; 3. 42-59; 4. 14-24. 31 (1996): 1. 15-24; (1997): 2. 24; 3. 16-22; 4. 16-23

401.2.10 Edited and translated as Extracting the Essence of the Sruti by Michael Comans. Delhi 1996


       3.Totakastaka (Advaita)

See et379.24.7

401.3.0 Edited and translated by T.M.P.Mahadevan in HS

401.3.1 Translated by Padmapadacarya. TL 11.1, 1988, 73-74


402.Padmapada (740)

       1.Tika on Samkara's Atmabodha (NCat II, 53)

402.1.1 Edited in BVK 1958, 1-17

402.1.2 Edited in ASDJ


       2.Atmanatmaviveka (Advaita) (NCat II, 61)


       3.Karmanirnaya (NCat XI, 132)


       4.Mahavakyavivekalaghuvrtti (NCat XI, 132)


       5.Pancapadika (Advaita)

See e23.1:144, 273.2; 551.1.8

402.5.1 Edited by R.S.Bhagavatacharya. VizSS 2, 1891

402.5.2 Partially translated by Arthur Venis. Pan n.s. 23, 1901 - 25, 1903

402.5.3 Summarized in Dasgupta II, 104-106

402.5.4 E.P.Radhakrishnan, "The Pancapadika literature", PO 6, 1941-42, 57-73

402.5.5 M.M.Gurunath, "Padmapada's Pancapadika", PAIOC 12.1, Summaries 1944, 103

402.5.6 Translated by D.Venkataramaiah. GOS 107, 1948. Selections from this in SBAV 243-251

402.5.7 A.S.Nayar, "The Pancapadika and its commentaries", BVK 1.2, 1939, 4-8

402.5.8 H.R.Bhide, "A note on Padmapada's Pancapadika", PAIOC 15, Summaries 1949, 145

402.5.9 N.B.Chakraborty, "The concept of falsity (the Pancapadika view)", OH 2, 1955, 105-110

402.5.10 Edited, with Citsukha's Tatparyadipika, Prakasatman's Vivarana, Nrsimhasrama's Bhavaprakasika, Atmasvarupa's Prabodhaparisodhini and Vijnanatman's Tatparyadyotini, by S.Srirama Sastri and S.R. Krishnamurti Sastri. MGOS 155, 1958, 1985.

402.5.11 Sacchidanandendra Saraswati, Bhasyasayavarnane prasthanabhedahtatra Pancapadikaprasthanam. Holenarsipur l966. Partly in English.

402.5.12 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1981, 564-597

402.5.12.1 Emery Robert Boose, Philosophical Developments in Padmapada's Pancapadika. Ph. D. Thesis, Harvard U. 1988

402.5.13 Edited and translated by T.R.Srinivasacarya. Madras 1989

402.5.16 Edited by Kisordasa Svami. Volume One. Madras 2001

402.5.20 J. M. Verpoorten, "Mimamsa and Vedanta-sentences in Padmapada's Pancapadika (Chapter 2)", MVIC 185-200


       6.Commentary on Samkara's Prapancasara (NCat XI, l32)

402.6.2 Edited by Arthur Avalon as štisriprapancasarstantram. Two parts. Calcutta 1935


       7.Tattvamasipancaka (NCat XI, l32)


       8.Vijnanadipika (Advaita)

402.8.1 Summarized in Umesh Mishra, "The annihilation of karman", PAIOC 7, 1935, 467-480

402.8.2 Edited, with a 23 page summary, by Umesh Mishra. AUSS 1, 1940


       9.General

402.9.1 B.H.Kapadia, "Padmapada as an interpreter and an independent thinker", HDVCV 57-63

402.9.2 M. Ramakrishna Sastri, "Padmapada", PA 53-56. Also TVOS 21.1, 1996, 12-17

402.9.3 S.S.Sastry, "Padmapadacarya", TL 5.2, 1982, 4-5

402.9.4 Stephen H. Phillips, "Padmapada's illusion argument", PEW 37, 1987, 3-23. Reprinted IPE 1, 209-230


403.(Bhatta) Arcata or Dharmakaradatta (745) (NCat I, 379)

       1.Tika or Vivarana on Dharmakirti's Hetubindu (NCat I, 379)

See a304.12.3. e344.1.1

403.1.1 Jain Muni Jambuvijaya, "A comparative study of the Utpadadisiddhitika and the Hetubindutika", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 187-192

403.1.1.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "On a newly identified manuscript of the Hetubindutika in the Asiatic Society of Bengal", JASBe 27.4, 1985, 78-83

403.1.2 Toru Funayama, "Arcata, Santaraksita, Jinendrabuddhi and Kamalasila on the aim of a treatise (prayojana) in Buddhist logic in India". Summary in TICOJ 38, 1993, 125-126. Entire article at WZKSOA 39, 1995, 181-202


404.Santaraksita (750)

       1.Madhyamalamkarakarika and Vrtti (Madhyamika)

See et161.1.47

404.1.1 Masamichi Ichigo, "A synopsis of the Madhyamakalamkara of Santaraksita", JIBSt 20.2, 1962, 36-42

404.1.2 Translated by C.I.Waldo. Buddhist 48, 1978, 54-58

404.1.2.5 Edited with Kamala'ila's commentary by Masanichi Ichigo. Kyoto 1985

404.1.3 David P. Jackson, "A recent study of Santaraksita's Madhyamakalamkara", BIS 2, 1986, 13-22

404.1.4 Kennard Lipman, A Study of Santaraksita's Madhyamakalamkara. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Saskatchewan. Canadian theses on Microfiche 44383

404.1.5 Peter della Santina, "The sakara-nirakara controversy", JIPR 5, 2000, 26-36

404.1.6 Andre Dominique Messant, The Yogacara-Sautrantika-Madhyamaka School of Buddhism and its Influence on Rnying Ma Doctrine, with special reference to Santaraksita's Madhyamakalamkara. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Bristol 2003

404.1.8 Translated by James Blumenthal in The Adornment of the Middlel Way: Santaraksita's Madhyamalankara with Commentary by Jamon Miphon. Ithaca, N.Y 2004; Boston 2005


       2.Samvaravimsakavrtti


       3.Satyadvayavibhangapanjika

See t398.4.1

404.3.1 Tae-seung Lee, "Samvrti-satya theory in Santaraksita's Satyadvayavibhanga-panjika" (summary), TICOJ 36, 1991, 118-120


       4.Tattvasamgraha (Vijnanavada) (NCat VIII, 68)

See a221.1.128; 268.7.40.5. e174.6.11

404.4.1 Summarized in four pages by Vidyabhusana in ILMS and HIL

404.4.2 Edited, with Kamalasila's Panjika, by Embar Krishnacharya. GOS 30-31, 1926, 1984-1988.   Two volumes.

404.4.3 Several sections summarized in Dasgupta II, 171-189

404.4.4 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "Quotations from the Tattvasamgraha", IHQ 5, 1929, 811-821

404.4.5 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "Some notes on the Tattvasamgraha", IHQ 5, 1929, 354-355

404.4.6 Prakrtipariksa section translated into German, with Kamalasila's Panjika, by Walther Liebenthal in Satkarya in der Darstellung einiger buddhistischen Gegner, Stuttgart 1933

404.4.7 Translated, with Kamalasila's Panjika, by Ganganatha Jha, GOS 80, 83, 1937. Two volumes. Volume 2, pp. 861-886 reprinted ETB 383-408

404.4.7.1 Stanislaw Schayer, "Santaraksita's analysis of the three times with the commentary of Kamalasila (TS 1786-1856 and TDSP)" in his Contributions to the Problem of Time in Indian Philosophy (Krakow 1938), 28-70

404.4.8 Anumanapariksa edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan, and translated into German with Kamalasila's Panjika, by Arnold Kunst in Probleme der Buddhistischen Logik in der Darstellung des Tattvasamgraha. Krakow 1939

404.4.9 Hajime Nakamura, "A glimpse into pre-Samkara Vedanta philosophy", POORI 1, 1954, 1-13

404.4.10 Heramba Chatterjee, "Buddhist view re eternality of the Vedas", NNLB 230-232

404.4.11 J.Kyota, "A Sanskrit text and Chinese translation of Tattvasamgraha (Kon-go-cho-kyo)", JIBSt 4.1, 1956, 89-92

404.4.12 A.Suganuma, "The examination of the external object in the Tattvasamgraha", JIBSt 10.2, 1962, 51-57

404.4.13 A.Suganuma, "On self-cognition (svasamvedana) in the Tattvasamgraha", JIBSt 22, 1963, 893-899

404.4.14 A.Suganuma, "Santaraksita's criticism of the paramanuvada in the Tattvasamgraha", JIBSt 24, 1964, 26-32

404.4.15 Edited, with Kamalasila's Panjika, by Dvarikadasa Sastri. Two volumes. Varanasi 1968

404.4.16 Anantalal Thakur, "Santaraksita and Kamalasila", JGJRI 28.1-2, 1972, 663-674

404.4.17 Toshihiko Kimura, "Gottesbeweiskritik Santaraksitas zu Nyaya-Vaisesika" (summary). SKenk 213, 1973, 131

404.4.18 Kunio Hishida, "On samanya introducted in the Tattvasamgraha", JIBSt 25.1, 1976, 26-31

404.4.18.5 Shin Kuwatsuki, "Santaraksita's criticism of the category of 'karman' in the Tattvasamgraha", C.A.N.A. 31, 1983, 190-191

404.4.19 V.P.Androssov, "Correlation between philosophy and religion (the Isvarapariksa in Tattvasamgraha of Santaraksita)", JDBSDU 8, 1984, 15-30. Reprinted HIndPh 34-41

404.4.19.1 Dale Allen Todaro, An Annotated Translation of the Tattvasamgraha (Part 1). Ph.D.Thesis, Columbia University 1985;. Ann Arbor 1987

404.4.20 Sthirabhavapariksa section edited and translated by K.N. Chatterjee. Calcutta 1988

404.4.20.5 Rita Gupta, "The doctrine of momentariness in Tattvasamgraha", EDOM 1990, 142-176

404.4.20.7 Toru Funayama, "A study of kalpanapodha: a translation of the Tattvasamgraha by Santaraksita and the Tattvasamgrahapanjika by Kamalasila on the definition of direct perception", Zinbun 27, 1992, 33-128

404.4.20.8 Birgit Kelner, Nichts bleibt nichts. Die buddhistische Zuruckweisung von Kumarilas abhavapramana. Ubersetzung und Interpretation von Santaraksitas Tattvasamgraha vv. 1649-1690. Diplomarbeit, Universitat Wien 1994. Publislhed as WSTB 39, Vienna 1997

404.4.22 J.M.Verpoorten, "The 24th chapter of the Tattvasamgraha: refutation of the Mimamsa doctrine of vedapauruseyatva", StudinM 117-130

404.4.23 Rasmakrsna Bhattacharya, "Yogacara against the Carvaka: a critical survey of Tattvasamgraha, Chapter 22", Anviksa 21, 2000, 46-55

404.4.25 Sara McClintock, "Knowing all through knowing one: mystical communion or logical trick in the Tattvasamgraha and Tattvasamgrahapanjika", JIABS 23.2, 2000, 225-244

404.4.26 Sara McClintock, Omniscience and the Rhetoric of Reason in the Tattvasamgraha and the Tattasamgrahapanjika: a thesis. Ph. D. Thesis, Harvard University 2002

404.4.27 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 410-411

404.4.29 Christian Coseru, Sensation, Perception and Imagery: A Study of the Buddhist Epistemology of Perception with particular reference to the Tattvasamgraha and the Tattasamgraha-Panjika. Ph.D.Thesis, Australian National University 2004

404.4.35 Hisataka Ishida, "On the classification of anyapoha”, RLBPA 197-209

404.4.38 Miyako Notaka, "The role of the conception directing one’smind to a verbal convention in Sanatraksita’s refutaytion of the existence of universals”, RLBPA 375-394


       5.Tattvasiddhi

404.5.1 Kameshwar Nath Mishra, "The unpublished Tattvasiddhi of Santaraksita: a resumé", ITaur 13, 1985-86, 123-130

404.5.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "Is the ultimate cognition of the yogin conceptual or non-conceptual? Part I: a critical edition of the Tantristic Tattvasiddhi, final section", LPEIM 835-852


       6.Vipancitarthatika on Dharmakirti's Vadanyaya

See e344.8:1,1.1,2.0

404.6.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "A page missing from the editions of Santaraksita's Vadanyayatika", WZKS 29, 1985, 211-213

404.6.2 Gustav Roth, "A lost passage of Santaraksita's Sanskrit commentary on Dharmakirti's Vadanyaya", Philosophical Essays, Professor Anantalal Thakur Felicitatio Volume (Calcutta 1987), 3-6.

404.6.3 Edited, with Santaraksita's Tika, by Ram Chandra Pandeya. Delhi 1988


       7.Vipancitartha on Dharmakirti's Sambandhapariksa

See e344.6.2


       8.General

See a175.24.27; 294.5.21; 344.9:4, 110; 352.5.1; 403.1.2

404.8.1 Kenjo Shirasaki, "Jitari and Santaraksita", JIBSt 27.1, 1978, 8-11

404.8.2 Anukul Chandra Banerjee, "Acarya Santaraksita", Bulletin of Tibetology 1982.3, 1-5

404.8.2.1 Dipak Kumar Barua, "Santaraksita--the first Buddhist teacher in Tibet", MB 90, 1982, 95-97

404.8.3 Shiv Kumar, "Santaraksita's critique of Samkhya concept of purusa" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 363

404.8.4 Mark Siderits, "Was Santaraksita a 'positivist'?", BLE 193-206

404.8.5 Matthew Kapstein, "Santaraksita on the fallacies of personalistic vitalism", JIP 17, 1989, 43-60

404.8.6 Mamori Chisho Nanai, "On Santaraksita's refutation of ahetuvada: Santaraksita on Jatakamala XXIII.27", ZDMG Supplement 9, 1992, 655-656

404.8.7 Helmut Krasser, "On the relationship between Dharmottara, Santaraksita and Kamalasila", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 151-158

404.8.8 Marie-Louise Friquegnon, On Shantarakshita. Australia ?

404.8.9 Jim Blumenthal, "Remarks on the dGe-lugs-pa analysis of Santaraksita's views on the status of Hinayana arhats", IIJBS 3, 2002, 33-56

404.8.10 S.K.Pathak, "Contribution of Santaraksita in the new tantra", NNMRP 8, 2002, 108-126

404.8.11 Sara L. McClintock, "The role of the 'given' in the classification of Santaraksita and Kamalasila as Sautrantika-Madhyamikas", SPD 125-172

404.8.13 Chamali Chowdhury, "A critical review of Santaraksita's proof of non-conceptuality (nirvikalpaprakarana) of perception (pratyaksa)", JICPR 20.1, 2003, 179-188

404.8.15 Ernst Steinkellner, "An old transmissional mistake in Patrasvamin's definition of the logical reason as quoted by Santaraksita and Jinendrabuddhi", GJWDJ 185-188

404.8.17 James Blumenthal, The Ornament of the Middle Way: a Study of the Madhyamaka Thought of Santaraksita. Ithaca 2004

404.8.18 Chandi Chowdhury, "Santaraksita's reaffirmation of Dignaga and Dharmakirti's views on perception and his defense of the Nyaya-Mimamsa criticisms", IIJBS 5, 2004, 21-40

404.8.20 Tom Tillemans, "What are Madhyamikas refuting? Santaraksita, Kamalasila et alia on superimposition (samaropa)", TMSR 225-238

404.8.22 Dan Arnold, "Is svasamvitti transcendental? A tentative reconstruction following Santaraksita", AsPOxford 15, 2005, 77-111

404.8.25 Richard P. Hayes, "Santaraksita", EnBuddhism 668-669

404.8.30 James Blumenthal,, "Cynamic and syncretic dimensions to Santaraksita's presentation of the two truths", AsPOxford 19, 2009, 51-62

404.8.35 Joeng Tuske, "Santaraksita on the motions”, WVTIP 263-275



404A. Nimbarka (750) (old #729)

See EIP 15, 2013, 60-62

        1. Atmaparamatmatattvadarsa (Dvaitadvaita)

409A1.1 Edited by Asmolaka Rama Sastri. Vrndavana 1934


        2. Aitihyatattvaradhana (NCat III, 89)

See EIP 15, 2)13, 94


        3. Vedantaparijatasaurabha on Badarayana’s Brahmasutras (Dvaitadvaita)

See b23.1: 103, 229.1. e23.1; 52, 76, 83, 135, 142, 162, 288


        4. Dasasloki or Siddhantaratna (Dvaitadvaita) (NCat VIII, 356)

See e23.1.60.1

404A.4.1 Edited by Kisori Dasa. Vrndavana 1903

404A.4.2 Edited,with Giridhara’s Laghumanjusa, Devacarya’s Siddhantajahnavi, and

Sundara Bhatta’s Dvaitadvaitasiddhantasetuka, by Damodar Lal Goswami and Ratna Gopal Bhatta. ChSS 26, 1906-27

404A.4.3 Edited, with Nimbarka’s Vedantatattvabodha and Purusottama Acarya’s Vedantaratnamanjusa, by Ratna Gopal Bhatta. ChSS 32, 1907-08

404A.4.4 Edited by Madhava Dasa. Aligarh 1910. With English translation by M.Y. Sanam, Nanpara 1915

404A.4.5 Edited by Chabilelal Goswami. Banaras 1913

404A.4.6 Edited Mathura 1924, 1925

404A.4.7 Edited with Harivyasadeva’s Siddhantakusumanjalibhasya. Bombay 1925

404A.4.8 Edited by Lalitasarana. Vrndavana 1937

404A.4.8.5 Edited in Bengali script by Dhananjayadana. Calcutta1974

404A.4.9 Sections translated in HTR 307-308

404A..4.10 Geeta R. Khurana, The Theology of Nimbarka. A Translation of Nimbarka’s Dasasloki with Giridhara Prapanna’s Laghumanjusa. Ph.D. Thesis, Fordham University 1988. Ann Arbor Michigan, 1989. Published New York 1990. Translation only reprinted in EIP 15, 2013, 90-92.

404A.4.15 Jaya Chembarkar, "Dasasloki of Nimbarka”, JASBo 81, 2008, 34-36. Portions reprinted in EIP 15, 2013, 92-93


        5.Krsnastavaraja (Dvaitadvaita) (NCat V. 4)

404A.5.1 Edited, with Purusottama Prasada’s Srutyantakalpavalli and an anonymous Srutisiddhantamanjari , by Ratna Gopal Bhatta. BenSS 32, 1908

404A.5.2 Edited by Kisoridasa. Vrndavana 1912, 1928

404A.5.3 Translated by M.Y. Sanam.Calcutta 1913

404A.5.4 Edited, with Purusottama Prasada’s Srutyantakalpavalli, by Purusottama Prasada Vaisnava. ChSS 65, 1927


        6. Vedantasiddhantapradipa (ms. citation at L. 2826)


        7. Vedantatattvabodha (ms. cited at Oudh 1877, 42; Oudh VIII, 24

See EIP 15, 2013, p. 904


        7A. Savisesanirvi;esasrikrsnastavaraja

404A.7A.1 Edited, with Purusottama Prasada’s commentary, in BenSS 135-136, 141, published in the Journal of Queen’s College, Benares 1907, 1908.

404A.7A.2 Summarized in 404A.4.10


        8.General

See a637.7: 93, 165

404A.8.1 S. Majumdar, The Vedanta Philosophy. Patna 1926

404A.8.2 Umesh Mishra, "Nimbarka’s school of Vedanta”, KK 7, 1940: 620, 701

404A.8.3 Umesh Mishra, "Nimbarka’s school of Vedanta:, ALB 1940, 1-105. Reprinted Allahabad 1966

404A.8.4 Roma Chaudhuri, "Nimbarka (Dvaitadvaita)”, HPE 338-346

404A.8.5 Roma Chaudhuri, "The Nimbarka school of Vedanta”, CHI 3, 333-346

404A.8.6 Roma Chaudhuri, "Nimbarka’s theory of self”, IPC 8, 1963, 27-46

404A.8.7 Rasik Vihari Joshi, "A note on the doctrine of non-difference in difference of Nimbarka”, EAW 15.1-2, 1964-65, 92-102. Reprinted in SILM 109-123

404A.8.8 Amar Prasad Bhattacharya, "The date of Nimbarka”, CR 179, 1966, 285-291

404A.8.9 Madan Mohan Agrawal, Relation of Jiva and Brahman in the Philosophy of Nimbarka. Ph.D.Thesis, Aligarh University 1970

404A.8.10 Roma Chaudhuri, "Nimbarka’s svabhavika-dvaitadvaitavada”, RBJ 4, 1971, 18-33

404A.8.11 K. Dakshina Murthy, "Nimbarka and the Bhagavadgita”, Gitasamiksa 76-85

494A.8.12 Jadunath Sinha, The Philosophy of Nimbarka. Agra 1977

404A.8.13 Madan Mohan Agrawal, The Philosophy of Nimbarka. Agra 1977

404A.8.14 Madan Mohan Agrawal, "Relation of jiva and Brahman in the philosophy of Nimbarka”, EAW 29, 1979, 163-176

404A.8.14.5 R. V. Joshi, "The means and concept of moksa according to Nimbarka”, Dharma-Niranjana 1989, 172-181

404A.8.15 B. R. Modak, "Dvaitadvaita of Nimbarka”, PTG 15.3, 1981, 53-57.Also Dilip 16.5, 1990, 21-23

404A.8.15.1 Joseph Satyanand, Nimbarka: a pre-Samkara Vedantin and His Philosophy. New Delhi 1997

404A.8.18 J. Satyananda, "The Bhedabheda philosophy of Nimbarka”, WIT 211-230

404A.8.21 K. Srinivas, "Dvaitadvaita of Nimbarka a reappraisal”, TVOS 25.1-2, 2000, 137-148

404A.8.24 M.M.Agrawal, Some reflections on Nimbarka’s philosophy of perceptual error”, AngaV 433-454

404A.8.27 Yajneshwar S. Shastri, "Svabhavika-bhedabheda of Nimbarka”, ThV 277-305

404A.8.28 M. Agrawal, "Guru and acarya in the Nimbarka tradition”, JAIRU 5, 2002-2003, 29-38

404A.8.30 Shailaja Bapat, "Nimbarkacarya’s Svabhavikabhedabhedavada”, SBVLB 117-128

404A.8.33 Madan Mohan Agrawal, Nimbarka’s Philosophical Tradition. Delhi 2005

404A.8.35 M. D. Paradkar, "Dvaitadvaita system of philosophy of Nimbarka”, IndPT 130-149


405. Nagarjuna (750)

       1.Bodhicittavivarana

See a47.7.18.5

405.1.1 Studied in N. Simonsson, Indo-tibetische Studien (Uppsala 1957)

405.1.2 Edited in Tibetan with Sanskrit fragments and translated by Christian Lindtner in Nagarjuniana 180-217 (Danish version) 40-54

405.1.2.1 Carmen Dragonetti, "On Suddhamati's Pratityasamutpadahrda-yakarikas and on the Bodhicittavivarana", WZKSOA 30, 1986, 109-122

405.1.3 Edited with Kamalasila's Bodhicittabhavana by Gyaltsen Nasmdol. Sarnath 1991

405.1.4 Carmen Dragonetti, "On the authenticity of the Bodhicittavivarana attributed to Nagarjuna", AS 53, 1999, 983-986

405.1.6 Translated by Thubten Jinpa with commentary by Bstan-dzun-rgya-mrtshe (Dalai Lama XIV). On four video discs. Long Beach, Calif. 2007


406.Bhaskara (750)

See EIP 15, 2013, 113-114

       1.Bhasya on Bhagavadgita

406.1.1 B.N.K.Sharma, "Bhaskara--a forgotten commentator on the Gita", IHQ 9, 1933, 663-677

406.1.2 Edited by D. Subhadropadhyaya. Sarasvati Bhavana Granthamala 94, Varanasi 1965

406.1.2.5 P.M.Dave, "The concept of aksara in the Gita as discussed by Shri Swaminarayan and Sri Bhaskaracharya", BBR 167-177

406.1.3 V.Raghavan, "Bhaskara's Gitabhasya", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 281-294. Reprinted Purana 32.2, 1990, 398-413

406.1.4 T.K.Gopalaswamy Aiyengar, "Bhaskara on the Gita", Gitasamiksa 51-64. Portions reprinted, EIP 15, 2013, 114-121


       2.Bhasya on Badarayana's Brahmasutras (Bhedabhedavada)

See e23.1:94,168,288; b379.16.53

406.2.1 Roma Chaudhuri, "Brahman-jiva-jagat relation: a unique theory (aupadhika-bhedabheda-vada), PAIOC 22, 1965, 232-238

406.2.2 Selections translated in HTR 261-267

406.2.3 A.B.Khanna, Bhaskaracarya. A Study with spoecial reference to his Brahmasutrabhasya. 1998

406.2.12 Takahira Kato, "Bhaskara's Brahmasutrabhasya: an unpublished edition by J. A. B. Van Buitenen", WZKS 52-53, 2009-2010, 295-306

406.2.13 Partly summarized by J.A.B.Van Buitenen and K.H.Potter. EIP 15, 2013, 122-172

       3.General

See a297.1.5; 379.67.850. a379.61.22. a379.67:199,263, 850. a530.1.5

406.3.1 M.L.Sircar, "The philosophy of Bhaskara", PQ 3, 1927, 107-139

406.3.2 P.N.Srinivasachari, "The philosophy of Bhaskara", JMU 1, 1928, 114-124

406.3.3 Ashokanath Sastri, "A critique of Bhaskara's doctrine of simultaneous difference and nondifference", CR 65, 1937, 41-46

406.3.4 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Bhaskara's view of error", JGJRI 1, 1943-44, 48-56. Reprinted in IPS 1, 39-44

406.3.5 Umesh Mishra, "The Bhaskara school of Vedanta", AUS 127-157

406.3.6 Jogendranath Tarkavedantatirtha, "The world as a real modification of the Absolute (Bhaskara's theory of Brahmaparinamavada)" (summary). OH 1, 1953, 317-318

406.3.7 Daniel H.H. Ingalls, "Bhaskara the Vedantin", PEW 17, 1967, 61-88

406.3.8 Hajime Nakamura, "Bhaskara, the Vedantin, in Buddhist literature", ABORI 48-49, 1968, 119-122

406.3.10 Lalita Deodhar, "Bhaskara's refutation of jivanmukti", TMSR 639-644

406.3.15 Umendranath Roy, "The death of Bhaskaracarya", JGJRI 54-55, 1998-99, 132-136

406.3.18 Shailaja Bapat, "Bhatta Bhaskara's Tridandi school of the Vedanta", SBVLB 73-88


407.Dharmadasa Gani or Anantakirti (750) (NCat I, l62; II, 349; IX,248)

       1.Upadesamala(prakarana) with Balabodha thereon (Jain) (NCat II, 349-350)

See e687.3.6; EnIndPh11, 2006, 264

407.1.1 Edited Ahmedabad 1878

407.1.1.1 Tryambaklal Nandikeshwar, A Study of the Gujarati Language in the 16th century (v.s.) with special reference to the ms. Balavabodha to Upadesamala. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of London 1931. Printed London 1935

407.1.2 Edited, with Siddharsi's Vivarana and Ramavijaya Gani's Vivarana. Jamnagar 1936

407.1.3 Edited with Ratnaprabha Suri's Doghatittika by Hemasagar Suri. Bombay 1958

407.1.4 Edited by Padmavijaya. Delhi 1971

407.1.4.5 Edited,with Ramavijaya Gani's Vivarana, by Nemicandra Maharaja. Delhi 1971

407.1.5 Edited by Dinanatha Sarma. Ahmedabad 2000


408.Vadibha Simha (750)

       1.Gadyacintamani (Jain)

408.1.1 Edited by Pannalal Jain. Varanasi 1968


       2.Navapadarthaniscaya (Jain) (NCat IX, 397)

See EnIndPh10, 2007, 264


       3.Syadvadasiddhi (Jain)

408.3.1 Edited by Darbarilal. MDJG 44, 1950

408.3.2 Summarized by Bhagchandra Jain. EnIndPh10, 2007, 264

408.3.3 Edited and translated by Ashok Sahajananda. GJW 1, 2007


       4.Vadanyaya (Jain) (NCat IV, 207)


       5.General

408.5.1 S.Srikantha Sastri, "Vadibha Simha and Vadi Raja", JainA 5, 1939, 89-95


409.Kumaranandi Bhattaraka (750) (NCat IV,207)

       1.Vadanyaya (Jain) (NCat IV, 20

Cf. EnIndPh11, 2007, 468


409A.Yogindudeva (750)

    1.Adhyatmasandoha (Jain) (NCat I, 153)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 260


    2.Paramatmaprakasa

409A.2.1 Edited by Suryabhanu Vakil. Moradabad 1909

409A.2.2 Translated by R. D. Jain. LJL 1, 1915

409A.2.4 Edited, with Yogindudeva's Yogasara and Brahmadeva's Vrtti, by A. N. Upadhye. RJSM 3, 1937. Reprinted Sonagiri, M.P. 1990; Agasa 1960, 1973, 1988, 1990, which contains edition of Yogindu's Yogasara.. Pp. 10-24 of the Introduction reprinted EnIndPh10, 2007, 238-260

409A.2.5 A. N. Upadhye, "Age of the Paramatmaprakasa", ABORI 34, 1953, 166-167

409A.2.5.3 Edited, with Brahmadeva's commentary, by Manoharalal Sastri. RJSM 1916. Re-edited by A.N.Upadhye, Agas 1973, 1990, Third edition edited by Kalpana Jain, Calcutta 2000

409A.2.5.5 Nalini Balbir, "Glossaire du Paramatmaprakasa et du Yogasara", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 16, 1998, 249-295. Texts (Prakrit) on pp. 297-318

409A.2.6 Translated into French by Nalini Balbir and Colette Caillat. Paris 1999

409A.2.7 Edited byi Jagdish Prasad Jain 'Sadhak' and translated by Rikhab Dass Jain, with summary by A.N.Upadhye, in Spiritual Enlightenment. New Delhi 2000

409A.2.10 Colette Caillat, "Mysticism and mystic experience in Yogindu's poem Paramatmaprakasa", in Jainism and Early Buddhism (Fremont, Calif. 2003), 113-128


    3.Yogasara or Amrtsiti (Jain) (NCat I, 356)

See e409A.2.4. i409A.2.5.5

409A.3.1 Edited by Pannal Soni in Siddhantasaradisamgraha. MDJG 21, 1923

409A.3.1.3 Edited by Kamalesa Kumara Jain. Varanasi 1987

409A.3.1.5 Edited by Sudipa Jaina. Udaipur 1990

409A.3.2 Edited by S. Dasaratha Jain. Delhi 1998

409A.3.3 Translated into French in Colette Caillat, "Le quintessence du yoga de Yogindu", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 16, 1998, 233-247.

409A.3.3.5 Translated by Dasaratha Jain and edited by Kusum Jain. Delhi 1998

409A.3.4 Summarized by R.S.Betai. EnIndPh10, 2007, 260-263


409B.Purandara (8th century?)

    1.Purandarasutra

409B.1.1 Ramakrsna Bhattacharya, "Purandarrsutra revisited", JIP 27, 1999, 485-497


410.Haribhadra Suri (770)

    1. Anekantajayapataka and Tika or Vrtti thereon (Jain) (NCat I, 219)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 422

410.1.1 Edited with Vrtti by Haragovind Dasa and Becaradasa.YJGM 40,1909-1913

410.1.1.5 Ediuted with autocommentary. Banaras 1910

410.1.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Zu den Fragmenten buddhistischer Autoren in Haribhadra's Anekantajayapataka",WZKM 44, 1936, 65-74

410.1.3 Edited with Vrtti and Municandra Suri's Vivarana, by H.R.Kapadia. Two volumes. GOS 88, 1940; 105, 1947

410.1.4 Edited by Mansukhbhai Bhagubhai. Ahmedabad

410.1.5.Frank van den Bossche, "Existence and non-existence in Haribhadra Suri's Anekantajayapataka", JA 23, 1995, 429-468

410.1.6 Edited, with Jinavallabha Suri's Vivarana, in Jinavallabhasurigranthavali (Jaipur 2004)


       2.Anekantapraghatta (Jain) (NCat I, 220)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 424


       3.Anekantavadapravesa (Jain) (NCat I, 220)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 424

410.3.1 Edited by Prabhudasa. Patan 1919


       4.Anekantasiddhi (Jain) (NCat I, 220)

Cf. En IndPh 10, 2007, 425


       5.Laghuvrtti on an Anuyogadvarasutra (Jain) (NCat l, 212)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 425


       6.(Brhad)Vrtti or Sisyahita on Bhadrabahu's Avasyakasutraniryukti (Jain) (NCat II, 190-191)

See e296.1:1,2,3,3.2;4.2,5,6. t296.1.3.2. Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 425


       6A.Tika on the Dasavaikalikasutranirukti of Bhadrabahu

410.6A.1 Edited with Samayasundara's Sabdarthavrtti by Bhimasena Manika. Bombay 190

410.6A.2 Edited Bombay 1942

410.6A.3 Edited Pindavada, Rajasthan 1980-81


       7.Dharmabindu (Jain) (NCat IX, 257)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 425-426

410.7.1 Edited and translated into Italian by Luigi Suali. GSAIF 21, 1887

410.7.2 Edited, with Municandra's Vrtti by Ramacandra Cinanantha. Ahmedabad 1894

410.7.3 Edited, with Municandra's Vrtti. JAG 1910

410.7.4 Edited, with Municandra's Vrtti, by Luigi Suali. BI 220, 1912, 1940; Calcutta 1940

410.7.5 Edited by M.N.Doshi. Ahmedabad 1912

410.7.6 Edited Bombay 1922

410.7.7 Edited with Municandra's Vrtti. Ahmedabad, Bombay 1924

410.7.7.1 Edited Bhavnagar 1926

410.7.7.2 Edited with editor's Tika by Candrasuri. Ahmedabad 1950, 1991

410.7.7.3 Edited with Municandra's Vrtti by Ambadala Premacandra Saha. Ahmedabad 1951

410.7.7.4 Edited by Rajasekhara Vijaya. Patna 1968

410.7.7.5 Edited with Candrasuri's commentary by Vijaya Vajrasena. Bombay 1991

410.7.8 Edited with Municandra's Vrtti by Jambuvijaya. Bombay 1993

410.7.9 Edited with Padmasagarasuri's commentary by Devendrasagara. Koba, Gujarat 1996

410.7.10 Edited with Jinavallabha Suri's Vrtti in Jinavallabhasurigranthavali (Jaipur 2004)


       8.Dharmasamgrahani

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 458-459

410.8.0 Edited by Hamsavijayal Bhavnagar 1901

410.8.1 Edited with Malayagiri's Tika by Kalyanavijaya Muni. Two volumes. DLPS 39, 42. Bombay 1916-18

410.8.2 Paul Dundas, "Haribhadra on giving", JIP 30, 2002, 1-44


       9.Laghuvrtti on Jivajivabhigamasutra (Jain) (NCat VII, 299)

Cf.EnIndPh10, 2007, 426


       10.Lokatattvanirnaya (Jain)

Cf. EIP 10, 2007, 426-427

410.10.1 Edited Ahmedabad 1902

410.10.2 Edited and translated into Italian by Luigi Suali. GSAIF 18, 1'905, 263-319

410.10.4 Translated in Christian Lindtner, "The humanism of Haribhadra", Jambujyoti 203-268


       11.Lokavinisika (Jain)

410.11.1 Edited, with Anandasagara Suri's commentary, by Manikyasagarasuri Kapadwaj. Two parts. 1964


       12.Vivarana on Nandisutras (Jain) (NCat IX, 338)

410.12.1 Edited, with Jinadasagani Mahattara's Curni. Ratlam 1928

410.12.2 Edited by Vijayadarsanasuri. 1931

410.12.3 Edited with Sricandrasuri's Durgapadavyakhya. Nandi 1966

410.12.4 Edited with Visamapadaparyaya (A.U.) by Muni Punyavijaya. Varanasi 1966

410.12.5 Edited with Sricandra's Durgapadavyakhya. DLJP 113. Surat 1969

410.12.6 Edited, with Malayagiri's Vrtti and Devavacaka Ksama;rama's Curni, by Vijayajinendrasurisvami. Santipur 1996

       13.Commentary on Samkarasvamin's Nyayapravesa

See e300.1:4,6,15.1,18


       14.Pancasakasutra

410.14.1 Edited, with Abhayadeva's Sisyahita, by Padmavijaya in Jaina Dharma Prasaraka Sabha, Bhavnagar 1912

410.14.3 Edited by Sagaramala Jain and Kamalesa Kumara Jain. Varanasi 1997


       15.Tika on Cirantanacarya's Pancasutra

See e380.2:1-2. a380.2.4

410.15.1 Edited by Jaina Atmananda Mahasabha. Bhavnagar 1914

410.15.1.5 Edited by Kirtitrayi. Ahmedabad 2006

410.15.2 Summarized in Jambuvijaya's Pancasutraka of Cirantanacarya (Delhi 1986), pp. 21-81. Reprinted EnIndPh10, 2007, 427-434


       15A.Commentary on Umasvati's Prasamaratiprakarana

See e196B.2.0.4.5


       16.Saddarsanasamuccaya

Cf. EnIndPh11, 2007, 435-436

410.16.l Edited by F.L.Pulle. GSAIF 1, 1887, 47-73

410.16.2 Edited by Candrasimhasuri. Ahmedabad 1892

410.16.3 Edited, with Gunaratna's Tarkarahasyadipika, by F.L.Pulle. GSAIF 8, 1894 - 12, 1899

410.16.4 Edited, with Gunaratna's Tarkarahasyadipika, by Luigi Suali. BI 167, 1905, 1914

410.16.5 Edited, with Manibhadra's Laghuvrtti, by D.L. Gosvami. ChSS 27, 1905; Varanasi 1957, 1979

410.16.6 Partially translated into Italian, with Gunaratna's Tarkarahasyadipika, by Luigi Suali. GSAIF 17, 1904 - 20, 1907

410.16.7 Chapter 6 (on Carvaka) translated into French by Luigi Suali. LM n.s. 9, 1908, 277-298

410.16.8 Edited, with Haribhadra's Sastravarttasamuccaya, Bhavnagar 1907

410.16.9 Edited with Gunaratna's Tarkarahasyadipika, by Dhanavijaya Gani. JAG 49, 1918

410.16.10 Edited, with Rajasekhara's Saddarsanasamuccaya. Surat 1918

410.16.10.5 Edited with Gunaratna's Tarkarahasyadipika by Becaradasa Jinaraja in Gujarati script. Rajkot 1921

410.16.11 H.G.Narahari, "The Saddarsanasamuccaya of Haribhadra with a commentary by his pupil", ALB 4.3, 1940, 107-114

410.16.11.1 Edited by Vijayajamba Suri, with Somatilaka Suri 's Laghuvrtti. Dabhoi 1948

410.16.12 Translated by K. Sacchidananda Murty. Tenali 1957; Delhi 1986

410.16.13 Edited, with Gunaratna's Tarkarahasyadipika, Manibhadra's Laghuvrtti, Somatilaka Suri's Laghuvrtti, and an anonymous Avacurni, by Mahendra Kumar Jain. JPMJG 36, 1970

410.16.14 Edited and translated by M. Sivakumara Swamy. Bangalore 1977

410.16.18 Edited, with Rajasekhara Suri's Saddarsanasamuccaya and Manibhadra's Laghuvrtti by Kanesvaranatha Misra and Damodaralala Gosvami. Varanasi 1979

410.16.20 Ramakrishna Bhattacharya, "Haribhadra's Saddarsanasamuccaya verses 81-84: a study", JainJ 36, 2001, 134-148

410.16.23 Discussed by Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 428-430

410.16.25 Edited with Manibhadra SUri's Laghuvrtti by Srinivasa Sarma and Sri Narayana Misra. Varanasi 2002

410.16.26 Edited, with Rajasekhara's Saddarsanasamuccaya and Somatatilaka Suri's Laghuvrtti, by Vairagyavijaya. Poona 2002


       17.Sastravartasamuccaya (Jain) and Dikprada thereon

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 436-437

See e410.16.8

410.17.1 Edited, with Yasovijaya's commentary, by Hargovinda Trikamchand Shah. Bombay 1914

410.17.2 Edited with Dikprada. Bombay 1929

410.17.2.5 Edited with Ya'ovijaya's Syadvadakalpalata, byVijayamrtasuri. Sivapura 1957

410.17.3 Edited and translated by Krsna Kumara Diksita. LDS 22, Ahmedabad 1969, 2002

410.17.4 Edited, with Yasovijaya's Syadvadakalpalata, by Badrinatha Shukla. Chaukhambha Prachyavidya Granthavali 7, Varanasi 1977


       18.Sodasakaprakarana (Jain)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 437

410.18.1 Edited, with Yasobhadra's Vivarana and Yasovijaya's Yogadipika, by Buddhisagara. JPU 6, 1911, 1980

410.18.2 Edited by Keshavlal Jain. Surat 1936

410.18.3 Edited with a Balavabodha. Ahmedabad 1952

410.18.3.5 Astaprakarana edited , with Jinesvara's Vrtti, by Vijayajinendra Suri. Santipur 1991

410.18.4 17-18 translated into French in W.B.Bollee, "Le végetarisme défendu par Haribhadrasuri contre un bouddhiste et un brahmane", SBWarder 22-28

410.18.8 Edited with Jinesvara Suri's commentary by Mansukhbhai Bhagubhai. Ahmedabad n.d


       19.Tattvaprakasa(ka) (Jain)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 461

410.19.1 Edited in Prakrt. Ahmedabad 1952


       20.Laghuvrtti on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra (NCat VIII, 80)

See e196B.1.36; EnIndPh10, 2007, 438


       21.Upadesapada (Jain) (NCat II, 347-348)

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 438

410.21.1 Partly edited Bhavnagar 1908

410.21.1.5 Edited by Pratapavijaya Gani. 1923

410.21.2 Edited with Candrasuri's Vrtti. Two volumes. Bombay 1989


       22.Yogabindu (Jain)

410.22.1 Edited with autocommentary by Luigi Suali. Bhavnagar 1911; Ahmedabad 1940

410.22.2 Edited and translated by Krishna Kumar Dixit. LDS 19, 1968

410.22.3 Suvrata Muni Shastri, Jaina Yoga in the Light of the Yoga Bindu: an Analytical Study. Delhi 1995

410.22.5 Phyllis Granoff, "Other people's rituals: ritual eclecticism in early medieval Indian religions", JIP 28, 2000, 399-424

410.22.6 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2007, 438-448


       23.Yogadrstisamuccaya (Jain)

410.23.1 Edited by Luigi Suali. JPI 12, 1911

410.23.2 Edited by Devavijayaji. Bombay 1935

410.23.2.5 Edited and translated by K. K. Dixit. LDS 19, 1968

410.23.3 Edited and translated, with Haribhadra's Yogavimsaka, by Krishna Kumar Dixit. LDS 27, 1970, 1978

410.23.4 Edited by Bhaganadasa Manahsukhabhai Maheta. Bombay 1978

410.23.4.4 Christopher Key Chapple, "Haribhadra's analysis of Patanjala and Kula yoga in the Yogadrstisamuccaya", in John E. Cort (ed.), Open Boundaries: Jain Commentaries and Culture in Indian History (Albany, N.Y. 1998), 15-30

410.23.5 Edited by Dhirajalala Dahyalala Maheta. Surat 2000

410.23.5.5 Translated by Christopher Key Chapple and John Thomas Casey in 410.26.13

410.23.6 Summarized by K. K. Dixit. EnIndPh10, 2007, 448-453

410.23.8 Edited with a Tika by Vijayasila Candrasuri. Hambeta 2010


       24.Yogavimsika (Jain)

See e131.1.80.1. et410.23.3.

410.24.1 Edited, with Yasovijaya's Vyakhya, by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. Ahmedabad 1921, 1979, 1991; Agra 1922 (same as e131.1.63.1)

410.24.2 Nathmal Tatia, "Acarya Haribhadra's comparative studies in yoga", PAIOC 16, Summaries 1951, 229

410.24.2.5 Edited in Gujarati script by Hirocanda Jhaveri. Ahmedabad 1956

410.24.3 Summarized by K.K.Dixit in LDS 4, 1965; reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 454-455

410.24.5 Edited with Yasovijaya's Tika by JayaHrasuri Dholaka. 1998

410.24.6 Edited in Gujarati script by Dhirajalada Dahyalal Maheta. Surat 1999


       25.Yogasataka (Jain)

410.25.1 Edited and translated with autocommentary by Krishna Kumar Dixit. LDS 4, 1965. Summary reprinted EnIndPh10, 2007, 455-458. Also contains edition of the Brahmasiddhantasamuccaya.


      25A.Vimsati-Vimsika

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 459-461

410.25A.0 Edited by Kashinath Vasudev Abhyankar. Poona 1925, 1932

410.25A.0.1 Edited by Maniksagara Suri Kapadvanja. 1964

410.25A.1 V.M.Kulkarni, "Haribhadrasuri's Vimsati-Vimsika: an approach", JPAMI 129-132


      25B. Astakaprakarana

See t410.10.4; EnIndPh10, 2007, 462;

410.25B.1 Edited by Krishna Kumar Dixit. Ahmedabad 1999

410.25B.2 Edited and translated by Sagaramala Jain. Varanasi 2000


     25C.Brahmasiddhantasamuccaya

Se e410.25.1. Also cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 458


     25D.Samyaktvasaptati

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 458


      25E.Darsanasaptatika

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 458


      25G.Sarvajnasiddhi and Svopajna thereon

Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 436


       25H.Vrtti on the Caityavandanasutra


       25J.Vrtti on Umasvati's Sravakaprajnapti

See 196B.2A.1


       26.General

See a131.1.207.1; 294.5.50

410.26.1 Muni Jnanavijaya, "The date of Haribhadrasuri", PAIOC 1, 1919, 124-126

410.26.2 P.K.Gode, "The Bhagavadgita in the pre-Samkaracarya Jain sources", ABORI 22, 1940, 188-194. Reprinted SILH 1, 14-21

410.26.3 R. Williams, "Haribhadra", BSOAS 28, 1965, 101-111

410.26.4 Ludwik Sternbach, "Haribhadra, Jainism and Yoga", Sambodhi 8, 1979-80, 144-170

410.26.5 Shantilal M. Desai, "Haribhadra's synthesis of yoga", Sambodhi 9, 1980-81, 1-39

410.26.6 S.M.Desai, Haribhadra's Yoga Works and Psychosynthesis. LDS 94, 1983

410.26.7 Phyllis Granoff, "Jain lives of Haribhadra: an inquiry into the sources and logic of the legends", JIP 17, 1989, 105-128

410.26.8 R. S. Shukla, India as Known to Haribhadra Suri. Meerut 1989

410.26.8.8 Christopher Chapple, "Centrality of the real in Haribhadra's Yoga texts", AJSP 91-100

410.26.9.6 Olle Qvarnström, "Haribhadra and the beginning of doxography in India", AJSP 169-210

410.26.10 Ramkrishna Bhattacharya, "Haribhadra's views on svabhavavada and the Lokayata", JainJ 36, 2001, 46-51

410.26.13 Christopher Key Chapple, Reconciling Yogas: Haribhadra's Collection of Views on Yoga. Tr. John Thomas Casey. Albany, N.Y.2003

410.26.14 Christopher Key Chapple, "Religious dissonance and reconciliation: the Haribhadra story", AAJ 137-159

410.26.17 Yasunori Harada, "Moksa in Jainism with special reference to Haribhadra Suri", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 14-20

410.26.20 Yasunori Harada, "Haribhadra Suri on momentariness", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 34-39



411.Viryasridatta (750)

       1.Nibandhana on the Arthaviniscayasutra

See e134.1.2

411.1.0 Edited by Naraya Hemandas Samtani in his Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Delhi 1961. Printed Patna 1971

411.1.1 N. H. Samtani, "Sectless acaryas: a study into Viryasridatta's commentary on the Arthaviniscayasutra", JDBSDU 15, 1991, 80-87

411.1.2 Edited and translated by N.H.Samtani as Gathering the Meanings: the Compendium of Categories. Berkeley, Calif. 2002


413.Siddhasena Gani or Gandhahastin (900) (NCat V, 309)

       1.Tika or Vrtti on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra (NCat VIII, 80)

See a196B.1.34. e196B.1.31. t196B.1.62

413.1.1 Summary by Nathmal Tatia (from his edition/translation of Umasvati's work, San Francisco 1994), EnIndPh10, 2007, 462-468.


414.Aryadevapada (750)

       1.Cittavisuddhiprakarana

414.1.1 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan by Prabhubhai Bhikkubhai Patel. Calcutta 1949; Santiniketan 1981

414.1.5 Edited and translated in Matthew Varghese, Principles of Buddhist Tantra: a Discourse on Cittavisuddhiprakarana of Aryadeva. New Delhi 2008


       2.Jnanasarasamuccaya

414.2.1 Portion translated into French in Katsumi Mimaki, La Refutation bouddhique de la Permanence des Choses (Sthirasiddhidusana) et La Preuve de la momentaneite des Choses PICI 41, Paris 1976, pp. 181-188

414.2.2 Katsuri Mimaki, "Jnanasarasamuccaya kk. 20-28: mise-au-point with a Sanskrit manuscript", WCSU 233-244

414.2.4 Restored from Tibetan to Sanskrit, with Bodhibhadra's commentary, by Pempa Dorje. Sarnath 2008


    3.Skhalitapramathanayuktihetusiddhi

414.3.1 Translated into French by Giuseppe Tucci. TP (2d series) 24, 1936, 16-31

414.3.2 Sections translated by Hajime Nakamura. HJAS 18, 1955

414.3.3 Summarized in 15 pages by Hajime Nakamura, "The Vedanta philosophy as was revealed in Buddhist scriptures" in Madan Mishra (ed.), Pancamrtam (Delhi 1968), 1-76

414.3.4 Translated from Tibetan by Robert C. Clark and Lobzang Jamspal as 'The Dialectic Which Refutes Errors Establishing Logical Reasons", TJ 4.2, 1979, 29-50


    4.Madhyamakabhramagata

414.4.1 Giuseppe Tucci, "Un traité d'Aryadeva sur le 'nirvana' des heretiques", TP 24, 1936, 16-317


    5.Svadisthanaprabodha

414.5.1 Edited by Janardan Pandey. BLSam 169-177


415.Vinitadeva (750)

       1.Tika on Dignaga's Alambanapariksa (NCat II, l82)

See e175.18.10. et268.2.10. t268.2.1


       2.Tika on Dharmakirti's Hetubindu (available in Tibetan)


       3.Tika on Dharmakirti's Nyayabindu

See e344.3.5. et344.3:16,20


       4.Tika on Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya (available in Tibetan)


       5.Tika on Dharmakirti's Sambandhapariksa (available in Tibetan)

See a344.6.4


       6.Tika on Dharmakirti's Samtanantarasiddhi

See e344.7:1,8,9. t344.7.2


       7.Commentary on Vasubandhu's Trimsika

See e175.18.10

415.7.1 Padmanabh S. Jaini, "The Sanskrit fragments in Vinitadeva's Trimsika-Tika", BSOAS 48, 1985, 470-492. Reprinted CPBS 417-447


       8.Vyakhya on Dharmakirti's Vadanyaya (available in Tibetan)


       9.Tika on Vasubandhu's Vimsatika

See e175.18.10

415.9.1 Gregory Alexander Hillis, An Introduction and Translation of Vinitadeva's Explanation of the First Ten Verses of (Vasubandhu's) Commentary on his 'Twenty Stanzas",with an appended glossary of technical terms. M. A. Thesis, U. of Virginia 1993


      10.General

See a200.1.8

415.10.1 Leslie Sunio Kawamura, Vinitadeva's Contribution to the Buddhistic Mentalistic Trend. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Saskatchewan 1976

415.10.3 Toru Funagami, "On the date of Vinitadeva", LPEIM 309-326


416.Niskriyanandatirtha (760)

       1.Vatulanathasutra

416.1.1 Edited and translated, with Anantasaktipada's Vrtti, by Madhusudana Kaul Shastri. KSTS 39, 1923

416.1.2 Duschan Pajin, "Release from merit and demerit through the 'great awakening". Study in the Vatulanathasutras", WZKSOA 36, 1992, Supplement 179-188

416.1.2.1 Edited with Anantasaktipada's Vrtti, translated into French by Lilian Silburn. PICI 8, 1959, 1995

416.1.3 Edited by N. K. Gurtoo and M. L. Kukiloo, with translation by Laksman Joo. Srinagar 1996


417.Suresvara (740)

       1.Varttika on Samkara's Brhadaranyakopanisadbhasya

See et379.17.15

417.1.1 Edited, with Anandagiri's Sastraprakasika, by K.S.Agase. ASS 16, 1892-94

417.1.2 Sambandhavarttika (Introductory) section translated by S.Venkataramana Aiyer. Pan n.s. 23, 1901 - 26, 1904. Reprinted Banaras 1905, 1981

417.1.3 Section dealing with Dharmakirti's logic edited and translated by K.B.Pathak in "Milestones of Indian chronology. 1.Dharmakirti and Samkaracarya", COJ 1, 1933-34, 327-343

417.1.3.0 Partly edited in Bengali script by Dinesh Chandra Bhattacharya. Calcutta 1950

417.1.3.1 Shoun Hino, "An observation on Suresvara's Varttika 2-5 of Yajnavalkya-Maitreyi dialogue", CASSt 5, 1980, 169-178

417.1.4 Alakananda Kate, "Surevsara on the samanadhikaranya in the proposition aham brahma'smi (Br.Up. 1.4.10)", PAIOC 29, 1980, 449-453

417.1.5 Summarized by S.Subrahmanya Sastri in EnIndPh3, 1981, 420-520

417.1.6 Shoun Hino, Suresvara's Varttika on Yajnavalkya-Maitreyi Dialogue. Brhadaranyakopanisad 2.4 and 4.5. Delhi 1982

417.1.6.5 Edited with Anandagiri's Srutaprakasika by S. Subrahmanya S'astri. Mt. Abu 1982, 1990

417.1.7 Shoun Hino and K.P.Jog, Suresvara's Varttika on Madhu Brahmana. Delhi 1988, 1991

417.1.8 Shoun Hino, "Suresvara's comment regarding Udgitha Upasana referring to BUBV 1.3", JIBSt 38.2, 1990, 1-7

417.1.9 Portion edited and translated by Shoun Hino. Delhi 1990

417.1.9.0 Udgitha Brahmana (BrUp 1.3) seciotn edited by Shoun Hino and K.P.Jog. Delhi 1991

417.1.9.1 Sisu and Murtamurta sections edited and translated by Shoun Hino. Delhi 1996

417.1.10 Shoun Hino, "Suresvara's view on a commentator of Bhartrprapanca--with reference to Brhadaranyaka Upanisad I.4.9-10", JIBSt 41.2, 1993, 28-31

417.1.11 K.P.Jog and Shoun Hino, Suresvara's Varttika on Purusavidha Brahmana. Delhi 1993

417.1.12 Shoun Hino, Suresvara's Varttika on Saptanna Brahmana. 1995

417.1.13 Ajatasatru Brahmana section edited and translated by K. P. Jog and Shoun Hino. Delhi 1997

417.1.14 Khila Kanda section edited and translated by Shoun Hino and K.P.Jog. Delhi 1998

417.1.15 Sections on Yajnavalkya's Dialogue with Artabhaga and Others edited and translated by Shoun Hino and K.P.Jog. Delhi 1999

417.1.16 Edited by Mahesananda Giri. Varnasi 1999

417.1.17 Section on Jyotis Brahmana edited and translated by Shoun Hino and K.P.Jog. New Delhi 2001

417.1.20 Suresvara's Vartika on Sariraka Brahmana, edited and translated by Shoun Hino and K.P.Jog. Delhi 2005


       2.Manasollasa on Samkara's Daksinamurtistotra (NCat VIII, 300-301)

See a379.19.30. e379.19:6,9,21,24,25. et379.19:7,19,34.

417.2.1 Edited by S.A.Sarasvati. Bhavnagar 1911

417.2.2 Translated by Brahmacari Anadicaitanya. VK 54, 1967-68 - 55, 1968-69. Continued by Bodhisvarupananda, VK 56, 1969-70.

417.2.3 Summarized by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1981, 550-560


       3.Kasimoksanirnaya or Kasimuktinirnaya (NCat IV, 137)

417.3.1 Edited Bangalore 1878

417.3.2 Edited. Second edition, Calcutta 1929-30

417.3.2.5 Edited by Ambikadatta Upadhyaya and Gaurisankara Ganervala. Gorakhpur 1931

417.3.3 Edited by Suryanarayana Sukla. Allahabad 1936


       4.Naiskarmyasiddhi (Advaita)

417.4.0 Edited with Vajracandra Suri's Sara by Ramadatta Samra. Kasi 1880

417.4.1 Edited, with Jnanottama's Candrika, by Rama Sastri Manavalli. BenSS 11, 1890, 1904

417.4.2 Edited, with Jnanottama's Candrika, by G.A.Jacob. Vidyabhavan Sanskrit Series 3, 1890; BSPS 38, 1891, 1906. Revised by Mysore Hiriyanna, Poona 1925, 1980

417.4.3 Edited by Mukunda Simha. Lahore 1925

417.4.4 Edited by Sri Nagapudi Kuppuswami. Madras 1926

417.4.5 Summarized in Dasgupta II, 99-102

417.4.6 O. Strauss, "A contribution to the problem of the relation between karma, jnana and moksa", KSCV 159-166

417.4.7 Rasvihary Das, The Essentials of Advaitism. PunOS 21, 1953

417.4.8 Edited by Sridhara Sastri Pathak. Poona 1942

417.4.9 Edited in AG 14, 1950

417.4.9.1 Edited by Premavallabha Tripathi and Srikrsna Pant. Kasi 1950

417.4.10 Translated by Anthony J. Alston as The Realization of the Absolute, London 1959, 1971. Selections from this reprinted in SBAV 224-228

417.4.11 R.V. de Smet, "The logical structure of 'tat tvam asi' according to Suresvara's Naiskarmyasiddhi", PQ 33, 1961, 255-266

417.4.12 Edited and translated, with 12 page summary, by S.S.Raghavachar. Mysore 1965, 1984

417.4.13 Edited with editor's commentary by Saccidanandendra Saraswati. Holenarsipur 1968

417.4.14 Translated into French as La demonstration du non-agir by Guy Maximilien. PICI 37, 1975

417.4.15 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "An introduction to the Naiskarmyasiddhi of Suresvaracarya", TVOS 4, 1979, 255-304

417.4.16 Summary by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1981, 530-550

417.4.17 Edited and translated by R. Balasubramanian. MUPS 47, 1988

417.4.18 Edited, with Jnanottama's Candrika, by Krsnananda Sagara. Varanasi 1990

417.4.19 John Grimes, The Naiskarmyasiddhi of Suresvara: a Monograph. Delhi 1992

417.4.20 John Grimes, "Interpretation of mahavakyas in Suresvara's Naiskarmyasiddhi", JRS 23.2, 1993, 123-130

417.4.21 Edited with Citsukha's (Bhava)Tattvaprakasika by Prajnananda Sarasvati. Varanasi 1996, 2012

417.4.24 Masahiko Taniguchi, "The position of prasamkhyana as an aspect in the theory of practice by Suresvara", JIBSt 49.2, 2001, 25-27

417.4.26 N. Veezhinathan, "A critique of some Advaitic concepts in the Naiskarmyasiddhi", Parampara 270-291

417.4.30 N. Veezhinathan, "A critique of some Advaita concepts with regard to the Naiskarmyasiddhi”, TVOS 36, 2011, 66-97



       5.Varttika on Samkara's Pancikarana

See e379.19:7,25; 379.42:1,6,7,9,10,12,15.1, 16. et379.42:13,15. s379.42.8

417.5.1 Edited with Narayana Sarasvati's Abharana in Vidyodaya 20.5-12, 1891

417.5.2 Edited by Poul Tuxen. AIK 134-138

417.5.3 Dinesh Chandra Shastri, "The method of Advaita realization in the Pancikaranavarttika of Suresvara", PAIOC 20.2, 1959, 343-346

417.5.3.1 Edited and translated Calcutta 1962, 1979

417.5.3.2 Edited Vrndaban 1962

417.5.4 Edited with Narayana Sarasvati's Abhiprayaprakasika by T.H.Viswanatha Sastri. Sriranga 1970

417.5.5 Summary by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1981, 560-562

417.5.5.1 (See 379.42.16.1)

417.5.6 Jaidev Janio, "Contribution of Suresvaracarya with reference to the Pancikarana", Glory of Knowledge 196-201


       6.Varttika on Samkara's Taittiriyopanisadbhasya (NCat VIII, 22l)

See t379.59:3,4

417.6.1 Edited by the Anandasrama pandits. ASS 13, 1889, 1891, 1911. 1977

417.6.2 B.R.Gupta, "Taittiriya Varttika of Suresvara", AUS 8, 1932, 223-252

417.6.3 Translated by J.M. Van Boetzelaer. Leiden 1971

417.6.4 Translated by R. Balasubramanian. MUPS 20, 1974, 1984

417.6.4.1 Shoun Hino, "About Suresvara's observation on brahmavid apnoti param (TU 2.1.1):, CASSt 4, 1978, 115-124

417.6.5 Summary by Karl Potter in EnIndPh3, 1981, 521-530


       7.General

See a369.7.30; 379.67.843.b317.3.2

417.7.1 M.Ramakrishna Kavi, "Identity of Suresvara", QJAHRS 5, 1931, 187-102

417.7.2 R.Krishnaswamy Aiyar, "Visvarupa--Suresvara", JSS 2.7, 1940-41, 39-42

417.7.3 P.P.Subrahmanya Sastri, "Visvarupa the author of Balakrida and Visvarupa alias Suresvaracarya", PVKF 405-407

417.7.4 Veermani Prasad Upadhyaya, Some Aspects of the Advaita Philosophy as Expounded by Suresvara. Ph.D.Thesis, Banaras Hindu University 1945

417.7.5 S.P.Upadhyaya, "Some of the outstanding features of the Advaita philosophy according to Suresvara", JGJRI 6, 1948-49: 57, 107

417.7.6 Veermani Prasad Upadhyaya, Lights on Vedanta. A Comparative Study of the Various Views of Post-Sankarites, with special emphasis on Suresvara's Doctrines. ChSSt 6, 1959

417.7.7 B.H.Kapadia, "Suresvara, his works and his mind", SVUOJ 9, 1966, 27-38

417.7.8 R.Balasubramanian, "Suresvara", JMU 40, 1968, 105-147

417.7.9 S.V.Subrahmanya Sastri, "Suresvara", PA 69-74

417.7.10 T.Ramalingeswara Rao, Sri Sureswara Acharya. Vijayawada 1970

417.7.11 V.Venkatachalam, "Acarya Suresvara--the unique syncretist", SPP 10, 1970, 12-26

417.7.12 Jayachamaraja Wadiyar, "Sri Suresvaracharya", Srngeri Souvenir, Srirangam 1970, 1-8

417.7.13 C.Markandeya Sastri, Suresvara's Contribution to Advaita. Hyderabad 1973

417.7.14 Anima Sengupta, "Suresvaracarya", ESOSIP 323-326

417.7.15 Shoun Hino, "Suresvara's critique of two pre-Samkara views of knowledge-and- action combination", Sambhasa 4, 1982, 29-43 (same as 417.7.20)

417.7.15.1 S.S.Sastry, "Sri Suresvara and his works", TL 5.3, 1982, 4-14

417.7.16 Padma Iyer, "Visvarupa and Suresvara" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984,346

417.7.16.1 Tryambakeswarananda, "Sureshwaracharya--Samkara's offering to Saradamba", TL 11.1, 1988, 42-45

417.7.17 R. Balasubramanian, "The role of scripture and reason according to Suresvara", TVOS 14.1-2, 1989, 59-84

417.7.18 R. Balasubramanian, "Suresvara on the nature of the self", TVOS 13.4, 1989, 47-56

417.7.19 R. Balasubramanian, "Suresvara on the locus and content of avidya", TVOS 15.1, 1990, 41-49

417.7.20 Shoun Hino, "Suresvara's critique of two pre-Samkara views of knowledge-and-action combination", Sambhasa 4, 1982, 29-43 (same as 417.7.15)

417.7.21 R. Balasubramanian, "Suresvara on the nature and means of liberation", TVOS 16, 1991, 49-76

417.7.22 John Grimes, "Suresvara's interpretation of mahavakyas", TVOS 21.2, 1996, 78-98

417.7.24 D.B.Gangolli, The Essential Sureshwara and the Essential Satchidananda. Kerala 1999

417.7.26 Shoun Hino, "Suresvara on vijnaya prajnam kurvita", Spiritual Cultivation in Buddhism: Dr. Jion Abe Memorial Volume (Tokyo 2003)


417A.(Bhatta) Akalanka (770) (NCat I, 3-5)

       1.Astasati on Samantabhadra's Aptamimamsa (NCat IX, l28)

See e213A.3:2,3,6,8

417A.1.1 Summary taken from comments by Saratchandra Ghoshal (Delhi 2002). EnIndPh10, 2007, 266-269


       2.Laghiyastraya (Jain)

417A.2.1 Edited, with Abhayacandra's commentary, Anantakirti's Tatparyavrtti, Akalanka's Svarupasambodhana, Anantakirti's Laghu- and Brhat-Sarvajnasiddhis, by Kallapa Bharamappa Nitve. MDJG 1, 1915

417A.2.2 Edited, with Prabhacandra's Nyayakumudacandra, by Mahendra Kumar. MDJG 38, 1939; 39, 1941. Two volumes. Reprinted Sri Garib Das Oriental Series 121-122, Delhi 1991

417A.2.3 Edited, with Akalanka's Nyayaviniscaya and Pramanasamgraha and editor's commentary, by Mahendra Kumar. SJGM 12, 1939

417A.2.5 Jayendra Soni, "Epistemological categories in the Akalankagranthatraya", IndTibS 185-192

417A.2.5.5 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Akalanka und die buddhistischen Tradition: von der nichtwahrnehmung von Unsichtbarem (adrsyanupalabdhi) zur Allwissenheit", WZKSOA 49, 2005, 151-226

417A.2.6 Summary, taken from Nagin J. Shah's 343.9.14, with Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh10, 2007, 270-284

417A.2.8 Edited and translated into French as Le theorie de la connaissance dans le Laghiyastraya d'Akalanka. Doctoral Thesis, Universite Jean Moulin, Lyon 2008. Three volumes.

       3.Nyayaculika (cf. JainA 3.4, 1938, 160)


       4.Nyayaviniscaya (Jain)

See e367.2.3

417A.4.1 Edited, with Vadiraja Suri's Vivarana, by Mahendra Kumar. JPMJG 3, 1949; 12, 1954. Two volumes. Second edition New Delhi 2000

417A.4.2 Summary taken from Nagin J. Shah's 343.9.14 and Mahendra Kumar's 417A.4.1, EnIndPh10, 2007, 284-297


       5.Pramanalaksana (NCat I, 4)


       6.Pramanaratnapradipa (cf. JRAS l5, 299)


       7.Pramanasamgraha

See e367.2.3

417A.7.1 Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 298


       8.Siddhiviniscaya (Jain)

417A.8.1 H.R.Kapadia, "Siddhiviniscaya and Srstipariksa", ABORI 13, 193l-32, 335-336

417A.8.2 Edited with autocommentary, Anantavirya's Tika and editor's Aloka, by Mahendra Kumar. JPMJG 22, 1956-59. Two volumes

417A.8.3 Summary taken from Mahendra Kumar (at JPMJG 22-23, 1959), with Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh10, 2007, 299-305


       9.Svarupasambodhana (by Mahasena, according to A.N.Upadhye)

See e367.2.1

417A.9.1 Edited by Jnanananda in Santisopana (Banaras 1922)

417A.9.2 A.N.Upadhye, "Authorship of Svarupa-sambodhana", ABORI 13, 1931-32, 88-91

417A.9.4 Edited by Jagdish Prasad Jain 'Sadhak' and translated b Devendra K. Goy al as The Enlightened Vision of the Self. New Delhi 2005

417A.9.7 Manesh Modi, "Addressing one’s true self. English adaptation of Acarya Akalanka’s Svarupasambodhana”, Svasti 227-230



       10.Rajavarttika(alamkara) on Umasvati's Tattvarthasutra (NCat VIII, 78)

See e196B.1:21, 30, 44, 67

417A.10.1 Edited by Gajadharalal Jain. SJGM 4, 1916

417A.10.2 Chapter Eight translated by N.L.Parsvanatha Vidyapitha Jain as Jaina Karmology. Varanasi 1998

417A.10.3 Summarized by Mahendra Kumar and Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh10, 2007, 306-421


       11.General

See b343.9.14. a268.110.177

417A.11.1 K.B.Pathak, "On the date of Akalankadeva", ABORI 13, 1931-32, 157-160



418.Kamalasila *(770)* (NCat III, 158)

See aB1689

       1.Avikalpapravesadharanitika (NCat III, 158) on Asannga's Dharmadharmatavibhanga.

418.1.1 Edited and translated in 174.4.7


       2.Astaduhkhavisesanirdesa (NCat III, 158)


       3.Bhavanakramas

418.3.1 Krama 1 edited and translated, and krama 3 edited, by Guiseppe Tucci in MBT

418.3.1.5 Edited (and translated?) in Shuki Yoshimura, Tibetan Buddhistology. Two volumes. Kyoto 1951, 1953

418.3.2 Krama 3 edited and translated into Russian by E.E.Obermiller. Moscow 1963

418.3.2.1 Translated into Italian by Corrado Pensa. RDSO 39, 1964, 211-242

418.3.3 E.E.Obermiller (tr. S.Frye), "A Sanskrit manuscipt from Tibet: The Bhavanakrama of Kamalasila", TJ 2.1, 1977, 28-34

418.3.4 First krama translated as Le Progression dans le Meditation by Jose van den Broeck. Bruxelles 1977

418.3.5 Edited by Nandal Gyatsen. Sarnath 1985

418.3.5.5 Fujio Taniguchi, "Quotations from the First Bhavanakrama of Kamalasila found in some Indian texts", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 303-308

418.3.5.8 Ornan Roten, Wisdom Arisiong from Reflection: or Exploration of cintamayi prajna arising from Kamalasila's Bhavanakrama I. Ph. D. Thesis, U. of Bristol 1995

418.3.6 Translated by Parmananda Sharma. Delhi 1997

418.3.7 Krama 2 translated by Geshe Lhundup Sopa, Elvin W. Jones and John Newham as The Stages of Meditation: Middle Volume. Madison, Wisconsin 1998

418.3.8 Edited and translated by Geshe Lobsang Jordhen, Lobsang Choephal Gonchanpa and Jeremy Russell as Stages of Meditation: Commentary. Ithaca, New York 2001. Translated into German as Die Essenz der Meditation by Stephen Schuhmacher, Munchen 2001, 2005. Translated into Spanish by Jose Miguel Gonzalez Marcien, Barcelona 2001. Translated into Swedish by Alf Goettsvunjo, Malmo 2003. Translated into French as Les etapes de la meditation by Philippe Cerna, Paris 2007

418.3.9 Martin T. Adam, Meditation and the Concept of Insight ion Kamalasila's Bhavanakrama. Dissertation, Montreal 2002

418.3.9.5 Khenchen Threngu Rinpoche, Essential Practice: Lecture on Kamalasila's Stages of Meditation in the Middle Way School. Translated b Jules B. Levinson. Ithaca, N.Y. 2002

418.3.10 Martin T. Adams, "Two concepts of meditation and three kinds of wisdom in Kamalasila's Bhavanakramas: a problem of translation", BudSR 23.1, 2002, 71-92

418.3.12 Thierry-Marie Courau, Les trois Bhavanakramas de Kamalasila (740-796) etude et fondament de la succession des exercises vers l'eveil. Doctoral Thesis, Strasbourg 2004

418.3.13 Translated by Paramananda Sharma. New Delhi 2004

 

      4.Bhavanayogavatara (NCat III, 158)


       5.Bodhicaryapradipa (Vijnanavada)

418.5.1 Indumatie Karunaratna, "Bodhicaryapradipa", EnBud 3.2, 1972, 181


       6.Cittasthapanasamanyasutrasamgraha (NCat III, 158)


       7.Panjika on Santaraksita's Madhyamakalamkara (NCat III, 158)

418.7.1 Portions translated by Seitetsu Moriyama, "The Yogacara-madhyamika refutation of the position of the satyakara- and alikakara-vadins of the Yogacara school. Part III", Journal of Humanistic Studies (Uimbungaku-Ronshu) 18, 1984, 1-28


       8.Madhyamakaloka (Madhyamika) (NCat III, 158)

418.8.1 Ryusei Keira, "Kamalasila's interpretation of anupalabdhi in the Madhyamakaloka", DTI 185-192

418.8.2 Edited by Ramasankara Tripathi. Varanasi 2001

418.8.3 Edited by Penpa Dorje. Sarnath 2001

418.8.6 Ryusei Keira, Madhyamika and Epistemology: A Study of Kamalasila's Method for Proving the Voidness of All Dharmas. Introduction and annotated translations of Tibetan text and selected sections of the Madhyamakaloka. WSTB 59, 2004

418.8.8 Ryusei Keira, "The absence of sadhaka pramana and presence of badhaka pramaqna: the Madhyamkaloka's two-fold proof of nihsvabhavata", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 199-200


       9.Tika on (Prajnaparamita)Hrdayasutra (NCat III, 158)


       10.Purvapaksasamksepa on Dharmakirti's Nyayabindu (NCat III, 158)

418.10.1 Sanjit Kumar Sadhukan, "Nyayabindu-Purvapaksa-Samksipti of Kamalasila", JOI 46, 1996, 55-60

418.10.2 Translated by Alex Wayman in MBL

418.10.4 Edited and translated by Sanjit Kumar Sadhukan. Kolkata 2007


       11.Pranidhanaparyantadvaya (NCat III, 158)

   

       11A.Tika on the Salistambasutra

418.11A.1 Jeffrey Davis Schoening, "The Arya-Salistambaya-Tika:  Kamalasila's commentary on the Salistamba-sutra", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 221-236


       12.Sarvadharma(nih)svabhavasiddhi (NCat III, 159)

418.12.1 Edited and translated into Japanese by Seitetsu Moriyama. BDDKK 9, 1981, 60-100; 10, 1982, 109-158

418.12.2 Seitetsu Moriyama, "A synopsis of the Sarvadharmanihsvabhavasiddhi of Kamalasila", JIBSt 30.2, 1982, 7-11

418.12.3 Seitetsu Moriyama, "An annotated translation of Kamalasila's Sarvadharmanihsvabhavasiddhi Part IV", Journal of Bukkyo University 69, 1960, 1-28


       13.Tika on Saptasatikaprajnaparamitasutra (NCat III, 159)


       14.Tattvaloka (NCat III, 158)


       15.Tika on Vajracchedikasutra (NCat III, 158)

See e161.1.49.1


       16.Panjika on Santaraksita's Tattvasamgraha (NCat III, 158; VIII,68)

See a221.1.128; 404.4:20.7,25. b404.4.7.1. e404.4:2,15, 25. et404.4.8. t404.4:6,7. d404.4.26

418.16.1 Stanislaw Schayer, "Kamalasila's Kritik der Pudgalavada", RO 8, 1931-32, 68-93

418.16.2 Anumanapariksa section edited in Tibetan by Arnold Kunst. MCB 8, 1946-47, 106-211

418.16.3 J.Nagasawa, "Kamalasila's theory of the Yogacara", JIBSt 19, 1962, 363-371

418.16.4 Ernst Steinkellner, "Zur Zitierweise Kamalasila's", WZKSOA 7, 1963, 116-150

418.16.5 Seitetsu Moriyama, "Kamalasila's and Haribhadra's refutation of the satkara- and alikakaravadis of the Yogacara school", JIBSt 33.1, 1984, 389-393

418.16.5.5 Shoko Watanabe, Glossary of the Tattvasamgrahapanjika. Tibetan-Sanskrit-Japanese. Part I. ActInd 5, 1985, 1-267

418.16.6 Jose Pereira, "The systematics of Mahayana in Kamalasila", JIBSt 37.2, 1989, 1-9

418.16.7 1311-1328 edited by Sakae Ishibashi. BBSRU 6, 1993

418.16.8 Toru Funayama, "Kamalasila's interpretation of 'non-erroneous' in the definition of direct perception and related problems", DTI 73-99

418.16.10 Discussed by Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 411

418.16.15 Shinsei Fuji, "On the Salistambasutra in the Tattvasamgrahapanjika", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 229-230

418.16.18 Toru Funayama, "Kamalasila's distinction between the two sub-schools of Yogacara: a provisional survey", Pramanakirti 187-202


       17.Bodhicittabhavana

See et405.1.3


       18.General

See a404.8.11; 294.5.21; 403.1.2; 404.8.20

418.18.0 K. K. Mittal, "Kamalasila", JGJRI 50-51, 1994-95, 523-540

418.18.1 A.G.S.Kariyawasan, "Kamalasila", EnBud 6, 1996, 107

418.18.4 Izumi Miyazaka, "The gradualist chapter of the bSan gtan mig sgron and the teaching of Kamalasila", JIBSt 52.2, 2004, 53-56

418.18.6 Jeson Woo, "Kamalasila on yogipratyaksa", IIJ 48, 2005, 111-121

418.18.8 Mukio Hitoni, "Kamalasila's theory of causality", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 199

418.18.10 Martin T. Adams, "Some notes on Kamalasila's understanding of insight considered as the discernment of reality (bhuta-pratyaveksa)", BudSR 25, 2008, 194-209

518.18.15 Toru Funayama, "Kamalasila's view of yogic perception and the bodhisattva path", RLBPA 99-112


418A Jinendrabuddhi (830) (NCat VII, 278)

    1.Visalamavati on Dignaga's Pramanasamuccaya (NCat VII, 278)

See e268.7.20.1. t268.7.6-7. a404.8.15

418A.1.1 K.B.Pathak, "Bhamaha's attacks on the Buddhist grammarian Jinendrabuddhi", JASBo 23, 1914, 18-31

418A.1.3 I.9 and V.11 translated in Th. Stcherbastky, BL I

418A.1.4 Ernst Steinkellner, "Some Sanskrit fragments of  Jinendrabuddhi's Visalamalavati", CIS 96-105; ESLI 216-225

418A.1.8 Chapter 1 edited by Ernst Steinkellner, Helmut Krasser and Horst Lasic. Wien 2005

418A.1.9 Eli Franco, "On Pramanasamuccayavrtti again", JIP 33, 2005, 631-633


       2.Tippani on Dharmottara's Nyayabindutika


       3. General

See a268.10.102.5; 403.1.2,

418A.3.1 K.B.Pathak, "Jinendrabuddhi, Kaiyata and Haradatta", ABORI 12, 1930, 246-251

418A.3.2 Richard B. Hayes, "Jinendrabuddhi", JAOS 103, 1993, 709-717


419.Dharmottara or Dharmatrata (770) (NCat I, 257; IX, 280)

       1.Apohaprakarana (Vijnanavada)

See a404.8.7. t344.4.1

419.1.1 Ratna Handurukanda, "A(nya)pohaprakarananama", EnBud 1.4, 1965, 785-786

419.1.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "Der Einleitungsvers von Dharmottaras Apohaprakaranam", WZKSOA 20, 1976, 123-134


       2.Ksanabhangasiddhi (Vijnanavada) (NCat V, 144)

419.2.1 Edited in Tibetan and translated into German by Erich Frauwallner. WZKM 42, 1935, 217-258


       3.Tika on Dharmakirti's Nyayabindu

See e174.8.31; 344.3:1,8,13.1,14,17,19,20,20.1. et344.3:3,21. i344.3:9,12. t344.3: 6.1,11

419.3.1 Edited, with Mallavadin's Tippani, by Th. Stcherbatsky. BBudh 11, 1909


       4.Paralokasiddhi (NCat IX, 280)

419.4.1 Translated from Tibetan by G.N.Roerich. IC 15, 1948-49, 223-228

419.4.2 Edited and translated into German by Ernst Steinkellner. Wien 1986


       5.(Laghvi)Pramanyapariksa (NCat IX, 280)

419.5.1 Edited and translated into German by Helmut Krasser, Dharmottaras kurze Untersüchung der Gültigkeit einer Erkenntnis Laghupramanyapariksa. Two volumes. OAW, phil.-hist. Kl. 578. Band. Wien 1991

419.5.2.Helmut Krasser, "Dharmottara's theory of knowledge in his Laghupramanyapariksa", JIP 23, 1995, 247-271


       5A.(Brhat)Pramanyapariksa


       6.Tika on Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya (NCat IX, 280)

419.6.0 Ernst Steinkellner, "Sanskrit-fragmenrte der Pramanaviniscayatika, 2. Kapitel", WZKS 23, 1979, 150-154

419.6.1 E. Steinkellner and H. Krasser, Dharmottaras Exkurs zur Definition gültiger Erkenntnis im Pramanaviniscaya: Materialien zu Definition gültiger Erkenntnis in der Tradition Dharmakirtis. Wein 1989

419.6.3 Ernst Steinkellner, "Mizsellen zur erkenntnis-theoretisch-logischer Schulder des Buddhismus. IX. The colophon of Dharmottara's Pramanaviniscayatika", WZKSOA 50, 2006, 199-206


       7.General

See 344.9.162; 378.1.8

419.7.1 Shiro Matsumoto, "On the philosophical positions of Dharmottara and Jitari", JIBSt 29.2, 1981, 9-12

419.7.2 Nagin J. Shah, "A puzzle for the scholars of Buddhist history", Sambodhi 19, 1994-95, 48-49

419.7.3 Birgit Kellner, "Levels of (im)perceptibility: Dharmottara's views on the drsya in drsyanupalabadhi", DTI 193-208

419.7.5 Masamichi Sakai, "Dharmottara's interpretation of the causelessness of destruction", JIBSt 58.3, 2010, 125-129


420.Atreya (780) (NCat II, 67)

       1.Bhasya on Kanada's Vaisesikasutras

See a164.1.3

420.1.1 S.Kuppuswami Sastri, "Ravana-Bhasya", JOR 3, 1929, 1-5

420.1.2 Anantalal Thakur, "Atreya--the Bhasyakara", IC 13, 1947, 185-188. Discussion with V.Raghavan in same issue, p. 227

420.1.3 A.N.Pandeya, "Atreya and his Bhasya on the Vaisesika Sutras", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 258-260

420.1.4 Anantalal Thakur, "The problem of the Vaisesikabhasya", CIDO 26, 1969, 489-493

420.1.5 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 337-338

420.1.7 Discussed by Anantalal Thakkur in ODVS 122-130


421.Gopalasrama (780)

       1.Varttika Gopala, resumé of Suresvara's Sambandhavarttika section of Brhadaranyakopanisadbhasyavarttika (NCat VI, 156)


421A.Prajnakaragupta (780)

       1.Alamkara or Bhasya on Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika

See e344.4.5; 344.4: 36.1, 110

421A.1.0 Rahula Sankrtyayana, Indices to Pramanavarttika Bhashya of Prajnakaragupta. TSWS 1.2, 649-692

421A.1.1 Rupendra Kumar Pagariya, Index of Half Verses in Pramanavarttikabhasya. LDS 29, 1970

421A.1.2 Takahashi Iwata, "Ein aspekt des Sakaravijnanavada bei Prajnakaragupta (PVBh)", JIBSt 31.1, 1982, 17-20

421A.1.3 Takashi Iwata, "On prasangaviparyaya in Dharmakirti's tradition--Prajnakaragupta and gTsanag pa", TibSt 427-438

421A.1.4 Motoi Ono, Prajnakaraguptas Erklärung zue Definition gültiger Erkenntnis (Pramanavarttikalamkara zu Pramanavarttika II 1-7). Edited and translated. Two volumes. Dissertation, Universitat Wien 1993

421A.1.5 Edited by Shigeaki Watanabe. Patna 1998

421A.1.6 Bhasya on 2.1abc and 2.4d-2.5ab edited by Shigeaki Watanabe. JNIBS 23, 2000, 1-88

421A.1.9 Eli Franco, "Toward a critical edition and translation of the Pramanavarttikalamkarabhasya: a propos two recent publications", WZKS 48, 2004, 151-170

421A.1.12 Koji Ezaki, "Udayana and Prajnakaragupta: a Sanskrit fragment of the Pramanavarttikalamkara found in the Nyayavarttikatatparyatikaparisuddhi", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 155-156

421A.1.15 Eli Franco, "Prajnakarabupta on pratityasamutpada and reverse causation", Pramanakirti 163-186

421A.1.17 Shinyu Morioyan, Omniscience and Religious Suthority: Prajnakaragupta's Commentary on PV II.8-10 and 29-33. Dissertation University Wien 2006

421A.1.20 Masahiro Inami, "Nondual cognition”, RLBPA 177-196

421A.1.3 Lawrence McCrea, "Prajnakaragupta on the pramanas and their objects:, RLBPA 421A.1.3


       2.Sahopalambhaniyama (available in Tibetan)

421A.2.1 Edited by Takashi Iwata. Two volumes. Alt- und Neu-Indische Studien (Hamburg University) 29 (Stuttgart 1991.


       2A. Panjika on Santisuri’s Bodhicaryavatara

421A.2A.1 Barbara Nelson, "'Beyond free and literal’: translating a Buddhist text (Bodhicaryavatarapanjika) from Sanskrit”, JOSA 43, 2011, 83-102



       3.General

421A.3.1 Takashi Iwata, "Prajnakaragupta's proof of the Buddha's authority", TMSR 355-374

421A.3.5 Hisayashi Kobayashi, "Prajnkaragupta on other minds", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 219-220

421A.3.6 Hirayashi Kobayashi, "Prajnakaragupta on the non-distinction between dream and non-dream argumentation, and the two-truths theory", SACS 1, 2006, 120-146

421A.3.8 Hirayashi Kobayashi, "Prajnkaragupta on inference: how does inference work without external realities?", JIBSt 58.3, 2010, 130-135

421A.3.9 Keijin Hayashi, "Prajnakaragupta's interpretation of mental perception", RLBPA 139-150

421A.3.10 Hiroyasu Kobayashi, "Prajnakaragupta on the two truths and argumentation", JIP 39, 2011, 427-439

421A.3.1.3 Shinya Moriyama, "Pramnaparisuddhajna, sarvajna and sarvasarvajna:, RLPBA 328-339


422.(Bhatta) Udbhatta(svamin) (800)

       1.Visesastava

422.1.1 Esther A. Solomon, "Bhatta Udbhata", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 985-992

422.1.2 Edited in Tibetan and translated by Sangye T. Naga in Kenneth Liberman, "A note on the Visesastava (khyad par, 'phags bstad): 'Superior Verses in Praise (of Buddha Sakyamuni)", TJ 23.2, 1998, 49-83


423.Mathara (800)

       1.Vrtti on Isvarakrsna's Samkhyakarikas

See e163.1:32, 110. a243.1.2. t163.1.99; EFNW2

423.1.1 S.K.Belvalkar, "Matharavrtti and the date of Isvarakrsna", CERB 171-184

423.1.2 A.B.Keith, "The Mathara-vrtti", BSOAS 3, 1923-25, 551-554

423.1.3 S.K.Belvalkar, "Mathara-vrtti", ABORI 5, 1924, 133-168. Reprinted 1924

423.1.4 Umesh Mishra, "Gaudapadabhasya and Matharavrtti", AUS 7, 193l, 371-386

423.1.5 S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Mathara and Paramartha", JRAS 1931, 625-639

423.1.6 Summarized by Harsh Narain. Samkhya 291-300


424.Vidyakaraprabha (800)

       1.Madhyamakanayasarasamasaprakasana


       2.Tarkasopana

424.2.1 Edited by Giuseppe Tucci, Minor Buddhist Texts. Parts I and II. SerOR 9, 1956, 275-310; Delhi 1986, pp. 275-310

424.2.2 Edited by Jai Govind Mishra. Nagarjuna Bauddhabharatitattva-vidyanusandhana Pitha, Introduction and Activities 1988-89. Gorakhpur 1989

424.2.3 Edited by Dorje Penpa. Sarnath 1994


425.Samkaranandana (800) (NCat l, 257)

       1.Apohasiddhi and commentary (NCat I, 257)

425.1.1 E.J.Perera, "Apohasiddhi", EnBud 2.1, 1964, 28

425.1.2 Von Gudrun Bühnemann, "Identifizierung von Sanskrittexten Samkaranandanas", WZKS 24, 1980, p. 191-198. [Lists texts known from Tibetan sources]


       2.Pratibandhasiddhi (available in Tibetan)

See a425.1.2


       3.Anusara on Dharmakirti's Sambandhapariksa

See a425.1.2. et344.6.1


       4.Sarvajnasiddhisamksepa or -karika and commentary

See a425.1.2


       5.Tika on Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika (NCat XIII, 44)

See a425.1.2


       6.Laghupratibandhasiddhi 

See a425.1.2


       7.Suksmapramanyakarika

See a425.1.2


        8.Madhyapramanyakarika

See a425.1.2


        9.Brhatpramanyakarika

See a425.1.2


       10.Dharmalankarakarika

See a425.1.2


       11.Prajnalamkarakarika

See a425.1.2


       12.Svalpasarvajnasiddhikarika and commentary

See a425.1.2


       13.Isvarapakaranakarika and commentary

See a425.1.2

425.13.1 Helmut Krasser, Sankaranandanas Isvarapakaranasanksepa mit einem Kommentar und weiteren Materialien zu buddhistischen Gottespolemik. Two volumes. Wien 2002


       14.Samksiptesvarapakaranakarika

See a425.1.2


       15.Agamasiddhikarika and commentary

See a425.1.2


       16.General

425.16.1 Helmut Krasser, "On the dates and works of Samkaranandana", LPEIM 489-508


425A.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Bodhigarbhalamkaralaksasutra


425B.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Bodhimanalalaksalamkaradharanisutra


425C.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Dasabuddhakasutra


426.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Mahaprajnaparamitasutra on the Hrdayasutra

426.1.1 Edited in Bailey

426.1.2 Translated by H.W.Bailey in PRS 153-162

426.1.3 Lewis Lancaster, "A study of a Khotanese Prajnaparamita text after the work of Sir Harold Bailey", PRS 163-183

426.1.4 H.W.Bailey, "The Bodhisattva in the Prajna-paramita", Senarat Paranavitana Commemoration Volume (ed. Leelananda Prematilleke et al.), Leiden 1978, 20-21


427.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Kalpadrumavadanamalasutra (manuscript at Cambridge University Library)

427.1.1. Reproduction of the manuscript, Ann Arbor, Michigan 2005


428.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Ratnamalavadhanasutra

428.1.1 Edited by K. Takahata. Tokyo 1954


429.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Sarvakarmavaranavisodhanidharanisutra


430.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Sarvaprajnantaparamitasiddhicaityadharanisutra


431.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Tathagatanambuddhaksetragunoktadharmaparyayasutra


432.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Vajraketusutra (Toh. 30)

432.1.1 Translated Conze, ShortPP 152-153


433.Author Unknown (800)

       1.Vajrapanyabhisekhasutra


433A.Karna(ka)gomin (800) (NCat III, 183)

       1.Tika or Vrtti on Prajnakaragupta's Pramanavarttikalamkara (NCat III, 183)

See e344.4.6, 363.1.25

433A.1.1 Edited by Shoren Ihara. Patna 1998


434.Author Unknown (810)

       1.Pratibhanamatipariprcchasutra (T.544)


435.Visvarupa (810)

       1.General

435.1.1 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 34l


436.Dhairyarasi (810)

       1.General

436.1.1 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 341


437.Aviddhakarna (820) (NCat I, 427)

       1.Tattvatika (NCat I, 427)


       2. General

437.2.1 Esther A. Solomon, "Aviddhakarna - a forgotten Naiyayika", PAIOC 1972, 337-352


438.Candra (820) (NCat VI, 344)

       1.Amrtabindu (Prabhakara Mimamsa) (NCat I, 349)

438.1.1 A few pages edited in TRC

438.1.2 Edited by Ujjvala Jha. Poona 2001


       2.Nyayaratnakara on Jaimini's Mimamsasutras (NCat VI, 345)


       3.General

438.3.1 Umesh Mishra, "Mahamahopadhyaya Candra", POS 39, 1940, 241-248


439.Mallavadin (825)

       1.Tippani on Dharmottara's Nyayabindutika

See e419.3.1. a221.1.213

439.1.1 Portion translated by Th. Stcherbatsky in BL I

439.1.2 Jambuvijaya, "Mallavadi--the great Jaina logician", KKIBR 73-78

439.1.3 Wilhelm Halbfass, "Mallavadin and early Vaisesika ontology", ALB 50, 1986, 58-84

439.1.4 Svarthanumana chapter edited by Hideomi Yaita. JNIBS 20, 1997, 49-93. Pratyaksa chapter edited JNIBS 22, 1999, 63-104

439.1.5 Chapter 3 edited by Hideomi Yaita. JNIBS 23, 2000, 107-164

439.1.8 Jan E. M. Houben, "Doxographicintroductions to the ohilosophical systems: Mallavadin and the Grammarians", sastrarambha 83-96


439A.Author Unknown (825)

       1.Manjusrinairatmyavatarasutra

439A.1.1 Lines 5-54 edited and translated in Ronald E. Emmerick, "From the Manjusrinairatmyavatarasutra", BVSK 81-90


440.Salikanatha Misra (825)

       1.Angaparayana (NCat I, 63)


       2.Rjuvimalapancika on Prabhakara's Brhati

See e22.1.42. e373.1.3

440.2.1 Irene Wicher, "Svargakama", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 509-522


       3.Bhasyaparisista on Prabhakara's Brhati

See e373.1.3

440.3.1 Edited, with Cidananda's Nititattvavirbhava and Ramanujacarya's Tantrarahasya. Bangalore 2008


       4.Dipasikha on Prabhakara's Laghvi (NCat IX, 67)


       5.Nayakaratna (NCat IX, 348)


       6.Prakaranapancika (Prabhakara Mimamsa)

440.6.1 Edited by Vitthala Sastri and Vecanarama Sarma. Pan 1, 1866 - 5, 1870-71

440.6.2 Edited by Mukunda Sastri. ChSS 17, 1903, 1904

440.6.3 Partly edited, with Jayapura Narayana Bhatta's Nyayasiddhi and editor's Tippani. MimP 3, 1938, 32 pp.

440.6.4 Edited, with Jayapura Narayana Bhatta's Nyayasiddhi, by A.Subrahmanya Sastri. Banaras 1961

440.6.5 Selections translated in HTR 95-99

440.6.6 Rajendra Nath Sharma, "Epistemology of the Prabhakara Mimamsa (as presented in Salikanatha's Prakaranapancika)", BhV 45-47, 1985-87, 99-103

440.6.7 Joachim Prandstetter, Salikanatha's Lehre von der Wahrnehmung in Pratyaksapariccheda des Pramanaprayana der Prakaranapancika. Dissertation Wien 1993 (and cf. WZKSOA 39, 223-224)

440.6.8 Gerdi Gerschheimer, "Mimamsa", Annuaire ePHE 106, 1997-98, 173-182

440.6.9 Edited with an English exposition by K.T.Pandurangi. New Delhi 2004

440.6.12 Jean-Marie Verpoorten, "Le theorie optique au chapitre VI de le Prakaranapancika de Salikanatha", EMH 337-346


       7.Vakyarthamatrka and Vrtti thereon

440.7.1 Edited by Brahma Mitra Awasthi. Delhi 1979

440.7.2 Translated by Rajendra Nath Sarma. SGDOS 47, 1987


       8.General

See a344.4.170; 373.3.5

440.8.1 Lambert Schmithausen, "Vorstellungsfreie und vorstellende Wahrnehmung bei Salikanatha", WZKSOA 7, 1963, 104-115

440.8.2 Ananta Lal Thakur, "Salikanatha--the Vaisesika", PAIOC 24, 1968, 421-426. Also JOI 19, 1969-70, 46-52. Also ODVS 251-256


441.Vasugupta (840)

       1.Sivasutras (Kashmir Saiva)

See b634A.1.9

441.1.1 Edited, with Ksemaraja's Vimarsini, by J.C.Chatterji. KSTS 1, 1911, 1990

441.1.2 Translated, with Ksemaraja's Vimarsini, by P.T.Srinivas Iyengar. IT 3, 1912 - 4, 1912. Reprinted as Indian Thought Series 2, 1912; Delhi 1994

441.1.2.5 Edited, with Bhatta Kallata's Vrtti and Bhaskaracarya's Varttika, by Jagdish Chandra Chatterji and Satkari Mookerjee. Navadehali 1916, 1990

441.1.3 Edited, with Nandikesvara's Kasika and Upamanyu's commentary. CalSS 24, 1937

441.1.3.1 Edited with Pitharapitasvami's Rjvarthabodhini. Datiya 1960

441.1.3.2 Edited in two volumes by Vishvatirtha. Devasa, M.P. 1965, 1967

441.1.3.2.5 George Cardona, Studies in Indian Grammarians. Philadelphia 1969

441.1.4 Edited Datiya 1970

441.1.5 Edited and translated by I.K.Taimni. Madras 1976

441.1.6 Selections translated in HTR 360-364

441.1.7 Edited and translated by Jaideva Singh as Siva Sutras. The Yoga of Supreme Identity. Delhi 1979

441.1.8 Translated, with Ksemaraja's Vimarsini, by Lilian Silburn. PICI 47, 1980

441.1.9 Edited, with Bhattakallata's Vrtti, Bhatta Bhaskara's Varttika, Ksemaraja's Vimarsini, Varadaraja's Varttika and Krishnananda Sagar's Ranjani, by K Krishnananda Sagara and Akhandananda Sagara. Dharmaja (Dist. Kheda) 1984

441.1.9.1 Edited by Abhayananda Sarasvati. Omkaresvara, M.P. 1985

441.1.10 Koshelya Walli, "A comparative study of Lalla-Vakyani with the sutras of Vasugupta", MGKCV 94-106

441.1.10.5 Translated into Italian, with an Italian translation of Abhinavagupta's Paramarthasara, by the Kevala group. Roma 1987

441.1.11 Edited by Ramakanta Angirasa in Trilogy of Tantra (Karnal 1989)

441.1.12 Lalita Natu, "Comparative study of Bhaskara and Ksemaraja on Siva-Sutra 1.3: 'yonivargah kalasariram'", BhV 50, 1990, 58-68

441.1.13 Edited and translated, with Bhaskara's Varttika, by Mark Dyczkowski as The Aphorisms of Siva. Varanasi 1991; Albany, N.Y.1992

441.1.14 Koshelya Walli, "A comparative study of Lalla-Vakh with the sutras of Vasugupta in the light of Kashmir Saivism", Navonmesa 94-106

441.1.17 Susmita Pande, "Abhinavagupta's concept of aesthetic experience and the tradition of Sivasutra", HIPP 507-510


       2.(with Bhatta Kallata) Spandakarikas (Kashmir Saiva)

441.2.1 Edited, with Utpala Vaisnava's Pradipika, by Vaman Sastri Islampurkar. VizSS 14, 1898

441.2.2 Edited, with Ramakantha's Vivrti, by J.C.Chatterji. KSTS 6, 1913

441.2.3 Edited, with Kallata's Vrtti, by J.C.Chatterji. KSTS 5, 1916

441.2.4 Edited, with Ksemaraja's Spandasamdoha, by Mukunda Rama Sastri. KSTS 16, 1917

441.2.4.5 Edited by Akhandnananda Sarasvati. Bombay 1972

441.2.5 Edited, with Ksemaraja's Spandasandoha, by M.S.Kaul. KSTS 42, 1925; Delhi 1986

441.2.6 Selections translated in HTR 378-380

441.2.7 Edited and translated, with Ksemaraja's Spandanirnaya, as Spanda-karikas. The Divine Creative Pulsation, by Jaideva Singh. Delhi 1980, 2005

441.2.7.1 Edited by Nilakantha Gurutu. Delhi 1981

441.2.8 Edited, with Ramakantha's Vrtti, Ksemaraja's Spandasamdoha, Utpala's Spandapradipika and editor's Ranjani, by Krsnananda Sagara. Varanasi 1984

441.2.9 Edited by Jnanananda Sarasvati and Harishankara Sarma Ojhe. Onkaresvara, M.P. 1985

441.2.10 Edited and translated, with the Bhavana and Kaula Upanisads, by Ramakant Sharma Angiras. Karnal 1989

441.2.11 Edited and translated into French, with Ksemaraja's Spandakarikas, Utpala's Spandapradipika and Chapter One of Somananda's Sivadrsti, in Lilian Silburn, Spandakarika. Stances sur la vibration de Vasugupta. PICI 58, Paris 1990

441.2.12 Translated, with Ksemaraja's Spandasandoha, Kallatabhatta's Vrtti, Rajanaka Rama's Vivrti and Utpala's Spandapradipika, by Mark S.G. Dyczkowski as The Stanzas on Vibration. Albany, N.Y. 1992

441.2.13 Edited with Bhatta Kallata's Vrtti by Rajendra. Delhi 1994

441.2.14 Hirohisa Toda, "Udaya and pralaya in the Spandasastra", JIBSt 45.2, 1997, 1-4

441.2.16 Edited, with Utpala's Spandapradipika, Ksemaraja's Spandanirnaya and Ramakantha Bhatta's Spandakarikavivrti , by Syamakanta Dvivedi Ananda. Chaukhamvb Surabharati Prakarana 370. Varnasi 2004

441.2.17 Translated by Clare Frock from Daniel Odier's French translation. Rochester Vt. 2005


442.(renumbered 418A)


443.Jinasena (with Virasena)(837) (NCat VII, 273-4)

       1.Jayadhavala on Gunadhara's Kasayaprabhrta [Kasayapahuda] (NCat VII, 274)

See e557.2.3,4; cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 468

443.1.1 Edited by Phulcandra Jain, Mahendra Kumar Jain and Kailash Chandra Jain.Vols 1-15. Mathura 1944-1984

443.1.3 N. L. Jain, "Mathematical expositions of Virasena in Dhavala commentary", Nandanavana 193-213


444.Bhatta Narayana (840)

       1.Stavacintamani (Kashmir Saiva)

444.1.0 Edited in KSTS 10, 1918

444.1.1 Edited and translated into French in Lilian Silburn, La bhakti: le Stavacintamani de Bhattanarayana. Paris 1964

444.1.2 Edited, with Ksemaraja's Vrtti and editor's Bhumi, by Krsnananda Sager. Varanasi 1985

444.1.3 Edited by Ramasankar Simha. Delhi 2002

444.1.6 Translated, with Ksemaraja's commentary, by Boris Marjanovic. Varanasi 2011


444A.Sumatisila or Sumatisena (840)

       1.Tika on Vasubandhu's Karmasiddhiprakarana (NCat III, 2l6)

See e175.7.2


445.(Bhatta) Kallata (850) (NCat III, 262)

       1.Madhuvahini and Tattvarthacintamani on Vasugupta's Sivasutras

          (NCat III, 262; VIII, 76)

See e441.1:2.5,9

445.1.1 Edited with Ksemaraja's Vrtti by Krsnananda Sagara. Varanasi 1985


       2.Vrtti on Vasugupta's Spandakarikas

See e441.2:3,13, 16. t441.2.12


446.(Culla) Dhammapala (850)

       1.Saccasamkhepa

446.1.1 Edited by Dhammarama. JPTS 1917-1919, 1-25

446.1.1.5 Subhra Barua, A Study and Critical Edition of the Sacca-Sankhepa. 1989. Summarized in RBS 104-105

446.1.2 Edited by Lakshi Narayana Tivari. Varanasi 2000

446.1.3 Edited and translated by Dipak Kumar Barua. Sankaran 203-227


447.Anandavardhana (850)

       1.Tika on Dharmottara's Pramanaviniscayavrtti (available in Tibetan)

  

       2.General

See a582.27:13, 25



448.Haribhadra (850)

       1.Aloka on the Astasahasrikaprajnaparamitasutra and Abhisamayalamkara

See e26.1:10, 14.2, 35; 174.3:3, 6, 15, 46

448.1.1 Edited by Giuseppe Tucci. GOS 62, 1932

448.1.2 Chapter 18 translated by G.H.Sasaki and G.W.F.Flygare as The Doctrine of Non-Substantiality. Kyoto 1953

448.1.3 W.S.Karunatilleke, Astasahasrika- Prajnaparamita- Vyakhyabhisamayalamkaralokah", EnBud 2.2, 1967, 252-255

448.1.4 Ryukai Mano, "'Tathagata' in Haribhadra's commentary", JIBSt 32, 1968, 968-975

448.1.5 Ryukai Mano, "'Gotra' in Haribhadra's theory", JIBSt 30, 1967, 963-972

448.1.6 P.S.Jaini, "The Aloka of Haribhadra and the Saratama of Ratnakara-Santi: a comparative study of the two commentaries on the Astasahasrika", BSOAS 35, 1972, 211-284. Reprinted CPBS 397-416

448.1.7 Hirofusa Amano, A Study on the Abhisamaya-Alamkara-Karika- Sastra-Vrtti. Tokyo 1975

448.1.8 Seitetsu Moriyama, "The Yogacara-Madhyamika refutation of the position of the Satyakara- and Alika-vadins of the Yogacara school, part I: a translation of portions of Haribhadra's Abhisamayalamkaraloka", BDDKK 12, 1986, 1-58

448.1.9 Alexander T. McNaughton, The Buddhist Path to Omniscience. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Wisconsin 1989

448.1.10 Rusei Keira and Noboru Ueda, Sanskrit Word-Index to the Abhisamayalamkaraloka Vyakhya (U. Wogihara edition). Tokyo 1998

448.1.12 Abhisamayalamkara-karika-sastra-vivrti ed. Koei Amano. Kyoto 2000. Index Kyoto 2005

448.1.12.5 Ilona Manerskaia, "Preliminary observations on compositional methods in Haribhadra's Aloka", BudS 97-118

448.1.13 Translated by Gareth Sparham. Fremont, Calif. 2006


       2.Pancasamgraha (NCat ll, 59)


       3.Samcayagathapanjika Subodhini (ms. in Salu, acc. to Warder, p. 549)

448.3.1 Zhongxin Jiang, "A Sanskrit fragment of the Prajna-paramita-ratna-guna-samcaya-gatha-vyakhya of Haribhadra: a romanized text", ARIRSU 11, 1999, 115-*124


       4.Sphutartha on the Abhisamayalamkara (NCat I, 314)(ms. in Rome, acc. to Warder, p. 549)

See a53.1.1.


       5.Vrtti on Dignaga's Nyayamukha

See e268.5.6


       5A.Vyakhya on the (Prajna-paramita)Ratnagunasamcayagatha

448.5A.1 Zhongxin Jiang, "A Sanskrit fragment of the Prajna-paramita-ratna-guna-samcaya-gatha-vyakhya of Haribhadra", IRIABSU 115-124

448.5A.2 Akira Yuyama, "Prajna-paramita-ratna-guna-samcaya-gatha-vyakhya of Haribhadra", ARIRSU 12, 2001, 27-42


       6.General

See a418.16.5

448.6.1 Koei Amano, "Buddhakaya theory of Haribhadra" (summary). SKenk 179, 1964, 62

448.6.2 Upali Karunaratne, "Haribhadra", EnBud 5, 1992, 410-411


450.Candrananda (850)

       1.Tika or Vrtti on Kanada's Vaisesikasutras (NCat VI, 374)

See e29.1.41

450.1.1 George Chemparathy, "The isvara doctrine of the Vaisesika commentator Candrananda", Rtam 1.2, 1970, 47-52

450.1.2 Ashok Aklujkar, "Candrananda's date", JOI 19, 1969-70, 340-341

450.1.3 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 685

450.1.5 Discussed by Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 131

450.1.7 Takanori Suzuki, "The theory of inference in the Vaisesikasutra interpretation in Candrananda's Vrtti", Sambhasa 25, 2006, 91-98

450.1.10 Ference Ruzsa, "Two manuscripts of Candrananda's Vrtti on the Vaisesikasutra and the errors of the copyists", FVTC 173-183


451.Dharmendra (850)

       1.Tattvasarasamgraha (NCat IX, 279)

451.1.1 Christian Lindtner, "Gleanings from Tattvasarasamgraha", in "Adversaria Buddhica", WZKSOA 26, 1982, 167-194

451.1.2.Yogavataropadesa section edited in Tibetan, restored into Sanskrit and translated by D.C.Chatterjee. JASBe n.s. 23, 1927, 249-259

 
 

451A.Medhatithi (850?)

        1.Commentary on the Manusmrti

451A.1.0 Edited and translated by Ganganatha Jha. Five volumes, Calcutta 1920-26; ten volumes, Delhi 1999

451A.1.0.5 Joan Ingrid Links, Marriage, Family and Kinship in Medieval Northern India with special reference to the Kathasaritsagara, the seventh chapter of the Ratarangini, and Madhatirtha's Bhasya on the Manusmrti. Ph. D. Thesis, U. of Texas 1980

451A.1.1 Albrecht Wezler, "Medhatithi on samanyato drstam (anumana)", JIP 27, 1999, 139-157


451B Mukunda Bhatta (850?)

        1.General

451B.1.1 Malcolm Keating, "Mukundabhatta’s defense of laksana : how we use words to mean something else, but not everything else”, JIP 41,, 2013, 439-461


452.Ajita Kalyana Misra (860) (NCat I, 82)

       1.Tika on Nagarjuna's Ratnavali (NCat I, 82)

See e47.7.17.1

452.1.1 Edited in Tibetan by Yokihiro Okada. India et Tibetica 19, Bonn 1990


453.Jayasimhasuri (86l)

       1.Vrtti on Dharmadasa's Upadesamala (NCat II, 351; VII, 196)

453.1.1 Edited by Lalacandra Bhagavandasa Gandhi. SJS 28, Bombay 1949


455.Jayanta Bhatta (870) (NCat VII, 180-181)

       1.Nyayakalika (Nyaya)

455.1.1 Edited by Ganganatha Jha. POWSBT 17, 1925

455.1.2 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 394-395

455.1.4 Hiroshi Marui, "Some remarks on Jayanta's writing: is Nyayakalika his authentic work?", WL 91-106

455.1.6 Hiroshi Marui, "On the authorship of the Nyayakalika again", JIBSt 56.3, 2008, 27-35


       2.Nyayamanjari on Gautama's Nyayasutras

See a334.1.5. e48.1.13; 174.6.11; EFNW2

455.2.1 Satkari Mookerjee, "Jayanta Bhatta--the author of the Nyayamanjari", CR 40, 1931, 251-277

455.2.2 Edited by S.N.Sukla. KSS 106, 1934-36, 1971

455.2.3 Erich Frauwallner, "Beiträge zur Geschichte des Nyaya: I. Jayanta und seine Quellen", WZKM 44, 1937, 263-278

455.2.4 Gaurinath Sastri, "Doctrine of sabdabrahman--a criticism by Jayantabhatta", IHQ 15, 1939, 441-453

455.2.5 H.G.Narahari, "The Atharvaveda and the Nyayamanjari of Jayantabhatta", IC 6, 1940, 369-376

455.2.6 M.Ramakrishna Kavi, "Bhatta Jayanta and Yasovarman of Kashmir", DRBV 45-52

455.2.7 Paul Hacker, "Jayantabhatta and Vacaspatimisra", FWS 160-169. Reprinted in PHKS 110-119

455.2.8 Translated by Janakivallabha Bhattacharya. CR 125, 1952 - 145, 1957. Incomplete. Reprinted Delhi 1978

455.2.9 H.G.Narahari, "Jayantabhatta and the Vedas", BDCRI 18, 1957, 30-35

455.2.10 H.G.Narahari, "Nyayamanjari studies", PO 22.1-2, 1957 - 26.3-4, 1961.

455.2.11 V.Raghavan, "Why was Jayantabhatta known as the Vrttikara?", POS 93, 1960: 3, 173

455.2.12 Brahmananda Gupta, Die Wahrnehmungslehre in der Nyayamanjari. Beitrage zur Sprach- und Kulturgeschichte des Orients l6, Walldorf-Hessen 1963

455.2.13 Brahmananda Gupta, "On the common source of Jayanta andVyomasiva", CIDO 26, Summaries 1964, 113-114

455.2.14 B.H.Kapadia, "Jayantabhatta and Vacaspati Misra: their date and their significance for the chronology of Vedanta", JGJRI 22, 1965-66, 159-176

455.2.15 H.G.Narahari, "The conception of God in the Nyayamanjari of Jayantabhatta", PAIOC 22, 1965, 229-231

455.2.16 H.G.Narahari, "Jayanta-bhatta: poet-philosopher of Kashmir", AP 37, 1966, 23-28

455.2.17 H.G.Narahari, "On some important citations in the Nyayamanjari of Jayantabhatta", JGJRI 24, 1968, 111-114

455.2.18 Edited, with editor's Nyayasaurabha, by K.S.Varadacarya. Volume One. Mysore 1969

455.2.19 C.D.Bijelwan, "Bhatta Jayanta's theory of the test of the truth of a knowledge", JGJRI 28.3-4, 1972, 149-158

455.2.19.1 Chakra Dhar Bijelwan, A Critical and Comparative Study of Jayanta's Theory of Knowledge. 1972. Summarized in RBS pp. 20-24

455.2.20 Edited by N.J.Shah. LDS 48, 1975; 67, 1978; 97, 1984

455.2.21 Albrecht Wezler, "Zur Identität der 'Acaryah' und 'Vyakhyatarah' in Jayantabhatta's Nyayamanjari", WZKSOA 19, 1975, 135-l46

455.2.22 Translated by V.N.Jha. BDCRI 36, 1976-77, 36-43. Incomplete

455.2.23 Sarbani Ganguli, "Jayanta on the nature of karma", CR n.s. 2, 1976-77, 115-121

455.2.24 C.D.Bijelwan, Indian Theory of Knowledge based upon Jayanta's Nyayamanjari. New Delhi 1977

455.2.25 R.D.Hegde, "The definition and nature of pramana according to Jayanta Bhatta", Sambodhi 7, 1978-79, 56-63

455.2.26 Shiv Kumar, "Jayantabhatta's critique on the Samkhya concept of sequential stages in evolution", ABORI 60, 1979, 159-165

455.2.27 Sabujkali Sen, "An examination of the Nyaya theory of memory with special reference to Jayanta's Nyayamanjari", Philosophica 8.1-2, 1979, 1-16

455.2.27.1 V.N.Jha, "Jayanta's concept of pramana", ChSSt 5, 1980, 41-48. Reprinted SILLE 26-35

455.2.28 Summarized by Janakivallabha Bhattacharya, Usharbudh Arya and Karl H. Potter in EnIndPh2, 1981, 341-394

455.2.29 R.D.Hegde, "Number of pramanas", Sambodhi 10, 1981-82, 63-66

455.2.30 Edited, with Cakradhara's Granthibhanga, by Gaurinath Sastri. Part One: LDS 35, 1972. Part Two: M.M.Sivakumarasastri-Granthamala 5, Varanasi 1983-1984.

455.2.30.0 R.D.Hegde, "Bhatta Jayanta", ABORI 64, 1984, 1-15

455.2.30.1 Nagin J. Shah, A Study of Jayanta Bhatta's Nyayamanjari (A Mature Sanskrit Work on Indian Logic, Pt. 1). Ahmedabad 1984, 1993

455.2.31 Sabujkali Sen, "A note on the Nyaya theory of pramanasamplava (based on Jayanta Bhatta's Nyayamanjari)", VJP 21.2, 1985, 90-95

455.2.32 Mara Ballanfat, Le Probleme de la Percpeiotn dans le Nyaya, en particulalier a la lumiere de la Nyayamanjari. Doctoral thesis, Paris-Sorbonne 1986

455.2.33 V.N.Jha, "Jayanta's critique of the Bhattta theory of knowledge", ABORI 68, 1987, 581-588

455.2.34 Santimoy Chowdhury, "An examination of the Mimamsaka view of prama and pramana (based on Jayanta's Nyayamanjari)", VJP 25.2-26, 1989, 44-49

455.2.34.1 Madhusudan Mishra, "Jayanta's doctrine of karana: a reappraisal", AJOS 6, 1989, 93-100

455.2.35 V.N.Jha, "Jayanta on remembrance", Glory of Knowledge 133-145

455.2.35.1 Madhusudan Mishra, "Jayanta's doctrine of karana: a reappraisal", AJOS 6, 1989, 93-100

455.2.35.2 V. N. Jha, "Jayanta on pratibhajnana", PGI 399-402

455.2.35.2.3 Nagin J. Shah, "Jayanta on the Buddhist definition of perception", Sambodhi 16, 1991, 3-17

455.2.35.2.5 Ujjvala Panse, "Jayanta on the relation between word and meaning", RelationsIP 99-108

455.2.35.3 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Jayanta Bhatta in the Nyayamanjari", BPBS 179-286

455.2.36 Pratap Bandyopadhyay, "A doubtful reading in the Nyayamanjari: an editorial problem", VIJ 33-34, 1995-96, 195-198

455.2.37 Translated by V.N.Jha. Ahnika I. Delhi 1995

455.2.38 Sections translated in V.N.Jha, "On the notion of pramana- a dialogue between Jayantabhatta and the Vaibhasikas and Yogacarins", Sambhasa 17, 1996, 1-25

455.2.39 Tapan Kumar Chakrabarti, "Jayanta Bhatta's theory of karana: a defense", EssInP 197-211

455.2.40 V. N. Jha, "Prabhacandra's critique of Jayanta's general definition of pramana", JLE 123-125

455.2.41 Helmut Krasser, "Zur buddhistischen definition vom gültiger erkenntnis (pramana) in Jayantabhatta;s Nyayamanjari", SII 21, 1997, 105-132

455.2.42 Nagin J. Shah, "Jayanta Bhatta's Nyayamanjari: an appraisal", JASBo 73, 1998, 134-148

455.2.44 Edited by Siddheswara Bhatt and Sasiprabha Kumar. Delhi 2001

455.2.45 Takamichi Fujii, "Jayantabhatta on tatparyasakti-theory", JIBSt 49.2, 2001, 14-16

455.2.45.5 Ramkrishna Bhattacharya, "Jayanatabhatta's representation of the Carvaka–a critique", ICCD 85-94

455.2.46 Kei Kataoka, "Critical edition of the Vijnanadvaitavada section of Bhatta Jayanta's Nyayamanjari", TBKK 144, 2003, 318-357

455.2.47 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 381-385

455.2.48 Nandita Bandyopadhyay, Jayantabhatta's Interpretation of Anumana. Kolkata 2004

455.2.48.3 Kei Kataoka, "Crticial edition of the Agamapramanya section of Bhatta Jayanta's Nyayamanjari", TBKK 146, 2004, 131-178

455.2.49 Kei Kataoka, "Critical edition of the Isvarasiddhi section of Bhatta Jayanta's Nyayamanjari", TBKK 148, 2005, 57-110

455.2.50 Masaaki Hattori, "The apoha theory as referred to in the Nyayamanjari", Acta Asiatica 90, 2006, 55-70

455.2.51 Kei Kataoka, "Bhatta Jayanta on the purpose of nyaya", SACS 1, 2006, 147-end

455.2.52 Hiroshi Marui, "Some notes on the controversies between the 'acaryah' and the vyakhyacarah' in the Nyayamanjari", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 33-41

455.2.58 S. Revathy, "Review of Purvamimamsa doctrines by Jayanta Bhatta", PIPV 461-494

455.2.60 Kei Kataoka, "Critical editio of the Sastrarambha sectio of Bhatta Jayantya's Nyayamanjari", TBKK 150, 2007, 204-245

455.2.65 Yasutake Muroya, "A study on the marginalia in some Nyayamanjari manuscripts: the reconstruction of a lost portion of the Nyayamanjarigranthibhanga", WZKS 52-53, 2009-2010, 213-268

455.2.67 Alessandra Grahali, "The choice of the best reading iono Bhatta Jayatirtha’s Nyayamanjari”, RDSO 34, 2011, 107-122

455.2.68 Masaaki Hattori, "The apoha theory referred to in the Nyayamanjari”, Apoha 134-148

455.2.70 Alessandro Grahely, "A preliminary list and descrption of the Nyayamanjari manuscripts”, JIP 40, 2012, 317-337

455.2.75 Hiroshi Marui, "The meaning of a diversity of world views as tenets (siddhanta) in the science of debate: with special reference to Jayanta’s interpretation of the abhyupayana-siddhanta (NS I.1.3) and its evaluationin othe development of the Nyaya system”, WVTIP 407-412


456.Gunabhadra (870) (NCat II, 62)

       1.(with Jinasena) Atmanusasana (Jain) (NCat II, 62)

456.1.1 Edited by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905

456.1.2 Edited by Jivaraja Gautamacandra Dosi. Sholapur 1909

456.1.3 Edited by Hirabhag. Bombay 1916

456.1.4 Edited by Manoharalal Sastri. MDJG 7, 1917

456.1.5 Edited in SS

456.1.6 Edited and translated by J.L.Jaini. SBJ 7, 1928, 1956, 1961, 1974. Introduction reprinted EpJ 140

456.1.7 Edited by Vamsidhara Sastri. Agra 1929

456.1.8 Edited, with Prabhacandra's commentary, by A.N.Upadhye. JJG 11, 1961

456.1.8.5 Edited,with Prabhacandra's commentary, by Balacandra Siddhanta S astri. Sholapur 1973, 1993

456.1.9 Edited by Aryika Abhayamati. Meerut 1990

456.1.10 Summary by A.N.Upadhye (from JJG 11, 1961), reprinted EnIndPh10, 2007, 468-471

456.1.12 Edited,with Todaramala's Bhasavacanika, by Cetanaprakasa Patani Mujappheranagara. U.P. 2007

456.1.14 Andrew Glass, "Gunabhadra, Buoyuon, and the Samlyuktagama", JIABS 31.102, 2008 (2010), 185-204


457.Pradyumna Bhatta (875)

       1.Tattvagarbhastotra (Kashmir Saiva)


457A.Upasena (877)

       1.Commentary on the Niddesa

457A.1.1 Petra Kieffer-{uta, "The Gantharambhakakatha of Upasena's Saddharmapajotika and Vajbabuddhi's Vajrabuddhitika", IIJ 52, 2009, 143-177


458.Dharmamitra (880) (NCat IX, 258)

       1.Prasphutapada on Haribhadra's Abhisamayalamkara-Sphutartha (NCat I, 314; NCat IX, 258)

458.1.1 D. Seyfort Ruegg, "An Indian source for the Tibetan hermeneutical term dgons gzi 'intentional ground'", JIP 16, 1988, 1-4


459.Dharmakirti Sri (880)

       1.Durbodhaloka on Asanga's Abhisamayalamkara (NCat I, 313; IX, 89, 241)

          

       2.Satasahasrikavivarana (NCat IX, 241)


460.Mukula Bhatta (884)

       1.Abhidhavrttimatrka (Grammarian)

460.1.0 Edited with Mammatacarya's Sabdavyaparavicaraby Mangesha Ramakrsna Telang. Bombay 1916

460.1.0.5 Edited by RewatiPrasad Dwivedi. Varnasi 1973

460.1.1 Edited and translated by K. Venugopalan. JIP 4, 1977, 203-264

460.1.2 G.L.Chaturvedi, "A critique of the theory of meaning as propounded in Abhidhavrttimatrka" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 65

460.1.5 Partly edited, with Mammatacarya's Sabdavyaparavvicaram by Nirupama Tripathi. Delhi 2007


461.Sadyojyoti (890)

       1.Bhogakarika (Saiva Siddhanta)

See e589.1.1

461.1.1 Favio Boccio, "Die Konzeption der buddhi als 'Genussobjekt' in Sadyojyoti's Bhogakarika", IndTibS 11-26

461.1.3 Edited and translated by Wayne A. Borody. Delhi 2005


       2.Moksakarika (Saiva Siddhanta)

See e589.1.1


       3.Naresvarapariksa (Saiva Siddhanta) (NCat IX, 372)

461.3.1 Edited Pan 2, 1867-68: 71 ff.

461.3.2 Edited, with Ramakantha's Tika, by M.S.Kaul.KSTS 45, 1926, 1985, 1989

461.3.3 Magan Bihari Lal, Naresvara-Pariksa, a Critical and Comparative Study with Hindi translation. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Lucknow 1975

461.3.4 Edited with Ramakantha's Tika by Krsnananda Sagara. Dharmaraj 1985

461.3.6 Edited with Ramakantha's Prakasa by Ramaji Malaviya. Varanasi 2000


       4.Paramoksanirasakarika (Saiva Siddhanta)

See e589.1.1


       4A.Tika on Vidyapada's Svayambhusutrasamgraha

461.4A.1 Edited by Pierre-Sylvain Filliozat, Geneva 1991. Reprinted with English translation, New Delhi 1994


       5.Tattvasamgraha (Saiva Siddhanta) (NCat VIII, 69)

See e589.1.1

461.5.1 Verses l-57 translated into German, with German translation of 1.1-88 and 2.1-8 of Utpaladeva's Pratyabhijnakarikas, by Erich Frauwallner in Aus der Philosophie der sivaischen Systeme. Berlin 1962

461.5.2 Edited and translated into French in Pierre-Sylvain Filliozat, "Le Tattvasamgraha 'Compendium des Essences' de Sadyojyoti", BEFEO 77, 1988, 97-164


       6.Tattvatrayanirnaya (Saiva Siddhanta) (NCat VIII, 44)

See e589.1.1

461.6.1 Translated by P. Thirugnanasambandhan, SaivS 22, 1987, 47-62; 23, 1988: 1, 12

461.6.2 Edited and translated into French by Pierre-Sylvain Filliozat. BEFEO 78, 1991, 133-158

461.6.3 Richard H. Davis, "Sadyojyoti's Tattvatraya Nirnay (with a summary of Aghorasiva's commentary), JOR 68-70, 1997-2000, 191-206


       7.General

461.7.1 Leon Mannette, Philosophy of God in Kashmir Saiva Dualism. Sadyojyoti and His Commentators. Ph.D.Thesis, McMaster University, 1987


462.(unassigned)